12327 lines
586 KiB
Plaintext
12327 lines
586 KiB
Plaintext
|
|
The Project Gutenberg EBook of Adventures of Huckleberry Finn, Complete
|
|
by Mark Twain (Samuel Clemens)
|
|
|
|
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost
|
|
no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use
|
|
it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
|
|
eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
|
|
|
|
Title: Adventures of Huckleberry Finn, Complete
|
|
|
|
Author: Mark Twain (Samuel Clemens)
|
|
|
|
Release Date: August 20, 2006 [EBook #76]
|
|
Last Updated: February 23, 2018
|
|
Language: English
|
|
|
|
Character set encoding: UTF-8
|
|
|
|
*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK HUCKLEBERRY FINN ***
|
|
|
|
Produced by David Widger
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
ADVENTURES
|
|
|
|
OF
|
|
|
|
HUCKLEBERRY FINN
|
|
|
|
(Tom Sawyer's Comrade)
|
|
|
|
By Mark Twain
|
|
|
|
Complete
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CONTENTS.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I. Civilizing Huck.--Miss Watson.--Tom Sawyer Waits.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II. The Boys Escape Jim.--Torn Sawyer's Gang.--Deep-laid Plans.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER III. A Good Going-over.--Grace Triumphant.--“One of Tom Sawyers's
|
|
Lies”.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IV. Huck and the Judge.--Superstition.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER V. Huck's Father.--The Fond Parent.--Reform.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VI. He Went for Judge Thatcher.--Huck Decided to Leave.--Political
|
|
Economy.--Thrashing Around.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VII. Laying for Him.--Locked in the Cabin.--Sinking the
|
|
Body.--Resting.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VIII. Sleeping in the Woods.--Raising the Dead.--Exploring the
|
|
Island.--Finding Jim.--Jim's Escape.--Signs.--Balum.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IX. The Cave.--The Floating House.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER X. The Find.--Old Hank Bunker.--In Disguise.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XI. Huck and the Woman.--The Search.--Prevarication.--Going to
|
|
Goshen.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XII. Slow Navigation.--Borrowing Things.--Boarding the Wreck.--The
|
|
Plotters.--Hunting for the Boat.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIII. Escaping from the Wreck.--The Watchman.--Sinking.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIV. A General Good Time.--The Harem.--French.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XV. Huck Loses the Raft.--In the Fog.--Huck Finds the Raft.--Trash.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVI. Expectation.--A White Lie.--Floating Currency.--Running by
|
|
Cairo.--Swimming Ashore.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVII. An Evening Call.--The Farm in Arkansaw.--Interior
|
|
Decorations.--Stephen Dowling Bots.--Poetical Effusions.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVIII. Col. Grangerford.--Aristocracy.--Feuds.--The
|
|
Testament.--Recovering the Raft.--The Wood--pile.--Pork and Cabbage.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIX. Tying Up Day--times.--An Astronomical Theory.--Running a
|
|
Temperance Revival.--The Duke of Bridgewater.--The Troubles of Royalty.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XX. Huck Explains.--Laying Out a Campaign.--Working the
|
|
Camp--meeting.--A Pirate at the Camp--meeting.--The Duke as a Printer.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXI. Sword Exercise.--Hamlet's Soliloquy.--They Loafed Around
|
|
Town.--A Lazy Town.--Old Boggs.--Dead.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXII. Sherburn.--Attending the Circus.--Intoxication in the
|
|
Ring.--The Thrilling Tragedy.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXIII. Sold.--Royal Comparisons.--Jim Gets Home-sick.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXIV. Jim in Royal Robes.--They Take a Passenger.--Getting
|
|
Information.--Family Grief.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXV. Is It Them?--Singing the “Doxologer.”--Awful Square--Funeral
|
|
Orgies.--A Bad Investment .
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXVI. A Pious King.--The King's Clergy.--She Asked His
|
|
Pardon.--Hiding in the Room.--Huck Takes the Money.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXVII. The Funeral.--Satisfying Curiosity.--Suspicious of
|
|
Huck,--Quick Sales and Small.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXVIII. The Trip to England.--“The Brute!”--Mary Jane Decides to
|
|
Leave.--Huck Parting with Mary Jane.--Mumps.--The Opposition Line.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXIX. Contested Relationship.--The King Explains the Loss.--A
|
|
Question of Handwriting.--Digging up the Corpse.--Huck Escapes.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXX. The King Went for Him.--A Royal Row.--Powerful Mellow.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXI. Ominous Plans.--News from Jim.--Old Recollections.--A Sheep
|
|
Story.--Valuable Information.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXII. Still and Sunday--like.--Mistaken Identity.--Up a Stump.--In
|
|
a Dilemma.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXIII. A Nigger Stealer.--Southern Hospitality.--A Pretty Long
|
|
Blessing.--Tar and Feathers.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXIV. The Hut by the Ash Hopper.--Outrageous.--Climbing the
|
|
Lightning Rod.--Troubled with Witches.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXV. Escaping Properly.--Dark Schemes.--Discrimination in
|
|
Stealing.--A Deep Hole.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXVI. The Lightning Rod.--His Level Best.--A Bequest to
|
|
Posterity.--A High Figure.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXVII. The Last Shirt.--Mooning Around.--Sailing Orders.--The
|
|
Witch Pie.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXVIII. The Coat of Arms.--A Skilled Superintendent.--Unpleasant
|
|
Glory.--A Tearful Subject.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXIX. Rats.--Lively Bed--fellows.--The Straw Dummy.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XL. Fishing.--The Vigilance Committee.--A Lively Run.--Jim Advises
|
|
a Doctor.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XLI. The Doctor.--Uncle Silas.--Sister Hotchkiss.--Aunt Sally in
|
|
Trouble.
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XLII. Tom Sawyer Wounded.--The Doctor's Story.--Tom
|
|
Confesses.--Aunt Polly Arrives.--Hand Out Them Letters .
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER THE LAST. Out of Bondage.--Paying the Captive.--Yours Truly, Huck
|
|
Finn.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
ILLUSTRATIONS.
|
|
|
|
|
|
The Widows
|
|
|
|
Moses and the “Bulrushers”
|
|
|
|
Miss Watson
|
|
|
|
Huck Stealing Away
|
|
|
|
They Tip-toed Along
|
|
|
|
Jim
|
|
|
|
Tom Sawyer's Band of Robbers
|
|
|
|
Huck Creeps into his Window
|
|
|
|
Miss Watson's Lecture
|
|
|
|
The Robbers Dispersed
|
|
|
|
Rubbing the Lamp
|
|
|
|
! ! ! !
|
|
|
|
Judge Thatcher surprised
|
|
|
|
Jim Listening
|
|
|
|
“Pap”
|
|
|
|
Huck and his Father
|
|
|
|
Reforming the Drunkard
|
|
|
|
Falling from Grace
|
|
|
|
Getting out of the Way
|
|
|
|
Solid Comfort
|
|
|
|
Thinking it Over
|
|
|
|
Raising a Howl
|
|
|
|
“Git Up”
|
|
|
|
The Shanty
|
|
|
|
Shooting the Pig
|
|
|
|
Taking a Rest
|
|
|
|
In the Woods
|
|
|
|
Watching the Boat
|
|
|
|
Discovering the Camp Fire
|
|
|
|
Jim and the Ghost
|
|
|
|
Misto Bradish's Nigger
|
|
|
|
Exploring the Cave
|
|
|
|
In the Cave
|
|
|
|
Jim sees a Dead Man
|
|
|
|
They Found Eight Dollars
|
|
|
|
Jim and the Snake
|
|
|
|
Old Hank Bunker
|
|
|
|
“A Fair Fit”
|
|
|
|
“Come In”
|
|
|
|
“Him and another Man”
|
|
|
|
She puts up a Snack
|
|
|
|
“Hump Yourself”
|
|
|
|
On the Raft
|
|
|
|
He sometimes Lifted a Chicken
|
|
|
|
“Please don't, Bill”
|
|
|
|
“It ain't Good Morals”
|
|
|
|
“Oh! Lordy, Lordy!”
|
|
|
|
In a Fix
|
|
|
|
“Hello, What's Up?”
|
|
|
|
The Wreck
|
|
|
|
We turned in and Slept
|
|
|
|
Turning over the Truck
|
|
|
|
Solomon and his Million Wives
|
|
|
|
The story of “Sollermun”
|
|
|
|
“We Would Sell the Raft”
|
|
|
|
Among the Snags
|
|
|
|
Asleep on the Raft
|
|
|
|
“Something being Raftsman”
|
|
|
|
“Boy, that's a Lie”
|
|
|
|
“Here I is, Huck”
|
|
|
|
Climbing up the Bank
|
|
|
|
“Who's There?”
|
|
|
|
“Buck”
|
|
|
|
“It made Her look Spidery”
|
|
|
|
“They got him out and emptied Him”
|
|
|
|
The House
|
|
|
|
Col. Grangerford
|
|
|
|
Young Harney Shepherdson
|
|
|
|
Miss Charlotte
|
|
|
|
“And asked me if I Liked Her”
|
|
|
|
“Behind the Wood-pile”
|
|
|
|
Hiding Day-times
|
|
|
|
“And Dogs a-Coming”
|
|
|
|
“By rights I am a Duke!”
|
|
|
|
“I am the Late Dauphin”
|
|
|
|
Tail Piece
|
|
|
|
On the Raft
|
|
|
|
The King as Juliet
|
|
|
|
“Courting on the Sly”
|
|
|
|
“A Pirate for Thirty Years”
|
|
|
|
Another little Job
|
|
|
|
Practizing
|
|
|
|
Hamlet's Soliloquy
|
|
|
|
“Gimme a Chaw”
|
|
|
|
A Little Monthly Drunk
|
|
|
|
The Death of Boggs
|
|
|
|
Sherburn steps out
|
|
|
|
A Dead Head
|
|
|
|
He shed Seventeen Suits
|
|
|
|
Tragedy
|
|
|
|
Their Pockets Bulged
|
|
|
|
Henry the Eighth in Boston Harbor
|
|
|
|
Harmless
|
|
|
|
Adolphus
|
|
|
|
He fairly emptied that Young Fellow
|
|
|
|
“Alas, our Poor Brother”
|
|
|
|
“You Bet it is”
|
|
|
|
Leaking
|
|
|
|
Making up the “Deffisit”
|
|
|
|
Going for him
|
|
|
|
The Doctor
|
|
|
|
The Bag of Money
|
|
|
|
The Cubby
|
|
|
|
Supper with the Hare-Lip
|
|
|
|
Honest Injun
|
|
|
|
The Duke looks under the Bed
|
|
|
|
Huck takes the Money
|
|
|
|
A Crack in the Dining-room Door
|
|
|
|
The Undertaker
|
|
|
|
“He had a Rat!”
|
|
|
|
“Was you in my Room?”
|
|
|
|
Jawing
|
|
|
|
In Trouble
|
|
|
|
Indignation
|
|
|
|
How to Find Them
|
|
|
|
He Wrote
|
|
|
|
Hannah with the Mumps
|
|
|
|
The Auction
|
|
|
|
The True Brothers
|
|
|
|
The Doctor leads Huck
|
|
|
|
The Duke Wrote
|
|
|
|
“Gentlemen, Gentlemen!”
|
|
|
|
“Jim Lit Out”
|
|
|
|
The King shakes Huck
|
|
|
|
The Duke went for Him
|
|
|
|
Spanish Moss
|
|
|
|
“Who Nailed Him?”
|
|
|
|
Thinking
|
|
|
|
He gave him Ten Cents
|
|
|
|
Striking for the Back Country
|
|
|
|
Still and Sunday-like
|
|
|
|
She hugged him tight
|
|
|
|
“Who do you reckon it is?”
|
|
|
|
“It was Tom Sawyer”
|
|
|
|
“Mr. Archibald Nichols, I presume?”
|
|
|
|
A pretty long Blessing
|
|
|
|
Traveling By Rail
|
|
|
|
Vittles
|
|
|
|
A Simple Job
|
|
|
|
Witches
|
|
|
|
Getting Wood
|
|
|
|
One of the Best Authorities
|
|
|
|
The Breakfast-Horn
|
|
|
|
Smouching the Knives
|
|
|
|
Going down the Lightning-Rod
|
|
|
|
Stealing spoons
|
|
|
|
Tom advises a Witch Pie
|
|
|
|
The Rubbage-Pile
|
|
|
|
“Missus, dey's a Sheet Gone”
|
|
|
|
In a Tearing Way
|
|
|
|
One of his Ancestors
|
|
|
|
Jim's Coat of Arms
|
|
|
|
A Tough Job
|
|
|
|
Buttons on their Tails
|
|
|
|
Irrigation
|
|
|
|
Keeping off Dull Times
|
|
|
|
Sawdust Diet
|
|
|
|
Trouble is Brewing
|
|
|
|
Fishing
|
|
|
|
Every one had a Gun
|
|
|
|
Tom caught on a Splinter
|
|
|
|
Jim advises a Doctor
|
|
|
|
The Doctor
|
|
|
|
Uncle Silas in Danger
|
|
|
|
Old Mrs. Hotchkiss
|
|
|
|
Aunt Sally talks to Huck
|
|
|
|
Tom Sawyer wounded
|
|
|
|
The Doctor speaks for Jim
|
|
|
|
Tom rose square up in Bed
|
|
|
|
“Hand out them Letters”
|
|
|
|
Out of Bondage
|
|
|
|
Tom's Liberality
|
|
|
|
Yours Truly
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
EXPLANATORY
|
|
|
|
IN this book a number of dialects are used, to wit: the Missouri negro
|
|
dialect; the extremest form of the backwoods Southwestern dialect; the
|
|
ordinary “Pike County” dialect; and four modified varieties of this
|
|
last. The shadings have not been done in a haphazard fashion, or by
|
|
guesswork; but painstakingly, and with the trustworthy guidance and
|
|
support of personal familiarity with these several forms of speech.
|
|
|
|
I make this explanation for the reason that without it many readers
|
|
would suppose that all these characters were trying to talk alike and
|
|
not succeeding.
|
|
|
|
THE AUTHOR.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
HUCKLEBERRY FINN
|
|
|
|
Scene: The Mississippi Valley Time: Forty to fifty years ago
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER I.
|
|
|
|
YOU don't know about me without you have read a book by the name of The
|
|
Adventures of Tom Sawyer; but that ain't no matter. That book was made
|
|
by Mr. Mark Twain, and he told the truth, mainly. There was things
|
|
which he stretched, but mainly he told the truth. That is nothing. I
|
|
never seen anybody but lied one time or another, without it was Aunt
|
|
Polly, or the widow, or maybe Mary. Aunt Polly--Tom's Aunt Polly, she
|
|
is--and Mary, and the Widow Douglas is all told about in that book, which
|
|
is mostly a true book, with some stretchers, as I said before.
|
|
|
|
Now the way that the book winds up is this: Tom and me found the money
|
|
that the robbers hid in the cave, and it made us rich. We got six
|
|
thousand dollars apiece--all gold. It was an awful sight of money when
|
|
it was piled up. Well, Judge Thatcher he took it and put it out
|
|
at interest, and it fetched us a dollar a day apiece all the year
|
|
round--more than a body could tell what to do with. The Widow Douglas
|
|
she took me for her son, and allowed she would sivilize me; but it was
|
|
rough living in the house all the time, considering how dismal regular
|
|
and decent the widow was in all her ways; and so when I couldn't stand
|
|
it no longer I lit out. I got into my old rags and my sugar-hogshead
|
|
again, and was free and satisfied. But Tom Sawyer he hunted me up and
|
|
said he was going to start a band of robbers, and I might join if I
|
|
would go back to the widow and be respectable. So I went back.
|
|
|
|
The widow she cried over me, and called me a poor lost lamb, and she
|
|
called me a lot of other names, too, but she never meant no harm by
|
|
it. She put me in them new clothes again, and I couldn't do nothing but
|
|
sweat and sweat, and feel all cramped up. Well, then, the old thing
|
|
commenced again. The widow rung a bell for supper, and you had to come
|
|
to time. When you got to the table you couldn't go right to eating, but
|
|
you had to wait for the widow to tuck down her head and grumble a little
|
|
over the victuals, though there warn't really anything the matter with
|
|
them,--that is, nothing only everything was cooked by itself. In a
|
|
barrel of odds and ends it is different; things get mixed up, and the
|
|
juice kind of swaps around, and the things go better.
|
|
|
|
After supper she got out her book and learned me about Moses and the
|
|
Bulrushers, and I was in a sweat to find out all about him; but by and
|
|
by she let it out that Moses had been dead a considerable long time; so
|
|
then I didn't care no more about him, because I don't take no stock in
|
|
dead people.
|
|
|
|
Pretty soon I wanted to smoke, and asked the widow to let me. But she
|
|
wouldn't. She said it was a mean practice and wasn't clean, and I must
|
|
try to not do it any more. That is just the way with some people. They
|
|
get down on a thing when they don't know nothing about it. Here she was
|
|
a-bothering about Moses, which was no kin to her, and no use to anybody,
|
|
being gone, you see, yet finding a power of fault with me for doing a
|
|
thing that had some good in it. And she took snuff, too; of course that
|
|
was all right, because she done it herself.
|
|
|
|
Her sister, Miss Watson, a tolerable slim old maid, with goggles on,
|
|
had just come to live with her, and took a set at me now with a
|
|
spelling-book. She worked me middling hard for about an hour, and then
|
|
the widow made her ease up. I couldn't stood it much longer. Then for
|
|
an hour it was deadly dull, and I was fidgety. Miss Watson would say,
|
|
“Don't put your feet up there, Huckleberry;” and “Don't scrunch up
|
|
like that, Huckleberry--set up straight;” and pretty soon she would
|
|
say, “Don't gap and stretch like that, Huckleberry--why don't you try to
|
|
behave?” Then she told me all about the bad place, and I said I wished
|
|
I was there. She got mad then, but I didn't mean no harm. All I wanted
|
|
was to go somewheres; all I wanted was a change, I warn't particular.
|
|
She said it was wicked to say what I said; said she wouldn't say it for
|
|
the whole world; she was going to live so as to go to the good place.
|
|
Well, I couldn't see no advantage in going where she was going, so I
|
|
made up my mind I wouldn't try for it. But I never said so, because it
|
|
would only make trouble, and wouldn't do no good.
|
|
|
|
Now she had got a start, and she went on and told me all about the good
|
|
place. She said all a body would have to do there was to go around all
|
|
day long with a harp and sing, forever and ever. So I didn't think
|
|
much of it. But I never said so. I asked her if she reckoned Tom Sawyer
|
|
would go there, and she said not by a considerable sight. I was glad
|
|
about that, because I wanted him and me to be together.
|
|
|
|
Miss Watson she kept pecking at me, and it got tiresome and lonesome.
|
|
By and by they fetched the niggers in and had prayers, and then
|
|
everybody was off to bed. I went up to my room with a piece of candle,
|
|
and put it on the table. Then I set down in a chair by the window and
|
|
tried to think of something cheerful, but it warn't no use. I felt
|
|
so lonesome I most wished I was dead. The stars were shining, and the
|
|
leaves rustled in the woods ever so mournful; and I heard an owl, away
|
|
off, who-whooing about somebody that was dead, and a whippowill and a
|
|
dog crying about somebody that was going to die; and the wind was trying
|
|
to whisper something to me, and I couldn't make out what it was, and so
|
|
it made the cold shivers run over me. Then away out in the woods I heard
|
|
that kind of a sound that a ghost makes when it wants to tell about
|
|
something that's on its mind and can't make itself understood, and so
|
|
can't rest easy in its grave, and has to go about that way every night
|
|
grieving. I got so down-hearted and scared I did wish I had some
|
|
company. Pretty soon a spider went crawling up my shoulder, and I
|
|
flipped it off and it lit in the candle; and before I could budge it
|
|
was all shriveled up. I didn't need anybody to tell me that that was
|
|
an awful bad sign and would fetch me some bad luck, so I was scared
|
|
and most shook the clothes off of me. I got up and turned around in my
|
|
tracks three times and crossed my breast every time; and then I tied
|
|
up a little lock of my hair with a thread to keep witches away. But
|
|
I hadn't no confidence. You do that when you've lost a horseshoe that
|
|
you've found, instead of nailing it up over the door, but I hadn't ever
|
|
heard anybody say it was any way to keep off bad luck when you'd killed
|
|
a spider.
|
|
|
|
I set down again, a-shaking all over, and got out my pipe for a smoke;
|
|
for the house was all as still as death now, and so the widow wouldn't
|
|
know. Well, after a long time I heard the clock away off in the town
|
|
go boom--boom--boom--twelve licks; and all still again--stiller than
|
|
ever. Pretty soon I heard a twig snap down in the dark amongst the
|
|
trees--something was a stirring. I set still and listened. Directly I
|
|
could just barely hear a “me-yow! me-yow!” down there. That was good!
|
|
Says I, “me-yow! me-yow!” as soft as I could, and then I put out the
|
|
light and scrambled out of the window on to the shed. Then I slipped
|
|
down to the ground and crawled in among the trees, and, sure enough,
|
|
there was Tom Sawyer waiting for me.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER II.
|
|
|
|
WE went tiptoeing along a path amongst the trees back towards the end of
|
|
the widow's garden, stooping down so as the branches wouldn't scrape our
|
|
heads. When we was passing by the kitchen I fell over a root and made
|
|
a noise. We scrouched down and laid still. Miss Watson's big nigger,
|
|
named Jim, was setting in the kitchen door; we could see him pretty
|
|
clear, because there was a light behind him. He got up and stretched
|
|
his neck out about a minute, listening. Then he says:
|
|
|
|
“Who dah?”
|
|
|
|
He listened some more; then he come tiptoeing down and stood right
|
|
between us; we could a touched him, nearly. Well, likely it was
|
|
minutes and minutes that there warn't a sound, and we all there so close
|
|
together. There was a place on my ankle that got to itching, but I
|
|
dasn't scratch it; and then my ear begun to itch; and next my back,
|
|
right between my shoulders. Seemed like I'd die if I couldn't scratch.
|
|
Well, I've noticed that thing plenty times since. If you are with
|
|
the quality, or at a funeral, or trying to go to sleep when you ain't
|
|
sleepy--if you are anywheres where it won't do for you to scratch, why
|
|
you will itch all over in upwards of a thousand places. Pretty soon Jim
|
|
says:
|
|
|
|
“Say, who is you? Whar is you? Dog my cats ef I didn' hear sumf'n.
|
|
Well, I know what I's gwyne to do: I's gwyne to set down here and
|
|
listen tell I hears it agin.”
|
|
|
|
So he set down on the ground betwixt me and Tom. He leaned his back up
|
|
against a tree, and stretched his legs out till one of them most touched
|
|
one of mine. My nose begun to itch. It itched till the tears come into
|
|
my eyes. But I dasn't scratch. Then it begun to itch on the inside.
|
|
Next I got to itching underneath. I didn't know how I was going to set
|
|
still. This miserableness went on as much as six or seven minutes; but
|
|
it seemed a sight longer than that. I was itching in eleven different
|
|
places now. I reckoned I couldn't stand it more'n a minute longer,
|
|
but I set my teeth hard and got ready to try. Just then Jim begun
|
|
to breathe heavy; next he begun to snore--and then I was pretty soon
|
|
comfortable again.
|
|
|
|
Tom he made a sign to me--kind of a little noise with his mouth--and we
|
|
went creeping away on our hands and knees. When we was ten foot off Tom
|
|
whispered to me, and wanted to tie Jim to the tree for fun. But I said
|
|
no; he might wake and make a disturbance, and then they'd find out I
|
|
warn't in. Then Tom said he hadn't got candles enough, and he would slip
|
|
in the kitchen and get some more. I didn't want him to try. I said Jim
|
|
might wake up and come. But Tom wanted to resk it; so we slid in there
|
|
and got three candles, and Tom laid five cents on the table for pay.
|
|
Then we got out, and I was in a sweat to get away; but nothing would do
|
|
Tom but he must crawl to where Jim was, on his hands and knees, and play
|
|
something on him. I waited, and it seemed a good while, everything was
|
|
so still and lonesome.
|
|
|
|
As soon as Tom was back we cut along the path, around the garden fence,
|
|
and by and by fetched up on the steep top of the hill the other side of
|
|
the house. Tom said he slipped Jim's hat off of his head and hung it
|
|
on a limb right over him, and Jim stirred a little, but he didn't wake.
|
|
Afterwards Jim said the witches be witched him and put him in a trance,
|
|
and rode him all over the State, and then set him under the trees again,
|
|
and hung his hat on a limb to show who done it. And next time Jim told
|
|
it he said they rode him down to New Orleans; and, after that, every
|
|
time he told it he spread it more and more, till by and by he said they
|
|
rode him all over the world, and tired him most to death, and his back
|
|
was all over saddle-boils. Jim was monstrous proud about it, and he
|
|
got so he wouldn't hardly notice the other niggers. Niggers would come
|
|
miles to hear Jim tell about it, and he was more looked up to than any
|
|
nigger in that country. Strange niggers would stand with their mouths
|
|
open and look him all over, same as if he was a wonder. Niggers is
|
|
always talking about witches in the dark by the kitchen fire; but
|
|
whenever one was talking and letting on to know all about such things,
|
|
Jim would happen in and say, “Hm! What you know 'bout witches?” and
|
|
that nigger was corked up and had to take a back seat. Jim always kept
|
|
that five-center piece round his neck with a string, and said it was a
|
|
charm the devil give to him with his own hands, and told him he could
|
|
cure anybody with it and fetch witches whenever he wanted to just by
|
|
saying something to it; but he never told what it was he said to it.
|
|
Niggers would come from all around there and give Jim anything they
|
|
had, just for a sight of that five-center piece; but they wouldn't touch
|
|
it, because the devil had had his hands on it. Jim was most ruined for
|
|
a servant, because he got stuck up on account of having seen the devil
|
|
and been rode by witches.
|
|
|
|
Well, when Tom and me got to the edge of the hilltop we looked away down
|
|
into the village and could see three or four lights twinkling, where
|
|
there was sick folks, maybe; and the stars over us was sparkling ever
|
|
so fine; and down by the village was the river, a whole mile broad, and
|
|
awful still and grand. We went down the hill and found Jo Harper and
|
|
Ben Rogers, and two or three more of the boys, hid in the old tanyard.
|
|
So we unhitched a skiff and pulled down the river two mile and a half,
|
|
to the big scar on the hillside, and went ashore.
|
|
|
|
We went to a clump of bushes, and Tom made everybody swear to keep the
|
|
secret, and then showed them a hole in the hill, right in the thickest
|
|
part of the bushes. Then we lit the candles, and crawled in on our
|
|
hands and knees. We went about two hundred yards, and then the cave
|
|
opened up. Tom poked about amongst the passages, and pretty soon ducked
|
|
under a wall where you wouldn't a noticed that there was a hole. We
|
|
went along a narrow place and got into a kind of room, all damp and
|
|
sweaty and cold, and there we stopped. Tom says:
|
|
|
|
“Now, we'll start this band of robbers and call it Tom Sawyer's Gang.
|
|
Everybody that wants to join has got to take an oath, and write his name
|
|
in blood.”
|
|
|
|
Everybody was willing. So Tom got out a sheet of paper that he had
|
|
wrote the oath on, and read it. It swore every boy to stick to the
|
|
band, and never tell any of the secrets; and if anybody done anything to
|
|
any boy in the band, whichever boy was ordered to kill that person and
|
|
his family must do it, and he mustn't eat and he mustn't sleep till he
|
|
had killed them and hacked a cross in their breasts, which was the sign
|
|
of the band. And nobody that didn't belong to the band could use that
|
|
mark, and if he did he must be sued; and if he done it again he must be
|
|
killed. And if anybody that belonged to the band told the secrets, he
|
|
must have his throat cut, and then have his carcass burnt up and the
|
|
ashes scattered all around, and his name blotted off of the list with
|
|
blood and never mentioned again by the gang, but have a curse put on it
|
|
and be forgot forever.
|
|
|
|
Everybody said it was a real beautiful oath, and asked Tom if he got
|
|
it out of his own head. He said, some of it, but the rest was out of
|
|
pirate-books and robber-books, and every gang that was high-toned had
|
|
it.
|
|
|
|
Some thought it would be good to kill the _families_ of boys that told
|
|
the secrets. Tom said it was a good idea, so he took a pencil and wrote
|
|
it in. Then Ben Rogers says:
|
|
|
|
“Here's Huck Finn, he hain't got no family; what you going to do 'bout
|
|
him?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, hain't he got a father?” says Tom Sawyer.
|
|
|
|
“Yes, he's got a father, but you can't never find him these days. He
|
|
used to lay drunk with the hogs in the tanyard, but he hain't been seen
|
|
in these parts for a year or more.”
|
|
|
|
They talked it over, and they was going to rule me out, because they
|
|
said every boy must have a family or somebody to kill, or else it
|
|
wouldn't be fair and square for the others. Well, nobody could think of
|
|
anything to do--everybody was stumped, and set still. I was most ready
|
|
to cry; but all at once I thought of a way, and so I offered them Miss
|
|
Watson--they could kill her. Everybody said:
|
|
|
|
“Oh, she'll do. That's all right. Huck can come in.”
|
|
|
|
Then they all stuck a pin in their fingers to get blood to sign with,
|
|
and I made my mark on the paper.
|
|
|
|
“Now,” says Ben Rogers, “what's the line of business of this Gang?”
|
|
|
|
“Nothing only robbery and murder,” Tom said.
|
|
|
|
“But who are we going to rob?--houses, or cattle, or--”
|
|
|
|
“Stuff! stealing cattle and such things ain't robbery; it's burglary,”
|
|
says Tom Sawyer. “We ain't burglars. That ain't no sort of style. We
|
|
are highwaymen. We stop stages and carriages on the road, with masks
|
|
on, and kill the people and take their watches and money.”
|
|
|
|
“Must we always kill the people?”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, certainly. It's best. Some authorities think different, but
|
|
mostly it's considered best to kill them--except some that you bring to
|
|
the cave here, and keep them till they're ransomed.”
|
|
|
|
“Ransomed? What's that?”
|
|
|
|
“I don't know. But that's what they do. I've seen it in books; and so
|
|
of course that's what we've got to do.”
|
|
|
|
“But how can we do it if we don't know what it is?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, blame it all, we've _got_ to do it. Don't I tell you it's in the
|
|
books? Do you want to go to doing different from what's in the books,
|
|
and get things all muddled up?”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, that's all very fine to _say_, Tom Sawyer, but how in the nation
|
|
are these fellows going to be ransomed if we don't know how to do it
|
|
to them?--that's the thing I want to get at. Now, what do you reckon it
|
|
is?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, I don't know. But per'aps if we keep them till they're ransomed,
|
|
it means that we keep them till they're dead.”
|
|
|
|
“Now, that's something _like_. That'll answer. Why couldn't you said
|
|
that before? We'll keep them till they're ransomed to death; and a
|
|
bothersome lot they'll be, too--eating up everything, and always trying
|
|
to get loose.”
|
|
|
|
“How you talk, Ben Rogers. How can they get loose when there's a guard
|
|
over them, ready to shoot them down if they move a peg?”
|
|
|
|
“A guard! Well, that _is_ good. So somebody's got to set up all night
|
|
and never get any sleep, just so as to watch them. I think that's
|
|
foolishness. Why can't a body take a club and ransom them as soon as
|
|
they get here?”
|
|
|
|
“Because it ain't in the books so--that's why. Now, Ben Rogers, do you
|
|
want to do things regular, or don't you?--that's the idea. Don't you
|
|
reckon that the people that made the books knows what's the correct
|
|
thing to do? Do you reckon _you_ can learn 'em anything? Not by a good
|
|
deal. No, sir, we'll just go on and ransom them in the regular way.”
|
|
|
|
“All right. I don't mind; but I say it's a fool way, anyhow. Say, do
|
|
we kill the women, too?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, Ben Rogers, if I was as ignorant as you I wouldn't let on. Kill
|
|
the women? No; nobody ever saw anything in the books like that. You
|
|
fetch them to the cave, and you're always as polite as pie to them;
|
|
and by and by they fall in love with you, and never want to go home any
|
|
more.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, if that's the way I'm agreed, but I don't take no stock in it.
|
|
Mighty soon we'll have the cave so cluttered up with women, and fellows
|
|
waiting to be ransomed, that there won't be no place for the robbers.
|
|
But go ahead, I ain't got nothing to say.”
|
|
|
|
Little Tommy Barnes was asleep now, and when they waked him up he was
|
|
scared, and cried, and said he wanted to go home to his ma, and didn't
|
|
want to be a robber any more.
|
|
|
|
So they all made fun of him, and called him cry-baby, and that made him
|
|
mad, and he said he would go straight and tell all the secrets. But
|
|
Tom give him five cents to keep quiet, and said we would all go home and
|
|
meet next week, and rob somebody and kill some people.
|
|
|
|
Ben Rogers said he couldn't get out much, only Sundays, and so he wanted
|
|
to begin next Sunday; but all the boys said it would be wicked to do it
|
|
on Sunday, and that settled the thing. They agreed to get together and
|
|
fix a day as soon as they could, and then we elected Tom Sawyer first
|
|
captain and Jo Harper second captain of the Gang, and so started home.
|
|
|
|
I clumb up the shed and crept into my window just before day was
|
|
breaking. My new clothes was all greased up and clayey, and I was
|
|
dog-tired.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER III.
|
|
|
|
WELL, I got a good going-over in the morning from old Miss Watson on
|
|
account of my clothes; but the widow she didn't scold, but only cleaned
|
|
off the grease and clay, and looked so sorry that I thought I would
|
|
behave awhile if I could. Then Miss Watson she took me in the closet
|
|
and prayed, but nothing come of it. She told me to pray every day, and
|
|
whatever I asked for I would get it. But it warn't so. I tried it.
|
|
Once I got a fish-line, but no hooks. It warn't any good to me without
|
|
hooks. I tried for the hooks three or four times, but somehow I
|
|
couldn't make it work. By and by, one day, I asked Miss Watson to
|
|
try for me, but she said I was a fool. She never told me why, and I
|
|
couldn't make it out no way.
|
|
|
|
I set down one time back in the woods, and had a long think about it.
|
|
I says to myself, if a body can get anything they pray for, why don't
|
|
Deacon Winn get back the money he lost on pork? Why can't the widow get
|
|
back her silver snuffbox that was stole? Why can't Miss Watson fat up?
|
|
No, says I to my self, there ain't nothing in it. I went and told the
|
|
widow about it, and she said the thing a body could get by praying for
|
|
it was “spiritual gifts.” This was too many for me, but she told me
|
|
what she meant--I must help other people, and do everything I could for
|
|
other people, and look out for them all the time, and never think about
|
|
myself. This was including Miss Watson, as I took it. I went out in the
|
|
woods and turned it over in my mind a long time, but I couldn't see no
|
|
advantage about it--except for the other people; so at last I reckoned
|
|
I wouldn't worry about it any more, but just let it go. Sometimes the
|
|
widow would take me one side and talk about Providence in a way to make
|
|
a body's mouth water; but maybe next day Miss Watson would take hold
|
|
and knock it all down again. I judged I could see that there was two
|
|
Providences, and a poor chap would stand considerable show with the
|
|
widow's Providence, but if Miss Watson's got him there warn't no help
|
|
for him any more. I thought it all out, and reckoned I would belong
|
|
to the widow's if he wanted me, though I couldn't make out how he was
|
|
a-going to be any better off then than what he was before, seeing I was
|
|
so ignorant, and so kind of low-down and ornery.
|
|
|
|
Pap he hadn't been seen for more than a year, and that was comfortable
|
|
for me; I didn't want to see him no more. He used to always whale me
|
|
when he was sober and could get his hands on me; though I used to take
|
|
to the woods most of the time when he was around. Well, about this time
|
|
he was found in the river drownded, about twelve mile above town, so
|
|
people said. They judged it was him, anyway; said this drownded man was
|
|
just his size, and was ragged, and had uncommon long hair, which was all
|
|
like pap; but they couldn't make nothing out of the face, because it had
|
|
been in the water so long it warn't much like a face at all. They said
|
|
he was floating on his back in the water. They took him and buried him
|
|
on the bank. But I warn't comfortable long, because I happened to think
|
|
of something. I knowed mighty well that a drownded man don't float on
|
|
his back, but on his face. So I knowed, then, that this warn't pap, but
|
|
a woman dressed up in a man's clothes. So I was uncomfortable again.
|
|
I judged the old man would turn up again by and by, though I wished he
|
|
wouldn't.
|
|
|
|
We played robber now and then about a month, and then I resigned. All
|
|
the boys did. We hadn't robbed nobody, hadn't killed any people, but
|
|
only just pretended. We used to hop out of the woods and go charging
|
|
down on hog-drivers and women in carts taking garden stuff to market,
|
|
but we never hived any of them. Tom Sawyer called the hogs “ingots,”
|
|
and he called the turnips and stuff “julery,” and we would go to the
|
|
cave and powwow over what we had done, and how many people we had killed
|
|
and marked. But I couldn't see no profit in it. One time Tom sent a
|
|
boy to run about town with a blazing stick, which he called a slogan
|
|
(which was the sign for the Gang to get together), and then he said he
|
|
had got secret news by his spies that next day a whole parcel of Spanish
|
|
merchants and rich A-rabs was going to camp in Cave Hollow with two
|
|
hundred elephants, and six hundred camels, and over a thousand “sumter”
|
|
mules, all loaded down with di'monds, and they didn't have only a guard
|
|
of four hundred soldiers, and so we would lay in ambuscade, as he called
|
|
it, and kill the lot and scoop the things. He said we must slick up
|
|
our swords and guns, and get ready. He never could go after even a
|
|
turnip-cart but he must have the swords and guns all scoured up for it,
|
|
though they was only lath and broomsticks, and you might scour at them
|
|
till you rotted, and then they warn't worth a mouthful of ashes more
|
|
than what they was before. I didn't believe we could lick such a crowd
|
|
of Spaniards and A-rabs, but I wanted to see the camels and elephants,
|
|
so I was on hand next day, Saturday, in the ambuscade; and when we got
|
|
the word we rushed out of the woods and down the hill. But there warn't
|
|
no Spaniards and A-rabs, and there warn't no camels nor no elephants.
|
|
It warn't anything but a Sunday-school picnic, and only a primer-class
|
|
at that. We busted it up, and chased the children up the hollow; but we
|
|
never got anything but some doughnuts and jam, though Ben Rogers got
|
|
a rag doll, and Jo Harper got a hymn-book and a tract; and then the
|
|
teacher charged in, and made us drop everything and cut.
|
|
|
|
I didn't see no di'monds, and I told Tom Sawyer so. He said there was
|
|
loads of them there, anyway; and he said there was A-rabs there, too,
|
|
and elephants and things. I said, why couldn't we see them, then? He
|
|
said if I warn't so ignorant, but had read a book called Don Quixote, I
|
|
would know without asking. He said it was all done by enchantment. He
|
|
said there was hundreds of soldiers there, and elephants and treasure,
|
|
and so on, but we had enemies which he called magicians; and they had
|
|
turned the whole thing into an infant Sunday-school, just out of spite.
|
|
I said, all right; then the thing for us to do was to go for the
|
|
magicians. Tom Sawyer said I was a numskull.
|
|
|
|
“Why,” said he, “a magician could call up a lot of genies, and they
|
|
would hash you up like nothing before you could say Jack Robinson. They
|
|
are as tall as a tree and as big around as a church.”
|
|
|
|
“Well,” I says, “s'pose we got some genies to help _us_--can't we lick
|
|
the other crowd then?”
|
|
|
|
“How you going to get them?”
|
|
|
|
“I don't know. How do _they_ get them?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, they rub an old tin lamp or an iron ring, and then the genies
|
|
come tearing in, with the thunder and lightning a-ripping around and the
|
|
smoke a-rolling, and everything they're told to do they up and do it.
|
|
They don't think nothing of pulling a shot-tower up by the roots, and
|
|
belting a Sunday-school superintendent over the head with it--or any
|
|
other man.”
|
|
|
|
“Who makes them tear around so?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, whoever rubs the lamp or the ring. They belong to whoever rubs
|
|
the lamp or the ring, and they've got to do whatever he says. If he
|
|
tells them to build a palace forty miles long out of di'monds, and fill
|
|
it full of chewing-gum, or whatever you want, and fetch an emperor's
|
|
daughter from China for you to marry, they've got to do it--and they've
|
|
got to do it before sun-up next morning, too. And more: they've got
|
|
to waltz that palace around over the country wherever you want it, you
|
|
understand.”
|
|
|
|
“Well,” says I, “I think they are a pack of flat-heads for not keeping
|
|
the palace themselves 'stead of fooling them away like that. And what's
|
|
more--if I was one of them I would see a man in Jericho before I would
|
|
drop my business and come to him for the rubbing of an old tin lamp.”
|
|
|
|
“How you talk, Huck Finn. Why, you'd _have_ to come when he rubbed it,
|
|
whether you wanted to or not.”
|
|
|
|
“What! and I as high as a tree and as big as a church? All right, then;
|
|
I _would_ come; but I lay I'd make that man climb the highest tree there
|
|
was in the country.”
|
|
|
|
“Shucks, it ain't no use to talk to you, Huck Finn. You don't seem to
|
|
know anything, somehow--perfect saphead.”
|
|
|
|
I thought all this over for two or three days, and then I reckoned I
|
|
would see if there was anything in it. I got an old tin lamp and an
|
|
iron ring, and went out in the woods and rubbed and rubbed till I sweat
|
|
like an Injun, calculating to build a palace and sell it; but it warn't
|
|
no use, none of the genies come. So then I judged that all that stuff
|
|
was only just one of Tom Sawyer's lies. I reckoned he believed in the
|
|
A-rabs and the elephants, but as for me I think different. It had all
|
|
the marks of a Sunday-school.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IV.
|
|
|
|
WELL, three or four months run along, and it was well into the winter
|
|
now. I had been to school most all the time and could spell and read and
|
|
write just a little, and could say the multiplication table up to six
|
|
times seven is thirty-five, and I don't reckon I could ever get any
|
|
further than that if I was to live forever. I don't take no stock in
|
|
mathematics, anyway.
|
|
|
|
At first I hated the school, but by and by I got so I could stand it.
|
|
Whenever I got uncommon tired I played hookey, and the hiding I got next
|
|
day done me good and cheered me up. So the longer I went to school the
|
|
easier it got to be. I was getting sort of used to the widow's ways,
|
|
too, and they warn't so raspy on me. Living in a house and sleeping in
|
|
a bed pulled on me pretty tight mostly, but before the cold weather I
|
|
used to slide out and sleep in the woods sometimes, and so that was a
|
|
rest to me. I liked the old ways best, but I was getting so I liked the
|
|
new ones, too, a little bit. The widow said I was coming along slow but
|
|
sure, and doing very satisfactory. She said she warn't ashamed of me.
|
|
|
|
One morning I happened to turn over the salt-cellar at breakfast.
|
|
I reached for some of it as quick as I could to throw over my left
|
|
shoulder and keep off the bad luck, but Miss Watson was in ahead of me,
|
|
and crossed me off. She says, “Take your hands away, Huckleberry; what
|
|
a mess you are always making!” The widow put in a good word for me, but
|
|
that warn't going to keep off the bad luck, I knowed that well enough.
|
|
I started out, after breakfast, feeling worried and shaky, and
|
|
wondering where it was going to fall on me, and what it was going to be.
|
|
There is ways to keep off some kinds of bad luck, but this wasn't one
|
|
of them kind; so I never tried to do anything, but just poked along
|
|
low-spirited and on the watch-out.
|
|
|
|
I went down to the front garden and clumb over the stile where you go
|
|
through the high board fence. There was an inch of new snow on the
|
|
ground, and I seen somebody's tracks. They had come up from the quarry
|
|
and stood around the stile a while, and then went on around the garden
|
|
fence. It was funny they hadn't come in, after standing around so. I
|
|
couldn't make it out. It was very curious, somehow. I was going to
|
|
follow around, but I stooped down to look at the tracks first. I didn't
|
|
notice anything at first, but next I did. There was a cross in the left
|
|
boot-heel made with big nails, to keep off the devil.
|
|
|
|
I was up in a second and shinning down the hill. I looked over my
|
|
shoulder every now and then, but I didn't see nobody. I was at Judge
|
|
Thatcher's as quick as I could get there. He said:
|
|
|
|
“Why, my boy, you are all out of breath. Did you come for your
|
|
interest?”
|
|
|
|
“No, sir,” I says; “is there some for me?”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, yes, a half-yearly is in last night--over a hundred and fifty
|
|
dollars. Quite a fortune for you. You had better let me invest it
|
|
along with your six thousand, because if you take it you'll spend it.”
|
|
|
|
“No, sir,” I says, “I don't want to spend it. I don't want it at
|
|
all--nor the six thousand, nuther. I want you to take it; I want to give
|
|
it to you--the six thousand and all.”
|
|
|
|
He looked surprised. He couldn't seem to make it out. He says:
|
|
|
|
“Why, what can you mean, my boy?”
|
|
|
|
I says, “Don't you ask me no questions about it, please. You'll take
|
|
it--won't you?”
|
|
|
|
He says:
|
|
|
|
“Well, I'm puzzled. Is something the matter?”
|
|
|
|
“Please take it,” says I, “and don't ask me nothing--then I won't have to
|
|
tell no lies.”
|
|
|
|
He studied a while, and then he says:
|
|
|
|
“Oho-o! I think I see. You want to _sell_ all your property to me--not
|
|
give it. That's the correct idea.”
|
|
|
|
Then he wrote something on a paper and read it over, and says:
|
|
|
|
“There; you see it says 'for a consideration.' That means I have bought
|
|
it of you and paid you for it. Here's a dollar for you. Now you sign
|
|
it.”
|
|
|
|
So I signed it, and left.
|
|
|
|
Miss Watson's nigger, Jim, had a hair-ball as big as your fist, which
|
|
had been took out of the fourth stomach of an ox, and he used to do
|
|
magic with it. He said there was a spirit inside of it, and it knowed
|
|
everything. So I went to him that night and told him pap was here
|
|
again, for I found his tracks in the snow. What I wanted to know was,
|
|
what he was going to do, and was he going to stay? Jim got out his
|
|
hair-ball and said something over it, and then he held it up and dropped
|
|
it on the floor. It fell pretty solid, and only rolled about an inch.
|
|
Jim tried it again, and then another time, and it acted just the same.
|
|
Jim got down on his knees, and put his ear against it and listened.
|
|
But it warn't no use; he said it wouldn't talk. He said sometimes it
|
|
wouldn't talk without money. I told him I had an old slick counterfeit
|
|
quarter that warn't no good because the brass showed through the silver
|
|
a little, and it wouldn't pass nohow, even if the brass didn't show,
|
|
because it was so slick it felt greasy, and so that would tell on it
|
|
every time. (I reckoned I wouldn't say nothing about the dollar I got
|
|
from the judge.) I said it was pretty bad money, but maybe the hair-ball
|
|
would take it, because maybe it wouldn't know the difference. Jim smelt
|
|
it and bit it and rubbed it, and said he would manage so the hair-ball
|
|
would think it was good. He said he would split open a raw Irish potato
|
|
and stick the quarter in between and keep it there all night, and next
|
|
morning you couldn't see no brass, and it wouldn't feel greasy no more,
|
|
and so anybody in town would take it in a minute, let alone a hair-ball.
|
|
Well, I knowed a potato would do that before, but I had forgot it.
|
|
|
|
Jim put the quarter under the hair-ball, and got down and listened
|
|
again. This time he said the hair-ball was all right. He said it
|
|
would tell my whole fortune if I wanted it to. I says, go on. So the
|
|
hair-ball talked to Jim, and Jim told it to me. He says:
|
|
|
|
“Yo' ole father doan' know yit what he's a-gwyne to do. Sometimes he
|
|
spec he'll go 'way, en den agin he spec he'll stay. De bes' way is to
|
|
res' easy en let de ole man take his own way. Dey's two angels hoverin'
|
|
roun' 'bout him. One uv 'em is white en shiny, en t'other one is black.
|
|
De white one gits him to go right a little while, den de black one sail
|
|
in en bust it all up. A body can't tell yit which one gwyne to fetch
|
|
him at de las'. But you is all right. You gwyne to have considable
|
|
trouble in yo' life, en considable joy. Sometimes you gwyne to git
|
|
hurt, en sometimes you gwyne to git sick; but every time you's gwyne
|
|
to git well agin. Dey's two gals flyin' 'bout you in yo' life. One
|
|
uv 'em's light en t'other one is dark. One is rich en t'other is po'.
|
|
You's gwyne to marry de po' one fust en de rich one by en by. You
|
|
wants to keep 'way fum de water as much as you kin, en don't run no
|
|
resk, 'kase it's down in de bills dat you's gwyne to git hung.”
|
|
|
|
When I lit my candle and went up to my room that night there sat pap his
|
|
own self!
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER V.
|
|
|
|
I had shut the door to. Then I turned around and there he was. I used
|
|
to be scared of him all the time, he tanned me so much. I reckoned I
|
|
was scared now, too; but in a minute I see I was mistaken--that is, after
|
|
the first jolt, as you may say, when my breath sort of hitched, he being
|
|
so unexpected; but right away after I see I warn't scared of him worth
|
|
bothring about.
|
|
|
|
He was most fifty, and he looked it. His hair was long and tangled and
|
|
greasy, and hung down, and you could see his eyes shining through
|
|
like he was behind vines. It was all black, no gray; so was his long,
|
|
mixed-up whiskers. There warn't no color in his face, where his face
|
|
showed; it was white; not like another man's white, but a white to make
|
|
a body sick, a white to make a body's flesh crawl--a tree-toad white, a
|
|
fish-belly white. As for his clothes--just rags, that was all. He had
|
|
one ankle resting on t'other knee; the boot on that foot was busted, and
|
|
two of his toes stuck through, and he worked them now and then. His hat
|
|
was laying on the floor--an old black slouch with the top caved in, like
|
|
a lid.
|
|
|
|
I stood a-looking at him; he set there a-looking at me, with his chair
|
|
tilted back a little. I set the candle down. I noticed the window was
|
|
up; so he had clumb in by the shed. He kept a-looking me all over. By
|
|
and by he says:
|
|
|
|
“Starchy clothes--very. You think you're a good deal of a big-bug,
|
|
_don't_ you?”
|
|
|
|
“Maybe I am, maybe I ain't,” I says.
|
|
|
|
“Don't you give me none o' your lip,” says he. “You've put on
|
|
considerable many frills since I been away. I'll take you down a peg
|
|
before I get done with you. You're educated, too, they say--can read and
|
|
write. You think you're better'n your father, now, don't you, because
|
|
he can't? _I'll_ take it out of you. Who told you you might meddle
|
|
with such hifalut'n foolishness, hey?--who told you you could?”
|
|
|
|
“The widow. She told me.”
|
|
|
|
“The widow, hey?--and who told the widow she could put in her shovel
|
|
about a thing that ain't none of her business?”
|
|
|
|
“Nobody never told her.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, I'll learn her how to meddle. And looky here--you drop that
|
|
school, you hear? I'll learn people to bring up a boy to put on airs
|
|
over his own father and let on to be better'n what _he_ is. You lemme
|
|
catch you fooling around that school again, you hear? Your mother
|
|
couldn't read, and she couldn't write, nuther, before she died. None
|
|
of the family couldn't before _they_ died. I can't; and here you're
|
|
a-swelling yourself up like this. I ain't the man to stand it--you hear?
|
|
Say, lemme hear you read.”
|
|
|
|
I took up a book and begun something about General Washington and the
|
|
wars. When I'd read about a half a minute, he fetched the book a whack
|
|
with his hand and knocked it across the house. He says:
|
|
|
|
“It's so. You can do it. I had my doubts when you told me. Now looky
|
|
here; you stop that putting on frills. I won't have it. I'll lay for
|
|
you, my smarty; and if I catch you about that school I'll tan you good.
|
|
First you know you'll get religion, too. I never see such a son.”
|
|
|
|
He took up a little blue and yaller picture of some cows and a boy, and
|
|
says:
|
|
|
|
“What's this?”
|
|
|
|
“It's something they give me for learning my lessons good.”
|
|
|
|
He tore it up, and says:
|
|
|
|
“I'll give you something better--I'll give you a cowhide.”
|
|
|
|
He set there a-mumbling and a-growling a minute, and then he says:
|
|
|
|
“_Ain't_ you a sweet-scented dandy, though? A bed; and bedclothes; and
|
|
a look'n'-glass; and a piece of carpet on the floor--and your own father
|
|
got to sleep with the hogs in the tanyard. I never see such a son. I
|
|
bet I'll take some o' these frills out o' you before I'm done with you.
|
|
Why, there ain't no end to your airs--they say you're rich. Hey?--how's
|
|
that?”
|
|
|
|
“They lie--that's how.”
|
|
|
|
“Looky here--mind how you talk to me; I'm a-standing about all I can
|
|
stand now--so don't gimme no sass. I've been in town two days, and I
|
|
hain't heard nothing but about you bein' rich. I heard about it
|
|
away down the river, too. That's why I come. You git me that money
|
|
to-morrow--I want it.”
|
|
|
|
“I hain't got no money.”
|
|
|
|
“It's a lie. Judge Thatcher's got it. You git it. I want it.”
|
|
|
|
“I hain't got no money, I tell you. You ask Judge Thatcher; he'll tell
|
|
you the same.”
|
|
|
|
“All right. I'll ask him; and I'll make him pungle, too, or I'll know
|
|
the reason why. Say, how much you got in your pocket? I want it.”
|
|
|
|
“I hain't got only a dollar, and I want that to--”
|
|
|
|
“It don't make no difference what you want it for--you just shell it
|
|
out.”
|
|
|
|
He took it and bit it to see if it was good, and then he said he was
|
|
going down town to get some whisky; said he hadn't had a drink all day.
|
|
When he had got out on the shed he put his head in again, and cussed
|
|
me for putting on frills and trying to be better than him; and when I
|
|
reckoned he was gone he come back and put his head in again, and told me
|
|
to mind about that school, because he was going to lay for me and lick
|
|
me if I didn't drop that.
|
|
|
|
Next day he was drunk, and he went to Judge Thatcher's and bullyragged
|
|
him, and tried to make him give up the money; but he couldn't, and then
|
|
he swore he'd make the law force him.
|
|
|
|
The judge and the widow went to law to get the court to take me away
|
|
from him and let one of them be my guardian; but it was a new judge that
|
|
had just come, and he didn't know the old man; so he said courts mustn't
|
|
interfere and separate families if they could help it; said he'd druther
|
|
not take a child away from its father. So Judge Thatcher and the widow
|
|
had to quit on the business.
|
|
|
|
That pleased the old man till he couldn't rest. He said he'd cowhide
|
|
me till I was black and blue if I didn't raise some money for him. I
|
|
borrowed three dollars from Judge Thatcher, and pap took it and got
|
|
drunk, and went a-blowing around and cussing and whooping and carrying
|
|
on; and he kept it up all over town, with a tin pan, till most midnight;
|
|
then they jailed him, and next day they had him before court, and jailed
|
|
him again for a week. But he said _he_ was satisfied; said he was boss
|
|
of his son, and he'd make it warm for _him_.
|
|
|
|
When he got out the new judge said he was a-going to make a man of him.
|
|
So he took him to his own house, and dressed him up clean and nice, and
|
|
had him to breakfast and dinner and supper with the family, and was just
|
|
old pie to him, so to speak. And after supper he talked to him about
|
|
temperance and such things till the old man cried, and said he'd been
|
|
a fool, and fooled away his life; but now he was a-going to turn over
|
|
a new leaf and be a man nobody wouldn't be ashamed of, and he hoped the
|
|
judge would help him and not look down on him. The judge said he could
|
|
hug him for them words; so he cried, and his wife she cried again; pap
|
|
said he'd been a man that had always been misunderstood before, and the
|
|
judge said he believed it. The old man said that what a man wanted
|
|
that was down was sympathy, and the judge said it was so; so they cried
|
|
again. And when it was bedtime the old man rose up and held out his
|
|
hand, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Look at it, gentlemen and ladies all; take a-hold of it; shake it.
|
|
There's a hand that was the hand of a hog; but it ain't so no more; it's
|
|
the hand of a man that's started in on a new life, and'll die before
|
|
he'll go back. You mark them words--don't forget I said them. It's a
|
|
clean hand now; shake it--don't be afeard.”
|
|
|
|
So they shook it, one after the other, all around, and cried. The
|
|
judge's wife she kissed it. Then the old man he signed a pledge--made
|
|
his mark. The judge said it was the holiest time on record, or something
|
|
like that. Then they tucked the old man into a beautiful room, which was
|
|
the spare room, and in the night some time he got powerful thirsty and
|
|
clumb out on to the porch-roof and slid down a stanchion and traded his
|
|
new coat for a jug of forty-rod, and clumb back again and had a good old
|
|
time; and towards daylight he crawled out again, drunk as a fiddler, and
|
|
rolled off the porch and broke his left arm in two places, and was most
|
|
froze to death when somebody found him after sun-up. And when they come
|
|
to look at that spare room they had to take soundings before they could
|
|
navigate it.
|
|
|
|
The judge he felt kind of sore. He said he reckoned a body could reform
|
|
the old man with a shotgun, maybe, but he didn't know no other way.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VI.
|
|
|
|
WELL, pretty soon the old man was up and around again, and then he went
|
|
for Judge Thatcher in the courts to make him give up that money, and he
|
|
went for me, too, for not stopping school. He catched me a couple of
|
|
times and thrashed me, but I went to school just the same, and dodged
|
|
him or outrun him most of the time. I didn't want to go to school much
|
|
before, but I reckoned I'd go now to spite pap. That law trial was a
|
|
slow business--appeared like they warn't ever going to get started on it;
|
|
so every now and then I'd borrow two or three dollars off of the judge
|
|
for him, to keep from getting a cowhiding. Every time he got money he
|
|
got drunk; and every time he got drunk he raised Cain around town; and
|
|
every time he raised Cain he got jailed. He was just suited--this kind
|
|
of thing was right in his line.
|
|
|
|
He got to hanging around the widow's too much and so she told him at
|
|
last that if he didn't quit using around there she would make trouble
|
|
for him. Well, _wasn't_ he mad? He said he would show who was Huck
|
|
Finn's boss. So he watched out for me one day in the spring, and
|
|
catched me, and took me up the river about three mile in a skiff, and
|
|
crossed over to the Illinois shore where it was woody and there warn't
|
|
no houses but an old log hut in a place where the timber was so thick
|
|
you couldn't find it if you didn't know where it was.
|
|
|
|
He kept me with him all the time, and I never got a chance to run off.
|
|
We lived in that old cabin, and he always locked the door and put the
|
|
key under his head nights. He had a gun which he had stole, I reckon,
|
|
and we fished and hunted, and that was what we lived on. Every little
|
|
while he locked me in and went down to the store, three miles, to the
|
|
ferry, and traded fish and game for whisky, and fetched it home and got
|
|
drunk and had a good time, and licked me. The widow she found out where
|
|
I was by and by, and she sent a man over to try to get hold of me; but
|
|
pap drove him off with the gun, and it warn't long after that till I was
|
|
used to being where I was, and liked it--all but the cowhide part.
|
|
|
|
It was kind of lazy and jolly, laying off comfortable all day, smoking
|
|
and fishing, and no books nor study. Two months or more run along, and
|
|
my clothes got to be all rags and dirt, and I didn't see how I'd ever
|
|
got to like it so well at the widow's, where you had to wash, and eat on
|
|
a plate, and comb up, and go to bed and get up regular, and be forever
|
|
bothering over a book, and have old Miss Watson pecking at you all the
|
|
time. I didn't want to go back no more. I had stopped cussing, because
|
|
the widow didn't like it; but now I took to it again because pap hadn't
|
|
no objections. It was pretty good times up in the woods there, take it
|
|
all around.
|
|
|
|
But by and by pap got too handy with his hick'ry, and I couldn't stand
|
|
it. I was all over welts. He got to going away so much, too, and
|
|
locking me in. Once he locked me in and was gone three days. It was
|
|
dreadful lonesome. I judged he had got drownded, and I wasn't ever
|
|
going to get out any more. I was scared. I made up my mind I would fix
|
|
up some way to leave there. I had tried to get out of that cabin many
|
|
a time, but I couldn't find no way. There warn't a window to it big
|
|
enough for a dog to get through. I couldn't get up the chimbly; it
|
|
was too narrow. The door was thick, solid oak slabs. Pap was pretty
|
|
careful not to leave a knife or anything in the cabin when he was away;
|
|
I reckon I had hunted the place over as much as a hundred times; well, I
|
|
was most all the time at it, because it was about the only way to put in
|
|
the time. But this time I found something at last; I found an old rusty
|
|
wood-saw without any handle; it was laid in between a rafter and the
|
|
clapboards of the roof. I greased it up and went to work. There was an
|
|
old horse-blanket nailed against the logs at the far end of the cabin
|
|
behind the table, to keep the wind from blowing through the chinks and
|
|
putting the candle out. I got under the table and raised the blanket,
|
|
and went to work to saw a section of the big bottom log out--big enough
|
|
to let me through. Well, it was a good long job, but I was getting
|
|
towards the end of it when I heard pap's gun in the woods. I got rid of
|
|
the signs of my work, and dropped the blanket and hid my saw, and pretty
|
|
soon pap come in.
|
|
|
|
Pap warn't in a good humor--so he was his natural self. He said he was
|
|
down town, and everything was going wrong. His lawyer said he reckoned
|
|
he would win his lawsuit and get the money if they ever got started on
|
|
the trial; but then there was ways to put it off a long time, and Judge
|
|
Thatcher knowed how to do it. And he said people allowed there'd be
|
|
another trial to get me away from him and give me to the widow for my
|
|
guardian, and they guessed it would win this time. This shook me up
|
|
considerable, because I didn't want to go back to the widow's any more
|
|
and be so cramped up and sivilized, as they called it. Then the old man
|
|
got to cussing, and cussed everything and everybody he could think of,
|
|
and then cussed them all over again to make sure he hadn't skipped any,
|
|
and after that he polished off with a kind of a general cuss all round,
|
|
including a considerable parcel of people which he didn't know the names
|
|
of, and so called them what's-his-name when he got to them, and went
|
|
right along with his cussing.
|
|
|
|
He said he would like to see the widow get me. He said he would watch
|
|
out, and if they tried to come any such game on him he knowed of a place
|
|
six or seven mile off to stow me in, where they might hunt till they
|
|
dropped and they couldn't find me. That made me pretty uneasy again,
|
|
but only for a minute; I reckoned I wouldn't stay on hand till he got
|
|
that chance.
|
|
|
|
The old man made me go to the skiff and fetch the things he had
|
|
got. There was a fifty-pound sack of corn meal, and a side of bacon,
|
|
ammunition, and a four-gallon jug of whisky, and an old book and two
|
|
newspapers for wadding, besides some tow. I toted up a load, and went
|
|
back and set down on the bow of the skiff to rest. I thought it all
|
|
over, and I reckoned I would walk off with the gun and some lines, and
|
|
take to the woods when I run away. I guessed I wouldn't stay in one
|
|
place, but just tramp right across the country, mostly night times, and
|
|
hunt and fish to keep alive, and so get so far away that the old man nor
|
|
the widow couldn't ever find me any more. I judged I would saw out and
|
|
leave that night if pap got drunk enough, and I reckoned he would. I
|
|
got so full of it I didn't notice how long I was staying till the old
|
|
man hollered and asked me whether I was asleep or drownded.
|
|
|
|
I got the things all up to the cabin, and then it was about dark. While
|
|
I was cooking supper the old man took a swig or two and got sort of
|
|
warmed up, and went to ripping again. He had been drunk over in town,
|
|
and laid in the gutter all night, and he was a sight to look at. A body
|
|
would a thought he was Adam--he was just all mud. Whenever his liquor
|
|
begun to work he most always went for the govment, this time he says:
|
|
|
|
“Call this a govment! why, just look at it and see what it's like.
|
|
Here's the law a-standing ready to take a man's son away from him--a
|
|
man's own son, which he has had all the trouble and all the anxiety
|
|
and all the expense of raising. Yes, just as that man has got that
|
|
son raised at last, and ready to go to work and begin to do suthin' for
|
|
_him_ and give him a rest, the law up and goes for him. And they call
|
|
_that_ govment! That ain't all, nuther. The law backs that old Judge
|
|
Thatcher up and helps him to keep me out o' my property. Here's what
|
|
the law does: The law takes a man worth six thousand dollars and
|
|
up'ards, and jams him into an old trap of a cabin like this, and lets
|
|
him go round in clothes that ain't fitten for a hog. They call that
|
|
govment! A man can't get his rights in a govment like this. Sometimes
|
|
I've a mighty notion to just leave the country for good and all. Yes,
|
|
and I _told_ 'em so; I told old Thatcher so to his face. Lots of 'em
|
|
heard me, and can tell what I said. Says I, for two cents I'd leave the
|
|
blamed country and never come a-near it agin. Them's the very words. I
|
|
says look at my hat--if you call it a hat--but the lid raises up and the
|
|
rest of it goes down till it's below my chin, and then it ain't rightly
|
|
a hat at all, but more like my head was shoved up through a jint o'
|
|
stove-pipe. Look at it, says I--such a hat for me to wear--one of the
|
|
wealthiest men in this town if I could git my rights.
|
|
|
|
“Oh, yes, this is a wonderful govment, wonderful. Why, looky here.
|
|
There was a free nigger there from Ohio--a mulatter, most as white as
|
|
a white man. He had the whitest shirt on you ever see, too, and the
|
|
shiniest hat; and there ain't a man in that town that's got as fine
|
|
clothes as what he had; and he had a gold watch and chain, and a
|
|
silver-headed cane--the awfulest old gray-headed nabob in the State. And
|
|
what do you think? They said he was a p'fessor in a college, and could
|
|
talk all kinds of languages, and knowed everything. And that ain't the
|
|
wust. They said he could _vote_ when he was at home. Well, that let me
|
|
out. Thinks I, what is the country a-coming to? It was 'lection day,
|
|
and I was just about to go and vote myself if I warn't too drunk to get
|
|
there; but when they told me there was a State in this country where
|
|
they'd let that nigger vote, I drawed out. I says I'll never vote agin.
|
|
Them's the very words I said; they all heard me; and the country may
|
|
rot for all me--I'll never vote agin as long as I live. And to see the
|
|
cool way of that nigger--why, he wouldn't a give me the road if I hadn't
|
|
shoved him out o' the way. I says to the people, why ain't this nigger
|
|
put up at auction and sold?--that's what I want to know. And what do you
|
|
reckon they said? Why, they said he couldn't be sold till he'd been in
|
|
the State six months, and he hadn't been there that long yet. There,
|
|
now--that's a specimen. They call that a govment that can't sell a free
|
|
nigger till he's been in the State six months. Here's a govment that
|
|
calls itself a govment, and lets on to be a govment, and thinks it is a
|
|
govment, and yet's got to set stock-still for six whole months before
|
|
it can take a hold of a prowling, thieving, infernal, white-shirted free
|
|
nigger, and--”
|
|
|
|
Pap was agoing on so he never noticed where his old limber legs was
|
|
taking him to, so he went head over heels over the tub of salt pork and
|
|
barked both shins, and the rest of his speech was all the hottest kind
|
|
of language--mostly hove at the nigger and the govment, though he give
|
|
the tub some, too, all along, here and there. He hopped around the
|
|
cabin considerable, first on one leg and then on the other, holding
|
|
first one shin and then the other one, and at last he let out with his
|
|
left foot all of a sudden and fetched the tub a rattling kick. But it
|
|
warn't good judgment, because that was the boot that had a couple of his
|
|
toes leaking out of the front end of it; so now he raised a howl that
|
|
fairly made a body's hair raise, and down he went in the dirt, and
|
|
rolled there, and held his toes; and the cussing he done then laid over
|
|
anything he had ever done previous. He said so his own self afterwards.
|
|
He had heard old Sowberry Hagan in his best days, and he said it laid
|
|
over him, too; but I reckon that was sort of piling it on, maybe.
|
|
|
|
After supper pap took the jug, and said he had enough whisky there
|
|
for two drunks and one delirium tremens. That was always his word. I
|
|
judged he would be blind drunk in about an hour, and then I would steal
|
|
the key, or saw myself out, one or t'other. He drank and drank, and
|
|
tumbled down on his blankets by and by; but luck didn't run my way.
|
|
He didn't go sound asleep, but was uneasy. He groaned and moaned and
|
|
thrashed around this way and that for a long time. At last I got so
|
|
sleepy I couldn't keep my eyes open all I could do, and so before I
|
|
knowed what I was about I was sound asleep, and the candle burning.
|
|
|
|
I don't know how long I was asleep, but all of a sudden there was an
|
|
awful scream and I was up. There was pap looking wild, and skipping
|
|
around every which way and yelling about snakes. He said they was
|
|
crawling up his legs; and then he would give a jump and scream, and say
|
|
one had bit him on the cheek--but I couldn't see no snakes. He started
|
|
and run round and round the cabin, hollering “Take him off! take him
|
|
off! he's biting me on the neck!” I never see a man look so wild in the
|
|
eyes. Pretty soon he was all fagged out, and fell down panting; then he
|
|
rolled over and over wonderful fast, kicking things every which way,
|
|
and striking and grabbing at the air with his hands, and screaming and
|
|
saying there was devils a-hold of him. He wore out by and by, and laid
|
|
still a while, moaning. Then he laid stiller, and didn't make a sound.
|
|
I could hear the owls and the wolves away off in the woods, and it
|
|
seemed terrible still. He was laying over by the corner. By and by he
|
|
raised up part way and listened, with his head to one side. He says,
|
|
very low:
|
|
|
|
“Tramp--tramp--tramp; that's the dead; tramp--tramp--tramp; they're coming
|
|
after me; but I won't go. Oh, they're here! don't touch me--don't! hands
|
|
off--they're cold; let go. Oh, let a poor devil alone!”
|
|
|
|
Then he went down on all fours and crawled off, begging them to let him
|
|
alone, and he rolled himself up in his blanket and wallowed in under the
|
|
old pine table, still a-begging; and then he went to crying. I could
|
|
hear him through the blanket.
|
|
|
|
By and by he rolled out and jumped up on his feet looking wild, and he
|
|
see me and went for me. He chased me round and round the place with a
|
|
clasp-knife, calling me the Angel of Death, and saying he would kill me,
|
|
and then I couldn't come for him no more. I begged, and told him I
|
|
was only Huck; but he laughed _such_ a screechy laugh, and roared and
|
|
cussed, and kept on chasing me up. Once when I turned short and
|
|
dodged under his arm he made a grab and got me by the jacket between my
|
|
shoulders, and I thought I was gone; but I slid out of the jacket quick
|
|
as lightning, and saved myself. Pretty soon he was all tired out, and
|
|
dropped down with his back against the door, and said he would rest a
|
|
minute and then kill me. He put his knife under him, and said he would
|
|
sleep and get strong, and then he would see who was who.
|
|
|
|
So he dozed off pretty soon. By and by I got the old split-bottom chair
|
|
and clumb up as easy as I could, not to make any noise, and got down the
|
|
gun. I slipped the ramrod down it to make sure it was loaded, then I
|
|
laid it across the turnip barrel, pointing towards pap, and set down
|
|
behind it to wait for him to stir. And how slow and still the time did
|
|
drag along.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VII.
|
|
|
|
“GIT up! What you 'bout?”
|
|
|
|
I opened my eyes and looked around, trying to make out where I was. It
|
|
was after sun-up, and I had been sound asleep. Pap was standing over me
|
|
looking sour and sick, too. He says:
|
|
|
|
“What you doin' with this gun?”
|
|
|
|
I judged he didn't know nothing about what he had been doing, so I says:
|
|
|
|
“Somebody tried to get in, so I was laying for him.”
|
|
|
|
“Why didn't you roust me out?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, I tried to, but I couldn't; I couldn't budge you.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, all right. Don't stand there palavering all day, but out with
|
|
you and see if there's a fish on the lines for breakfast. I'll be along
|
|
in a minute.”
|
|
|
|
He unlocked the door, and I cleared out up the river-bank. I noticed
|
|
some pieces of limbs and such things floating down, and a sprinkling of
|
|
bark; so I knowed the river had begun to rise. I reckoned I would have
|
|
great times now if I was over at the town. The June rise used to be
|
|
always luck for me; because as soon as that rise begins here comes
|
|
cordwood floating down, and pieces of log rafts--sometimes a dozen logs
|
|
together; so all you have to do is to catch them and sell them to the
|
|
wood-yards and the sawmill.
|
|
|
|
I went along up the bank with one eye out for pap and t'other one out
|
|
for what the rise might fetch along. Well, all at once here comes a
|
|
canoe; just a beauty, too, about thirteen or fourteen foot long, riding
|
|
high like a duck. I shot head-first off of the bank like a frog,
|
|
clothes and all on, and struck out for the canoe. I just expected
|
|
there'd be somebody laying down in it, because people often done that
|
|
to fool folks, and when a chap had pulled a skiff out most to it they'd
|
|
raise up and laugh at him. But it warn't so this time. It was a
|
|
drift-canoe sure enough, and I clumb in and paddled her ashore. Thinks
|
|
I, the old man will be glad when he sees this--she's worth ten dollars.
|
|
But when I got to shore pap wasn't in sight yet, and as I was running
|
|
her into a little creek like a gully, all hung over with vines and
|
|
willows, I struck another idea: I judged I'd hide her good, and then,
|
|
'stead of taking to the woods when I run off, I'd go down the river
|
|
about fifty mile and camp in one place for good, and not have such a
|
|
rough time tramping on foot.
|
|
|
|
It was pretty close to the shanty, and I thought I heard the old man
|
|
coming all the time; but I got her hid; and then I out and looked around
|
|
a bunch of willows, and there was the old man down the path a piece just
|
|
drawing a bead on a bird with his gun. So he hadn't seen anything.
|
|
|
|
When he got along I was hard at it taking up a “trot” line. He abused
|
|
me a little for being so slow; but I told him I fell in the river, and
|
|
that was what made me so long. I knowed he would see I was wet, and
|
|
then he would be asking questions. We got five catfish off the lines
|
|
and went home.
|
|
|
|
While we laid off after breakfast to sleep up, both of us being about
|
|
wore out, I got to thinking that if I could fix up some way to keep pap
|
|
and the widow from trying to follow me, it would be a certainer thing
|
|
than trusting to luck to get far enough off before they missed me; you
|
|
see, all kinds of things might happen. Well, I didn't see no way for a
|
|
while, but by and by pap raised up a minute to drink another barrel of
|
|
water, and he says:
|
|
|
|
“Another time a man comes a-prowling round here you roust me out, you
|
|
hear? That man warn't here for no good. I'd a shot him. Next time you
|
|
roust me out, you hear?”
|
|
|
|
Then he dropped down and went to sleep again; but what he had been
|
|
saying give me the very idea I wanted. I says to myself, I can fix it
|
|
now so nobody won't think of following me.
|
|
|
|
About twelve o'clock we turned out and went along up the bank. The
|
|
river was coming up pretty fast, and lots of driftwood going by on the
|
|
rise. By and by along comes part of a log raft--nine logs fast together.
|
|
We went out with the skiff and towed it ashore. Then we had dinner.
|
|
Anybody but pap would a waited and seen the day through, so as to catch
|
|
more stuff; but that warn't pap's style. Nine logs was enough for one
|
|
time; he must shove right over to town and sell. So he locked me in and
|
|
took the skiff, and started off towing the raft about half-past three.
|
|
I judged he wouldn't come back that night. I waited till I reckoned he
|
|
had got a good start; then I out with my saw, and went to work on that
|
|
log again. Before he was t'other side of the river I was out of the
|
|
hole; him and his raft was just a speck on the water away off yonder.
|
|
|
|
I took the sack of corn meal and took it to where the canoe was hid, and
|
|
shoved the vines and branches apart and put it in; then I done the same
|
|
with the side of bacon; then the whisky-jug. I took all the coffee and
|
|
sugar there was, and all the ammunition; I took the wadding; I took the
|
|
bucket and gourd; I took a dipper and a tin cup, and my old saw and two
|
|
blankets, and the skillet and the coffee-pot. I took fish-lines and
|
|
matches and other things--everything that was worth a cent. I cleaned
|
|
out the place. I wanted an axe, but there wasn't any, only the one out
|
|
at the woodpile, and I knowed why I was going to leave that. I fetched
|
|
out the gun, and now I was done.
|
|
|
|
I had wore the ground a good deal crawling out of the hole and dragging
|
|
out so many things. So I fixed that as good as I could from the outside
|
|
by scattering dust on the place, which covered up the smoothness and the
|
|
sawdust. Then I fixed the piece of log back into its place, and put two
|
|
rocks under it and one against it to hold it there, for it was bent up
|
|
at that place and didn't quite touch ground. If you stood four or five
|
|
foot away and didn't know it was sawed, you wouldn't never notice
|
|
it; and besides, this was the back of the cabin, and it warn't likely
|
|
anybody would go fooling around there.
|
|
|
|
It was all grass clear to the canoe, so I hadn't left a track. I
|
|
followed around to see. I stood on the bank and looked out over the
|
|
river. All safe. So I took the gun and went up a piece into the woods,
|
|
and was hunting around for some birds when I see a wild pig; hogs soon
|
|
went wild in them bottoms after they had got away from the prairie
|
|
farms. I shot this fellow and took him into camp.
|
|
|
|
I took the axe and smashed in the door. I beat it and hacked it
|
|
considerable a-doing it. I fetched the pig in, and took him back nearly
|
|
to the table and hacked into his throat with the axe, and laid him down
|
|
on the ground to bleed; I say ground because it was ground--hard packed,
|
|
and no boards. Well, next I took an old sack and put a lot of big rocks
|
|
in it--all I could drag--and I started it from the pig, and dragged it to
|
|
the door and through the woods down to the river and dumped it in, and
|
|
down it sunk, out of sight. You could easy see that something had been
|
|
dragged over the ground. I did wish Tom Sawyer was there; I knowed he
|
|
would take an interest in this kind of business, and throw in the fancy
|
|
touches. Nobody could spread himself like Tom Sawyer in such a thing as
|
|
that.
|
|
|
|
Well, last I pulled out some of my hair, and blooded the axe good, and
|
|
stuck it on the back side, and slung the axe in the corner. Then I
|
|
took up the pig and held him to my breast with my jacket (so he couldn't
|
|
drip) till I got a good piece below the house and then dumped him into
|
|
the river. Now I thought of something else. So I went and got the bag
|
|
of meal and my old saw out of the canoe, and fetched them to the house.
|
|
I took the bag to where it used to stand, and ripped a hole in the
|
|
bottom of it with the saw, for there warn't no knives and forks on the
|
|
place--pap done everything with his clasp-knife about the cooking. Then
|
|
I carried the sack about a hundred yards across the grass and through
|
|
the willows east of the house, to a shallow lake that was five mile wide
|
|
and full of rushes--and ducks too, you might say, in the season. There
|
|
was a slough or a creek leading out of it on the other side that went
|
|
miles away, I don't know where, but it didn't go to the river. The meal
|
|
sifted out and made a little track all the way to the lake. I dropped
|
|
pap's whetstone there too, so as to look like it had been done by
|
|
accident. Then I tied up the rip in the meal sack with a string, so it
|
|
wouldn't leak no more, and took it and my saw to the canoe again.
|
|
|
|
It was about dark now; so I dropped the canoe down the river under some
|
|
willows that hung over the bank, and waited for the moon to rise. I
|
|
made fast to a willow; then I took a bite to eat, and by and by laid
|
|
down in the canoe to smoke a pipe and lay out a plan. I says to myself,
|
|
they'll follow the track of that sackful of rocks to the shore and then
|
|
drag the river for me. And they'll follow that meal track to the lake
|
|
and go browsing down the creek that leads out of it to find the robbers
|
|
that killed me and took the things. They won't ever hunt the river for
|
|
anything but my dead carcass. They'll soon get tired of that, and won't
|
|
bother no more about me. All right; I can stop anywhere I want to.
|
|
Jackson's Island is good enough for me; I know that island pretty well,
|
|
and nobody ever comes there. And then I can paddle over to town nights,
|
|
and slink around and pick up things I want. Jackson's Island's the
|
|
place.
|
|
|
|
I was pretty tired, and the first thing I knowed I was asleep. When
|
|
I woke up I didn't know where I was for a minute. I set up and looked
|
|
around, a little scared. Then I remembered. The river looked miles and
|
|
miles across. The moon was so bright I could a counted the drift logs
|
|
that went a-slipping along, black and still, hundreds of yards out from
|
|
shore. Everything was dead quiet, and it looked late, and _smelt_ late.
|
|
You know what I mean--I don't know the words to put it in.
|
|
|
|
I took a good gap and a stretch, and was just going to unhitch and start
|
|
when I heard a sound away over the water. I listened. Pretty soon I
|
|
made it out. It was that dull kind of a regular sound that comes from
|
|
oars working in rowlocks when it's a still night. I peeped out through
|
|
the willow branches, and there it was--a skiff, away across the water.
|
|
I couldn't tell how many was in it. It kept a-coming, and when it was
|
|
abreast of me I see there warn't but one man in it. Think's I, maybe
|
|
it's pap, though I warn't expecting him. He dropped below me with the
|
|
current, and by and by he came a-swinging up shore in the easy water,
|
|
and he went by so close I could a reached out the gun and touched him.
|
|
Well, it _was_ pap, sure enough--and sober, too, by the way he laid his
|
|
oars.
|
|
|
|
I didn't lose no time. The next minute I was a-spinning down stream
|
|
soft but quick in the shade of the bank. I made two mile and a half,
|
|
and then struck out a quarter of a mile or more towards the middle of
|
|
the river, because pretty soon I would be passing the ferry landing, and
|
|
people might see me and hail me. I got out amongst the driftwood, and
|
|
then laid down in the bottom of the canoe and let her float.
|
|
|
|
I laid there, and had a good rest and a smoke out of my pipe, looking
|
|
away into the sky; not a cloud in it. The sky looks ever so deep when
|
|
you lay down on your back in the moonshine; I never knowed it before.
|
|
And how far a body can hear on the water such nights! I heard people
|
|
talking at the ferry landing. I heard what they said, too--every word
|
|
of it. One man said it was getting towards the long days and the short
|
|
nights now. T'other one said _this_ warn't one of the short ones, he
|
|
reckoned--and then they laughed, and he said it over again, and they
|
|
laughed again; then they waked up another fellow and told him, and
|
|
laughed, but he didn't laugh; he ripped out something brisk, and said
|
|
let him alone. The first fellow said he 'lowed to tell it to his
|
|
old woman--she would think it was pretty good; but he said that warn't
|
|
nothing to some things he had said in his time. I heard one man say it
|
|
was nearly three o'clock, and he hoped daylight wouldn't wait more than
|
|
about a week longer. After that the talk got further and further away,
|
|
and I couldn't make out the words any more; but I could hear the mumble,
|
|
and now and then a laugh, too, but it seemed a long ways off.
|
|
|
|
I was away below the ferry now. I rose up, and there was Jackson's
|
|
Island, about two mile and a half down stream, heavy timbered and
|
|
standing up out of the middle of the river, big and dark and solid, like
|
|
a steamboat without any lights. There warn't any signs of the bar at
|
|
the head--it was all under water now.
|
|
|
|
It didn't take me long to get there. I shot past the head at a ripping
|
|
rate, the current was so swift, and then I got into the dead water and
|
|
landed on the side towards the Illinois shore. I run the canoe into
|
|
a deep dent in the bank that I knowed about; I had to part the willow
|
|
branches to get in; and when I made fast nobody could a seen the canoe
|
|
from the outside.
|
|
|
|
I went up and set down on a log at the head of the island, and looked
|
|
out on the big river and the black driftwood and away over to the town,
|
|
three mile away, where there was three or four lights twinkling. A
|
|
monstrous big lumber-raft was about a mile up stream, coming along down,
|
|
with a lantern in the middle of it. I watched it come creeping down,
|
|
and when it was most abreast of where I stood I heard a man say, “Stern
|
|
oars, there! heave her head to stabboard!” I heard that just as plain
|
|
as if the man was by my side.
|
|
|
|
There was a little gray in the sky now; so I stepped into the woods, and
|
|
laid down for a nap before breakfast.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER VIII.
|
|
|
|
THE sun was up so high when I waked that I judged it was after eight
|
|
o'clock. I laid there in the grass and the cool shade thinking about
|
|
things, and feeling rested and ruther comfortable and satisfied. I
|
|
could see the sun out at one or two holes, but mostly it was big trees
|
|
all about, and gloomy in there amongst them. There was freckled places
|
|
on the ground where the light sifted down through the leaves, and the
|
|
freckled places swapped about a little, showing there was a little
|
|
breeze up there. A couple of squirrels set on a limb and jabbered at me
|
|
very friendly.
|
|
|
|
I was powerful lazy and comfortable--didn't want to get up and cook
|
|
breakfast. Well, I was dozing off again when I thinks I hears a deep
|
|
sound of “boom!” away up the river. I rouses up, and rests on my elbow
|
|
and listens; pretty soon I hears it again. I hopped up, and went and
|
|
looked out at a hole in the leaves, and I see a bunch of smoke laying
|
|
on the water a long ways up--about abreast the ferry. And there was the
|
|
ferryboat full of people floating along down. I knowed what was the
|
|
matter now. “Boom!” I see the white smoke squirt out of the ferryboat's
|
|
side. You see, they was firing cannon over the water, trying to make my
|
|
carcass come to the top.
|
|
|
|
I was pretty hungry, but it warn't going to do for me to start a fire,
|
|
because they might see the smoke. So I set there and watched the
|
|
cannon-smoke and listened to the boom. The river was a mile wide there,
|
|
and it always looks pretty on a summer morning--so I was having a good
|
|
enough time seeing them hunt for my remainders if I only had a bite to
|
|
eat. Well, then I happened to think how they always put quicksilver in
|
|
loaves of bread and float them off, because they always go right to the
|
|
drownded carcass and stop there. So, says I, I'll keep a lookout, and
|
|
if any of them's floating around after me I'll give them a show. I
|
|
changed to the Illinois edge of the island to see what luck I could
|
|
have, and I warn't disappointed. A big double loaf come along, and I
|
|
most got it with a long stick, but my foot slipped and she floated out
|
|
further. Of course I was where the current set in the closest to the
|
|
shore--I knowed enough for that. But by and by along comes another one,
|
|
and this time I won. I took out the plug and shook out the little dab
|
|
of quicksilver, and set my teeth in. It was “baker's bread”--what the
|
|
quality eat; none of your low-down corn-pone.
|
|
|
|
I got a good place amongst the leaves, and set there on a log, munching
|
|
the bread and watching the ferry-boat, and very well satisfied. And
|
|
then something struck me. I says, now I reckon the widow or the parson
|
|
or somebody prayed that this bread would find me, and here it has gone
|
|
and done it. So there ain't no doubt but there is something in that
|
|
thing--that is, there's something in it when a body like the widow or the
|
|
parson prays, but it don't work for me, and I reckon it don't work for
|
|
only just the right kind.
|
|
|
|
I lit a pipe and had a good long smoke, and went on watching. The
|
|
ferryboat was floating with the current, and I allowed I'd have a chance
|
|
to see who was aboard when she come along, because she would come in
|
|
close, where the bread did. When she'd got pretty well along down
|
|
towards me, I put out my pipe and went to where I fished out the bread,
|
|
and laid down behind a log on the bank in a little open place. Where
|
|
the log forked I could peep through.
|
|
|
|
By and by she come along, and she drifted in so close that they could
|
|
a run out a plank and walked ashore. Most everybody was on the boat.
|
|
Pap, and Judge Thatcher, and Bessie Thatcher, and Jo Harper, and Tom
|
|
Sawyer, and his old Aunt Polly, and Sid and Mary, and plenty more.
|
|
Everybody was talking about the murder, but the captain broke in and
|
|
says:
|
|
|
|
“Look sharp, now; the current sets in the closest here, and maybe he's
|
|
washed ashore and got tangled amongst the brush at the water's edge. I
|
|
hope so, anyway.”
|
|
|
|
I didn't hope so. They all crowded up and leaned over the rails, nearly
|
|
in my face, and kept still, watching with all their might. I could see
|
|
them first-rate, but they couldn't see me. Then the captain sung out:
|
|
|
|
“Stand away!” and the cannon let off such a blast right before me that
|
|
it made me deef with the noise and pretty near blind with the smoke, and
|
|
I judged I was gone. If they'd a had some bullets in, I reckon they'd
|
|
a got the corpse they was after. Well, I see I warn't hurt, thanks to
|
|
goodness. The boat floated on and went out of sight around the shoulder
|
|
of the island. I could hear the booming now and then, further and
|
|
further off, and by and by, after an hour, I didn't hear it no more.
|
|
The island was three mile long. I judged they had got to the foot, and
|
|
was giving it up. But they didn't yet a while. They turned around
|
|
the foot of the island and started up the channel on the Missouri side,
|
|
under steam, and booming once in a while as they went. I crossed over
|
|
to that side and watched them. When they got abreast the head of the
|
|
island they quit shooting and dropped over to the Missouri shore and
|
|
went home to the town.
|
|
|
|
I knowed I was all right now. Nobody else would come a-hunting after
|
|
me. I got my traps out of the canoe and made me a nice camp in the thick
|
|
woods. I made a kind of a tent out of my blankets to put my things
|
|
under so the rain couldn't get at them. I catched a catfish and haggled
|
|
him open with my saw, and towards sundown I started my camp fire and had
|
|
supper. Then I set out a line to catch some fish for breakfast.
|
|
|
|
When it was dark I set by my camp fire smoking, and feeling pretty well
|
|
satisfied; but by and by it got sort of lonesome, and so I went and set
|
|
on the bank and listened to the current swashing along, and counted the
|
|
stars and drift logs and rafts that come down, and then went to bed;
|
|
there ain't no better way to put in time when you are lonesome; you
|
|
can't stay so, you soon get over it.
|
|
|
|
And so for three days and nights. No difference--just the same thing.
|
|
But the next day I went exploring around down through the island. I was
|
|
boss of it; it all belonged to me, so to say, and I wanted to know
|
|
all about it; but mainly I wanted to put in the time. I found plenty
|
|
strawberries, ripe and prime; and green summer grapes, and green
|
|
razberries; and the green blackberries was just beginning to show. They
|
|
would all come handy by and by, I judged.
|
|
|
|
Well, I went fooling along in the deep woods till I judged I warn't
|
|
far from the foot of the island. I had my gun along, but I hadn't shot
|
|
nothing; it was for protection; thought I would kill some game nigh
|
|
home. About this time I mighty near stepped on a good-sized snake,
|
|
and it went sliding off through the grass and flowers, and I after
|
|
it, trying to get a shot at it. I clipped along, and all of a sudden I
|
|
bounded right on to the ashes of a camp fire that was still smoking.
|
|
|
|
My heart jumped up amongst my lungs. I never waited for to look
|
|
further, but uncocked my gun and went sneaking back on my tiptoes as
|
|
fast as ever I could. Every now and then I stopped a second amongst the
|
|
thick leaves and listened, but my breath come so hard I couldn't hear
|
|
nothing else. I slunk along another piece further, then listened again;
|
|
and so on, and so on. If I see a stump, I took it for a man; if I trod
|
|
on a stick and broke it, it made me feel like a person had cut one of my
|
|
breaths in two and I only got half, and the short half, too.
|
|
|
|
When I got to camp I warn't feeling very brash, there warn't much sand
|
|
in my craw; but I says, this ain't no time to be fooling around. So I
|
|
got all my traps into my canoe again so as to have them out of sight,
|
|
and I put out the fire and scattered the ashes around to look like an
|
|
old last year's camp, and then clumb a tree.
|
|
|
|
I reckon I was up in the tree two hours; but I didn't see nothing,
|
|
I didn't hear nothing--I only _thought_ I heard and seen as much as a
|
|
thousand things. Well, I couldn't stay up there forever; so at last I
|
|
got down, but I kept in the thick woods and on the lookout all the
|
|
time. All I could get to eat was berries and what was left over from
|
|
breakfast.
|
|
|
|
By the time it was night I was pretty hungry. So when it was good
|
|
and dark I slid out from shore before moonrise and paddled over to the
|
|
Illinois bank--about a quarter of a mile. I went out in the woods and
|
|
cooked a supper, and I had about made up my mind I would stay there
|
|
all night when I hear a _plunkety-plunk, plunkety-plunk_, and says
|
|
to myself, horses coming; and next I hear people's voices. I got
|
|
everything into the canoe as quick as I could, and then went creeping
|
|
through the woods to see what I could find out. I hadn't got far when I
|
|
hear a man say:
|
|
|
|
“We better camp here if we can find a good place; the horses is about
|
|
beat out. Let's look around.”
|
|
|
|
I didn't wait, but shoved out and paddled away easy. I tied up in the
|
|
old place, and reckoned I would sleep in the canoe.
|
|
|
|
I didn't sleep much. I couldn't, somehow, for thinking. And every time
|
|
I waked up I thought somebody had me by the neck. So the sleep didn't
|
|
do me no good. By and by I says to myself, I can't live this way; I'm
|
|
a-going to find out who it is that's here on the island with me; I'll
|
|
find it out or bust. Well, I felt better right off.
|
|
|
|
So I took my paddle and slid out from shore just a step or two, and
|
|
then let the canoe drop along down amongst the shadows. The moon was
|
|
shining, and outside of the shadows it made it most as light as day.
|
|
I poked along well on to an hour, everything still as rocks and sound
|
|
asleep. Well, by this time I was most down to the foot of the island. A
|
|
little ripply, cool breeze begun to blow, and that was as good as saying
|
|
the night was about done. I give her a turn with the paddle and brung
|
|
her nose to shore; then I got my gun and slipped out and into the edge
|
|
of the woods. I sat down there on a log, and looked out through the
|
|
leaves. I see the moon go off watch, and the darkness begin to blanket
|
|
the river. But in a little while I see a pale streak over the treetops,
|
|
and knowed the day was coming. So I took my gun and slipped off towards
|
|
where I had run across that camp fire, stopping every minute or two
|
|
to listen. But I hadn't no luck somehow; I couldn't seem to find the
|
|
place. But by and by, sure enough, I catched a glimpse of fire away
|
|
through the trees. I went for it, cautious and slow. By and by I was
|
|
close enough to have a look, and there laid a man on the ground. It
|
|
most give me the fan-tods. He had a blanket around his head, and his
|
|
head was nearly in the fire. I set there behind a clump of bushes, in
|
|
about six foot of him, and kept my eyes on him steady. It was getting
|
|
gray daylight now. Pretty soon he gapped and stretched himself and hove
|
|
off the blanket, and it was Miss Watson's Jim! I bet I was glad to see
|
|
him. I says:
|
|
|
|
“Hello, Jim!” and skipped out.
|
|
|
|
He bounced up and stared at me wild. Then he drops down on his knees,
|
|
and puts his hands together and says:
|
|
|
|
“Doan' hurt me--don't! I hain't ever done no harm to a ghos'. I alwuz
|
|
liked dead people, en done all I could for 'em. You go en git in de
|
|
river agin, whah you b'longs, en doan' do nuffn to Ole Jim, 'at 'uz
|
|
awluz yo' fren'.”
|
|
|
|
Well, I warn't long making him understand I warn't dead. I was ever so
|
|
glad to see Jim. I warn't lonesome now. I told him I warn't afraid of
|
|
_him_ telling the people where I was. I talked along, but he only set
|
|
there and looked at me; never said nothing. Then I says:
|
|
|
|
“It's good daylight. Le's get breakfast. Make up your camp fire good.”
|
|
|
|
“What's de use er makin' up de camp fire to cook strawbries en sich
|
|
truck? But you got a gun, hain't you? Den we kin git sumfn better den
|
|
strawbries.”
|
|
|
|
“Strawberries and such truck,” I says. “Is that what you live on?”
|
|
|
|
“I couldn' git nuffn else,” he says.
|
|
|
|
“Why, how long you been on the island, Jim?”
|
|
|
|
“I come heah de night arter you's killed.”
|
|
|
|
“What, all that time?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes--indeedy.”
|
|
|
|
“And ain't you had nothing but that kind of rubbage to eat?”
|
|
|
|
“No, sah--nuffn else.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, you must be most starved, ain't you?”
|
|
|
|
“I reck'n I could eat a hoss. I think I could. How long you ben on de
|
|
islan'?”
|
|
|
|
“Since the night I got killed.”
|
|
|
|
“No! W'y, what has you lived on? But you got a gun. Oh, yes, you got
|
|
a gun. Dat's good. Now you kill sumfn en I'll make up de fire.”
|
|
|
|
So we went over to where the canoe was, and while he built a fire in
|
|
a grassy open place amongst the trees, I fetched meal and bacon and
|
|
coffee, and coffee-pot and frying-pan, and sugar and tin cups, and the
|
|
nigger was set back considerable, because he reckoned it was all done
|
|
with witchcraft. I catched a good big catfish, too, and Jim cleaned him
|
|
with his knife, and fried him.
|
|
|
|
When breakfast was ready we lolled on the grass and eat it smoking hot.
|
|
Jim laid it in with all his might, for he was most about starved. Then
|
|
when we had got pretty well stuffed, we laid off and lazied. By and by
|
|
Jim says:
|
|
|
|
“But looky here, Huck, who wuz it dat 'uz killed in dat shanty ef it
|
|
warn't you?”
|
|
|
|
Then I told him the whole thing, and he said it was smart. He said Tom
|
|
Sawyer couldn't get up no better plan than what I had. Then I says:
|
|
|
|
“How do you come to be here, Jim, and how'd you get here?”
|
|
|
|
He looked pretty uneasy, and didn't say nothing for a minute. Then he
|
|
says:
|
|
|
|
“Maybe I better not tell.”
|
|
|
|
“Why, Jim?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, dey's reasons. But you wouldn' tell on me ef I uz to tell you,
|
|
would you, Huck?”
|
|
|
|
“Blamed if I would, Jim.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, I b'lieve you, Huck. I--_I run off_.”
|
|
|
|
“Jim!”
|
|
|
|
“But mind, you said you wouldn' tell--you know you said you wouldn' tell,
|
|
Huck.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, I did. I said I wouldn't, and I'll stick to it. Honest _injun_,
|
|
I will. People would call me a low-down Abolitionist and despise me for
|
|
keeping mum--but that don't make no difference. I ain't a-going to tell,
|
|
and I ain't a-going back there, anyways. So, now, le's know all about
|
|
it.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, you see, it 'uz dis way. Ole missus--dat's Miss Watson--she pecks
|
|
on me all de time, en treats me pooty rough, but she awluz said she
|
|
wouldn' sell me down to Orleans. But I noticed dey wuz a nigger trader
|
|
roun' de place considable lately, en I begin to git oneasy. Well, one
|
|
night I creeps to de do' pooty late, en de do' warn't quite shet, en I
|
|
hear old missus tell de widder she gwyne to sell me down to Orleans, but
|
|
she didn' want to, but she could git eight hund'd dollars for me, en it
|
|
'uz sich a big stack o' money she couldn' resis'. De widder she try to
|
|
git her to say she wouldn' do it, but I never waited to hear de res'. I
|
|
lit out mighty quick, I tell you.
|
|
|
|
“I tuck out en shin down de hill, en 'spec to steal a skift 'long de
|
|
sho' som'ers 'bove de town, but dey wuz people a-stirring yit, so I hid
|
|
in de ole tumble-down cooper-shop on de bank to wait for everybody to
|
|
go 'way. Well, I wuz dah all night. Dey wuz somebody roun' all de time.
|
|
'Long 'bout six in de mawnin' skifts begin to go by, en 'bout eight er
|
|
nine every skift dat went 'long wuz talkin' 'bout how yo' pap come over
|
|
to de town en say you's killed. Dese las' skifts wuz full o' ladies en
|
|
genlmen a-goin' over for to see de place. Sometimes dey'd pull up at
|
|
de sho' en take a res' b'fo' dey started acrost, so by de talk I got to
|
|
know all 'bout de killin'. I 'uz powerful sorry you's killed, Huck, but
|
|
I ain't no mo' now.
|
|
|
|
“I laid dah under de shavin's all day. I 'uz hungry, but I warn't
|
|
afeard; bekase I knowed ole missus en de widder wuz goin' to start to
|
|
de camp-meet'n' right arter breakfas' en be gone all day, en dey knows
|
|
I goes off wid de cattle 'bout daylight, so dey wouldn' 'spec to see me
|
|
roun' de place, en so dey wouldn' miss me tell arter dark in de evenin'.
|
|
De yuther servants wouldn' miss me, kase dey'd shin out en take holiday
|
|
soon as de ole folks 'uz out'n de way.
|
|
|
|
“Well, when it come dark I tuck out up de river road, en went 'bout two
|
|
mile er more to whah dey warn't no houses. I'd made up my mine 'bout
|
|
what I's agwyne to do. You see, ef I kep' on tryin' to git away afoot,
|
|
de dogs 'ud track me; ef I stole a skift to cross over, dey'd miss dat
|
|
skift, you see, en dey'd know 'bout whah I'd lan' on de yuther side, en
|
|
whah to pick up my track. So I says, a raff is what I's arter; it doan'
|
|
_make_ no track.
|
|
|
|
“I see a light a-comin' roun' de p'int bymeby, so I wade' in en shove'
|
|
a log ahead o' me en swum more'n half way acrost de river, en got in
|
|
'mongst de drift-wood, en kep' my head down low, en kinder swum agin de
|
|
current tell de raff come along. Den I swum to de stern uv it en tuck
|
|
a-holt. It clouded up en 'uz pooty dark for a little while. So I clumb
|
|
up en laid down on de planks. De men 'uz all 'way yonder in de middle,
|
|
whah de lantern wuz. De river wuz a-risin', en dey wuz a good current;
|
|
so I reck'n'd 'at by fo' in de mawnin' I'd be twenty-five mile down de
|
|
river, en den I'd slip in jis b'fo' daylight en swim asho', en take to
|
|
de woods on de Illinois side.
|
|
|
|
“But I didn' have no luck. When we 'uz mos' down to de head er de
|
|
islan' a man begin to come aft wid de lantern, I see it warn't no use
|
|
fer to wait, so I slid overboard en struck out fer de islan'. Well, I
|
|
had a notion I could lan' mos' anywhers, but I couldn't--bank too bluff.
|
|
I 'uz mos' to de foot er de islan' b'fo' I found' a good place. I went
|
|
into de woods en jedged I wouldn' fool wid raffs no mo', long as dey
|
|
move de lantern roun' so. I had my pipe en a plug er dog-leg, en some
|
|
matches in my cap, en dey warn't wet, so I 'uz all right.”
|
|
|
|
“And so you ain't had no meat nor bread to eat all this time? Why
|
|
didn't you get mud-turkles?”
|
|
|
|
“How you gwyne to git 'm? You can't slip up on um en grab um; en how's
|
|
a body gwyne to hit um wid a rock? How could a body do it in de night?
|
|
En I warn't gwyne to show mysef on de bank in de daytime.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, that's so. You've had to keep in the woods all the time, of
|
|
course. Did you hear 'em shooting the cannon?”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, yes. I knowed dey was arter you. I see um go by heah--watched um
|
|
thoo de bushes.”
|
|
|
|
Some young birds come along, flying a yard or two at a time and
|
|
lighting. Jim said it was a sign it was going to rain. He said it was
|
|
a sign when young chickens flew that way, and so he reckoned it was the
|
|
same way when young birds done it. I was going to catch some of them,
|
|
but Jim wouldn't let me. He said it was death. He said his father laid
|
|
mighty sick once, and some of them catched a bird, and his old granny
|
|
said his father would die, and he did.
|
|
|
|
And Jim said you mustn't count the things you are going to cook for
|
|
dinner, because that would bring bad luck. The same if you shook the
|
|
table-cloth after sundown. And he said if a man owned a beehive
|
|
and that man died, the bees must be told about it before sun-up next
|
|
morning, or else the bees would all weaken down and quit work and die.
|
|
Jim said bees wouldn't sting idiots; but I didn't believe that, because
|
|
I had tried them lots of times myself, and they wouldn't sting me.
|
|
|
|
I had heard about some of these things before, but not all of them. Jim
|
|
knowed all kinds of signs. He said he knowed most everything. I said
|
|
it looked to me like all the signs was about bad luck, and so I asked
|
|
him if there warn't any good-luck signs. He says:
|
|
|
|
“Mighty few--an' _dey_ ain't no use to a body. What you want to know
|
|
when good luck's a-comin' for? Want to keep it off?” And he said: “Ef
|
|
you's got hairy arms en a hairy breas', it's a sign dat you's agwyne
|
|
to be rich. Well, dey's some use in a sign like dat, 'kase it's so fur
|
|
ahead. You see, maybe you's got to be po' a long time fust, en so you
|
|
might git discourage' en kill yo'sef 'f you didn' know by de sign dat
|
|
you gwyne to be rich bymeby.”
|
|
|
|
“Have you got hairy arms and a hairy breast, Jim?”
|
|
|
|
“What's de use to ax dat question? Don't you see I has?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, are you rich?”
|
|
|
|
“No, but I ben rich wunst, and gwyne to be rich agin. Wunst I had
|
|
foteen dollars, but I tuck to specalat'n', en got busted out.”
|
|
|
|
“What did you speculate in, Jim?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, fust I tackled stock.”
|
|
|
|
“What kind of stock?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, live stock--cattle, you know. I put ten dollars in a cow. But
|
|
I ain' gwyne to resk no mo' money in stock. De cow up 'n' died on my
|
|
han's.”
|
|
|
|
“So you lost the ten dollars.”
|
|
|
|
“No, I didn't lose it all. I on'y los' 'bout nine of it. I sole de
|
|
hide en taller for a dollar en ten cents.”
|
|
|
|
“You had five dollars and ten cents left. Did you speculate any more?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes. You know that one-laigged nigger dat b'longs to old Misto
|
|
Bradish? Well, he sot up a bank, en say anybody dat put in a dollar
|
|
would git fo' dollars mo' at de en' er de year. Well, all de niggers
|
|
went in, but dey didn't have much. I wuz de on'y one dat had much. So
|
|
I stuck out for mo' dan fo' dollars, en I said 'f I didn' git it I'd
|
|
start a bank mysef. Well, o' course dat nigger want' to keep me out er
|
|
de business, bekase he says dey warn't business 'nough for two banks, so
|
|
he say I could put in my five dollars en he pay me thirty-five at de en'
|
|
er de year.
|
|
|
|
“So I done it. Den I reck'n'd I'd inves' de thirty-five dollars right
|
|
off en keep things a-movin'. Dey wuz a nigger name' Bob, dat had
|
|
ketched a wood-flat, en his marster didn' know it; en I bought it off'n
|
|
him en told him to take de thirty-five dollars when de en' er de
|
|
year come; but somebody stole de wood-flat dat night, en nex day de
|
|
one-laigged nigger say de bank's busted. So dey didn' none uv us git no
|
|
money.”
|
|
|
|
“What did you do with the ten cents, Jim?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, I 'uz gwyne to spen' it, but I had a dream, en de dream tole me
|
|
to give it to a nigger name' Balum--Balum's Ass dey call him for short;
|
|
he's one er dem chuckleheads, you know. But he's lucky, dey say, en I
|
|
see I warn't lucky. De dream say let Balum inves' de ten cents en he'd
|
|
make a raise for me. Well, Balum he tuck de money, en when he wuz in
|
|
church he hear de preacher say dat whoever give to de po' len' to de
|
|
Lord, en boun' to git his money back a hund'd times. So Balum he tuck
|
|
en give de ten cents to de po', en laid low to see what wuz gwyne to
|
|
come of it.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, what did come of it, Jim?”
|
|
|
|
“Nuffn never come of it. I couldn' manage to k'leck dat money no way;
|
|
en Balum he couldn'. I ain' gwyne to len' no mo' money 'dout I see de
|
|
security. Boun' to git yo' money back a hund'd times, de preacher says!
|
|
Ef I could git de ten _cents_ back, I'd call it squah, en be glad er de
|
|
chanst.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, it's all right anyway, Jim, long as you're going to be rich again
|
|
some time or other.”
|
|
|
|
“Yes; en I's rich now, come to look at it. I owns mysef, en I's wuth
|
|
eight hund'd dollars. I wisht I had de money, I wouldn' want no mo'.”
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER IX.
|
|
|
|
I wanted to go and look at a place right about the middle of the island
|
|
that I'd found when I was exploring; so we started and soon got to it,
|
|
because the island was only three miles long and a quarter of a mile
|
|
wide.
|
|
|
|
This place was a tolerable long, steep hill or ridge about forty foot
|
|
high. We had a rough time getting to the top, the sides was so steep and
|
|
the bushes so thick. We tramped and clumb around all over it, and by
|
|
and by found a good big cavern in the rock, most up to the top on the
|
|
side towards Illinois. The cavern was as big as two or three rooms
|
|
bunched together, and Jim could stand up straight in it. It was cool in
|
|
there. Jim was for putting our traps in there right away, but I said we
|
|
didn't want to be climbing up and down there all the time.
|
|
|
|
Jim said if we had the canoe hid in a good place, and had all the traps
|
|
in the cavern, we could rush there if anybody was to come to the island,
|
|
and they would never find us without dogs. And, besides, he said them
|
|
little birds had said it was going to rain, and did I want the things to
|
|
get wet?
|
|
|
|
So we went back and got the canoe, and paddled up abreast the cavern,
|
|
and lugged all the traps up there. Then we hunted up a place close by
|
|
to hide the canoe in, amongst the thick willows. We took some fish off
|
|
of the lines and set them again, and begun to get ready for dinner.
|
|
|
|
The door of the cavern was big enough to roll a hogshead in, and on one
|
|
side of the door the floor stuck out a little bit, and was flat and a
|
|
good place to build a fire on. So we built it there and cooked dinner.
|
|
|
|
We spread the blankets inside for a carpet, and eat our dinner in there.
|
|
We put all the other things handy at the back of the cavern. Pretty
|
|
soon it darkened up, and begun to thunder and lighten; so the birds was
|
|
right about it. Directly it begun to rain, and it rained like all fury,
|
|
too, and I never see the wind blow so. It was one of these regular
|
|
summer storms. It would get so dark that it looked all blue-black
|
|
outside, and lovely; and the rain would thrash along by so thick that
|
|
the trees off a little ways looked dim and spider-webby; and here would
|
|
come a blast of wind that would bend the trees down and turn up the
|
|
pale underside of the leaves; and then a perfect ripper of a gust would
|
|
follow along and set the branches to tossing their arms as if they
|
|
was just wild; and next, when it was just about the bluest and
|
|
blackest--_FST_! it was as bright as glory, and you'd have a little
|
|
glimpse of tree-tops a-plunging about away off yonder in the storm,
|
|
hundreds of yards further than you could see before; dark as sin again
|
|
in a second, and now you'd hear the thunder let go with an awful crash,
|
|
and then go rumbling, grumbling, tumbling, down the sky towards the
|
|
under side of the world, like rolling empty barrels down stairs--where
|
|
it's long stairs and they bounce a good deal, you know.
|
|
|
|
“Jim, this is nice,” I says. “I wouldn't want to be nowhere else but
|
|
here. Pass me along another hunk of fish and some hot corn-bread.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, you wouldn't a ben here 'f it hadn't a ben for Jim. You'd a ben
|
|
down dah in de woods widout any dinner, en gittn' mos' drownded, too;
|
|
dat you would, honey. Chickens knows when it's gwyne to rain, en so do
|
|
de birds, chile.”
|
|
|
|
The river went on raising and raising for ten or twelve days, till at
|
|
last it was over the banks. The water was three or four foot deep on
|
|
the island in the low places and on the Illinois bottom. On that side
|
|
it was a good many miles wide, but on the Missouri side it was the same
|
|
old distance across--a half a mile--because the Missouri shore was just a
|
|
wall of high bluffs.
|
|
|
|
Daytimes we paddled all over the island in the canoe, It was mighty cool
|
|
and shady in the deep woods, even if the sun was blazing outside. We
|
|
went winding in and out amongst the trees, and sometimes the vines hung
|
|
so thick we had to back away and go some other way. Well, on every old
|
|
broken-down tree you could see rabbits and snakes and such things; and
|
|
when the island had been overflowed a day or two they got so tame, on
|
|
account of being hungry, that you could paddle right up and put your
|
|
hand on them if you wanted to; but not the snakes and turtles--they would
|
|
slide off in the water. The ridge our cavern was in was full of them.
|
|
We could a had pets enough if we'd wanted them.
|
|
|
|
One night we catched a little section of a lumber raft--nice pine planks.
|
|
It was twelve foot wide and about fifteen or sixteen foot long, and
|
|
the top stood above water six or seven inches--a solid, level floor. We
|
|
could see saw-logs go by in the daylight sometimes, but we let them go;
|
|
we didn't show ourselves in daylight.
|
|
|
|
Another night when we was up at the head of the island, just before
|
|
daylight, here comes a frame-house down, on the west side. She was
|
|
a two-story, and tilted over considerable. We paddled out and got
|
|
aboard--clumb in at an upstairs window. But it was too dark to see yet,
|
|
so we made the canoe fast and set in her to wait for daylight.
|
|
|
|
The light begun to come before we got to the foot of the island. Then
|
|
we looked in at the window. We could make out a bed, and a table, and
|
|
two old chairs, and lots of things around about on the floor, and there
|
|
was clothes hanging against the wall. There was something laying on the
|
|
floor in the far corner that looked like a man. So Jim says:
|
|
|
|
“Hello, you!”
|
|
|
|
But it didn't budge. So I hollered again, and then Jim says:
|
|
|
|
“De man ain't asleep--he's dead. You hold still--I'll go en see.”
|
|
|
|
He went, and bent down and looked, and says:
|
|
|
|
“It's a dead man. Yes, indeedy; naked, too. He's ben shot in de back.
|
|
I reck'n he's ben dead two er three days. Come in, Huck, but doan' look
|
|
at his face--it's too gashly.”
|
|
|
|
I didn't look at him at all. Jim throwed some old rags over him, but
|
|
he needn't done it; I didn't want to see him. There was heaps of old
|
|
greasy cards scattered around over the floor, and old whisky bottles,
|
|
and a couple of masks made out of black cloth; and all over the walls
|
|
was the ignorantest kind of words and pictures made with charcoal.
|
|
There was two old dirty calico dresses, and a sun-bonnet, and some
|
|
women's underclothes hanging against the wall, and some men's clothing,
|
|
too. We put the lot into the canoe--it might come good. There was a
|
|
boy's old speckled straw hat on the floor; I took that, too. And there
|
|
was a bottle that had had milk in it, and it had a rag stopper for a
|
|
baby to suck. We would a took the bottle, but it was broke. There was
|
|
a seedy old chest, and an old hair trunk with the hinges broke. They
|
|
stood open, but there warn't nothing left in them that was any account.
|
|
The way things was scattered about we reckoned the people left in a
|
|
hurry, and warn't fixed so as to carry off most of their stuff.
|
|
|
|
We got an old tin lantern, and a butcher-knife without any handle, and
|
|
a bran-new Barlow knife worth two bits in any store, and a lot of tallow
|
|
candles, and a tin candlestick, and a gourd, and a tin cup, and a ratty
|
|
old bedquilt off the bed, and a reticule with needles and pins and
|
|
beeswax and buttons and thread and all such truck in it, and a hatchet
|
|
and some nails, and a fishline as thick as my little finger with some
|
|
monstrous hooks on it, and a roll of buckskin, and a leather dog-collar,
|
|
and a horseshoe, and some vials of medicine that didn't have no label
|
|
on them; and just as we was leaving I found a tolerable good curry-comb,
|
|
and Jim he found a ratty old fiddle-bow, and a wooden leg. The straps
|
|
was broke off of it, but, barring that, it was a good enough leg, though
|
|
it was too long for me and not long enough for Jim, and we couldn't find
|
|
the other one, though we hunted all around.
|
|
|
|
And so, take it all around, we made a good haul. When we was ready to
|
|
shove off we was a quarter of a mile below the island, and it was pretty
|
|
broad day; so I made Jim lay down in the canoe and cover up with the
|
|
quilt, because if he set up people could tell he was a nigger a good
|
|
ways off. I paddled over to the Illinois shore, and drifted down most
|
|
a half a mile doing it. I crept up the dead water under the bank, and
|
|
hadn't no accidents and didn't see nobody. We got home all safe.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER X.
|
|
|
|
AFTER breakfast I wanted to talk about the dead man and guess out how he
|
|
come to be killed, but Jim didn't want to. He said it would fetch bad
|
|
luck; and besides, he said, he might come and ha'nt us; he said a man
|
|
that warn't buried was more likely to go a-ha'nting around than one
|
|
that was planted and comfortable. That sounded pretty reasonable, so
|
|
I didn't say no more; but I couldn't keep from studying over it and
|
|
wishing I knowed who shot the man, and what they done it for.
|
|
|
|
We rummaged the clothes we'd got, and found eight dollars in silver
|
|
sewed up in the lining of an old blanket overcoat. Jim said he reckoned
|
|
the people in that house stole the coat, because if they'd a knowed the
|
|
money was there they wouldn't a left it. I said I reckoned they killed
|
|
him, too; but Jim didn't want to talk about that. I says:
|
|
|
|
“Now you think it's bad luck; but what did you say when I fetched in the
|
|
snake-skin that I found on the top of the ridge day before yesterday?
|
|
You said it was the worst bad luck in the world to touch a snake-skin
|
|
with my hands. Well, here's your bad luck! We've raked in all this
|
|
truck and eight dollars besides. I wish we could have some bad luck
|
|
like this every day, Jim.”
|
|
|
|
“Never you mind, honey, never you mind. Don't you git too peart. It's
|
|
a-comin'. Mind I tell you, it's a-comin'.”
|
|
|
|
It did come, too. It was a Tuesday that we had that talk. Well, after
|
|
dinner Friday we was laying around in the grass at the upper end of the
|
|
ridge, and got out of tobacco. I went to the cavern to get some, and
|
|
found a rattlesnake in there. I killed him, and curled him up on the
|
|
foot of Jim's blanket, ever so natural, thinking there'd be some fun
|
|
when Jim found him there. Well, by night I forgot all about the snake,
|
|
and when Jim flung himself down on the blanket while I struck a light
|
|
the snake's mate was there, and bit him.
|
|
|
|
He jumped up yelling, and the first thing the light showed was the
|
|
varmint curled up and ready for another spring. I laid him out in a
|
|
second with a stick, and Jim grabbed pap's whisky-jug and begun to pour
|
|
it down.
|
|
|
|
He was barefooted, and the snake bit him right on the heel. That all
|
|
comes of my being such a fool as to not remember that wherever you leave
|
|
a dead snake its mate always comes there and curls around it. Jim told
|
|
me to chop off the snake's head and throw it away, and then skin the
|
|
body and roast a piece of it. I done it, and he eat it and said it
|
|
would help cure him. He made me take off the rattles and tie them around
|
|
his wrist, too. He said that that would help. Then I slid out quiet
|
|
and throwed the snakes clear away amongst the bushes; for I warn't going
|
|
to let Jim find out it was all my fault, not if I could help it.
|
|
|
|
Jim sucked and sucked at the jug, and now and then he got out of his
|
|
head and pitched around and yelled; but every time he come to himself he
|
|
went to sucking at the jug again. His foot swelled up pretty big, and
|
|
so did his leg; but by and by the drunk begun to come, and so I judged
|
|
he was all right; but I'd druther been bit with a snake than pap's
|
|
whisky.
|
|
|
|
Jim was laid up for four days and nights. Then the swelling was all
|
|
gone and he was around again. I made up my mind I wouldn't ever take
|
|
a-holt of a snake-skin again with my hands, now that I see what had come
|
|
of it. Jim said he reckoned I would believe him next time. And he said
|
|
that handling a snake-skin was such awful bad luck that maybe we hadn't
|
|
got to the end of it yet. He said he druther see the new moon over his
|
|
left shoulder as much as a thousand times than take up a snake-skin
|
|
in his hand. Well, I was getting to feel that way myself, though I've
|
|
always reckoned that looking at the new moon over your left shoulder is
|
|
one of the carelessest and foolishest things a body can do. Old Hank
|
|
Bunker done it once, and bragged about it; and in less than two years he
|
|
got drunk and fell off of the shot-tower, and spread himself out so
|
|
that he was just a kind of a layer, as you may say; and they slid him
|
|
edgeways between two barn doors for a coffin, and buried him so, so
|
|
they say, but I didn't see it. Pap told me. But anyway it all come of
|
|
looking at the moon that way, like a fool.
|
|
|
|
Well, the days went along, and the river went down between its banks
|
|
again; and about the first thing we done was to bait one of the big
|
|
hooks with a skinned rabbit and set it and catch a catfish that was
|
|
as big as a man, being six foot two inches long, and weighed over two
|
|
hundred pounds. We couldn't handle him, of course; he would a flung us
|
|
into Illinois. We just set there and watched him rip and tear around
|
|
till he drownded. We found a brass button in his stomach and a round
|
|
ball, and lots of rubbage. We split the ball open with the hatchet,
|
|
and there was a spool in it. Jim said he'd had it there a long time, to
|
|
coat it over so and make a ball of it. It was as big a fish as was ever
|
|
catched in the Mississippi, I reckon. Jim said he hadn't ever seen
|
|
a bigger one. He would a been worth a good deal over at the village.
|
|
They peddle out such a fish as that by the pound in the market-house
|
|
there; everybody buys some of him; his meat's as white as snow and makes
|
|
a good fry.
|
|
|
|
Next morning I said it was getting slow and dull, and I wanted to get a
|
|
stirring up some way. I said I reckoned I would slip over the river and
|
|
find out what was going on. Jim liked that notion; but he said I
|
|
must go in the dark and look sharp. Then he studied it over and said,
|
|
couldn't I put on some of them old things and dress up like a girl?
|
|
That was a good notion, too. So we shortened up one of the calico
|
|
gowns, and I turned up my trouser-legs to my knees and got into it. Jim
|
|
hitched it behind with the hooks, and it was a fair fit. I put on the
|
|
sun-bonnet and tied it under my chin, and then for a body to look in
|
|
and see my face was like looking down a joint of stove-pipe. Jim said
|
|
nobody would know me, even in the daytime, hardly. I practiced around
|
|
all day to get the hang of the things, and by and by I could do pretty
|
|
well in them, only Jim said I didn't walk like a girl; and he said
|
|
I must quit pulling up my gown to get at my britches-pocket. I took
|
|
notice, and done better.
|
|
|
|
I started up the Illinois shore in the canoe just after dark.
|
|
|
|
I started across to the town from a little below the ferry-landing, and
|
|
the drift of the current fetched me in at the bottom of the town. I
|
|
tied up and started along the bank. There was a light burning in a
|
|
little shanty that hadn't been lived in for a long time, and I wondered
|
|
who had took up quarters there. I slipped up and peeped in at the
|
|
window. There was a woman about forty year old in there knitting by
|
|
a candle that was on a pine table. I didn't know her face; she was a
|
|
stranger, for you couldn't start a face in that town that I didn't know.
|
|
Now this was lucky, because I was weakening; I was getting afraid I had
|
|
come; people might know my voice and find me out. But if this woman had
|
|
been in such a little town two days she could tell me all I wanted to
|
|
know; so I knocked at the door, and made up my mind I wouldn't forget I
|
|
was a girl.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XI.
|
|
|
|
“COME in,” says the woman, and I did. She says: “Take a cheer.”
|
|
|
|
I done it. She looked me all over with her little shiny eyes, and says:
|
|
|
|
“What might your name be?”
|
|
|
|
“Sarah Williams.”
|
|
|
|
“Where 'bouts do you live? In this neighborhood?'
|
|
|
|
“No'm. In Hookerville, seven mile below. I've walked all the way and
|
|
I'm all tired out.”
|
|
|
|
“Hungry, too, I reckon. I'll find you something.”
|
|
|
|
“No'm, I ain't hungry. I was so hungry I had to stop two miles below
|
|
here at a farm; so I ain't hungry no more. It's what makes me so late.
|
|
My mother's down sick, and out of money and everything, and I come to
|
|
tell my uncle Abner Moore. He lives at the upper end of the town, she
|
|
says. I hain't ever been here before. Do you know him?”
|
|
|
|
“No; but I don't know everybody yet. I haven't lived here quite two
|
|
weeks. It's a considerable ways to the upper end of the town. You
|
|
better stay here all night. Take off your bonnet.”
|
|
|
|
“No,” I says; “I'll rest a while, I reckon, and go on. I ain't afeared
|
|
of the dark.”
|
|
|
|
She said she wouldn't let me go by myself, but her husband would be in
|
|
by and by, maybe in a hour and a half, and she'd send him along with me.
|
|
Then she got to talking about her husband, and about her relations up
|
|
the river, and her relations down the river, and about how much better
|
|
off they used to was, and how they didn't know but they'd made a mistake
|
|
coming to our town, instead of letting well alone--and so on and so on,
|
|
till I was afeard I had made a mistake coming to her to find out what
|
|
was going on in the town; but by and by she dropped on to pap and the
|
|
murder, and then I was pretty willing to let her clatter right along.
|
|
She told about me and Tom Sawyer finding the six thousand dollars (only
|
|
she got it ten) and all about pap and what a hard lot he was, and what
|
|
a hard lot I was, and at last she got down to where I was murdered. I
|
|
says:
|
|
|
|
“Who done it? We've heard considerable about these goings on down in
|
|
Hookerville, but we don't know who 'twas that killed Huck Finn.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, I reckon there's a right smart chance of people _here_ that'd
|
|
like to know who killed him. Some think old Finn done it himself.”
|
|
|
|
“No--is that so?”
|
|
|
|
“Most everybody thought it at first. He'll never know how nigh he come
|
|
to getting lynched. But before night they changed around and judged it
|
|
was done by a runaway nigger named Jim.”
|
|
|
|
“Why _he_--”
|
|
|
|
I stopped. I reckoned I better keep still. She run on, and never
|
|
noticed I had put in at all:
|
|
|
|
“The nigger run off the very night Huck Finn was killed. So there's a
|
|
reward out for him--three hundred dollars. And there's a reward out for
|
|
old Finn, too--two hundred dollars. You see, he come to town the
|
|
morning after the murder, and told about it, and was out with 'em on the
|
|
ferryboat hunt, and right away after he up and left. Before night they
|
|
wanted to lynch him, but he was gone, you see. Well, next day they
|
|
found out the nigger was gone; they found out he hadn't ben seen sence
|
|
ten o'clock the night the murder was done. So then they put it on him,
|
|
you see; and while they was full of it, next day, back comes old Finn,
|
|
and went boo-hooing to Judge Thatcher to get money to hunt for the
|
|
nigger all over Illinois with. The judge gave him some, and that evening
|
|
he got drunk, and was around till after midnight with a couple of mighty
|
|
hard-looking strangers, and then went off with them. Well, he hain't
|
|
come back sence, and they ain't looking for him back till this thing
|
|
blows over a little, for people thinks now that he killed his boy and
|
|
fixed things so folks would think robbers done it, and then he'd get
|
|
Huck's money without having to bother a long time with a lawsuit.
|
|
People do say he warn't any too good to do it. Oh, he's sly, I reckon.
|
|
If he don't come back for a year he'll be all right. You can't prove
|
|
anything on him, you know; everything will be quieted down then, and
|
|
he'll walk in Huck's money as easy as nothing.”
|
|
|
|
“Yes, I reckon so, 'm. I don't see nothing in the way of it. Has
|
|
everybody quit thinking the nigger done it?”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, no, not everybody. A good many thinks he done it. But they'll get
|
|
the nigger pretty soon now, and maybe they can scare it out of him.”
|
|
|
|
“Why, are they after him yet?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, you're innocent, ain't you! Does three hundred dollars lay
|
|
around every day for people to pick up? Some folks think the nigger
|
|
ain't far from here. I'm one of them--but I hain't talked it around. A
|
|
few days ago I was talking with an old couple that lives next door in
|
|
the log shanty, and they happened to say hardly anybody ever goes to
|
|
that island over yonder that they call Jackson's Island. Don't anybody
|
|
live there? says I. No, nobody, says they. I didn't say any more, but
|
|
I done some thinking. I was pretty near certain I'd seen smoke over
|
|
there, about the head of the island, a day or two before that, so I says
|
|
to myself, like as not that nigger's hiding over there; anyway, says
|
|
I, it's worth the trouble to give the place a hunt. I hain't seen any
|
|
smoke sence, so I reckon maybe he's gone, if it was him; but husband's
|
|
going over to see--him and another man. He was gone up the river; but he
|
|
got back to-day, and I told him as soon as he got here two hours ago.”
|
|
|
|
I had got so uneasy I couldn't set still. I had to do something with my
|
|
hands; so I took up a needle off of the table and went to threading
|
|
it. My hands shook, and I was making a bad job of it. When the woman
|
|
stopped talking I looked up, and she was looking at me pretty curious
|
|
and smiling a little. I put down the needle and thread, and let on to
|
|
be interested--and I was, too--and says:
|
|
|
|
“Three hundred dollars is a power of money. I wish my mother could get
|
|
it. Is your husband going over there to-night?”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, yes. He went up-town with the man I was telling you of, to get a
|
|
boat and see if they could borrow another gun. They'll go over after
|
|
midnight.”
|
|
|
|
“Couldn't they see better if they was to wait till daytime?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes. And couldn't the nigger see better, too? After midnight he'll
|
|
likely be asleep, and they can slip around through the woods and hunt up
|
|
his camp fire all the better for the dark, if he's got one.”
|
|
|
|
“I didn't think of that.”
|
|
|
|
The woman kept looking at me pretty curious, and I didn't feel a bit
|
|
comfortable. Pretty soon she says,
|
|
|
|
“What did you say your name was, honey?”
|
|
|
|
“M--Mary Williams.”
|
|
|
|
Somehow it didn't seem to me that I said it was Mary before, so I didn't
|
|
look up--seemed to me I said it was Sarah; so I felt sort of cornered,
|
|
and was afeared maybe I was looking it, too. I wished the woman would
|
|
say something more; the longer she set still the uneasier I was. But
|
|
now she says:
|
|
|
|
“Honey, I thought you said it was Sarah when you first come in?”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, yes'm, I did. Sarah Mary Williams. Sarah's my first name. Some
|
|
calls me Sarah, some calls me Mary.”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, that's the way of it?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes'm.”
|
|
|
|
I was feeling better then, but I wished I was out of there, anyway. I
|
|
couldn't look up yet.
|
|
|
|
Well, the woman fell to talking about how hard times was, and how poor
|
|
they had to live, and how the rats was as free as if they owned the
|
|
place, and so forth and so on, and then I got easy again. She was right
|
|
about the rats. You'd see one stick his nose out of a hole in the corner
|
|
every little while. She said she had to have things handy to throw at
|
|
them when she was alone, or they wouldn't give her no peace. She showed
|
|
me a bar of lead twisted up into a knot, and said she was a good shot
|
|
with it generly, but she'd wrenched her arm a day or two ago, and didn't
|
|
know whether she could throw true now. But she watched for a chance,
|
|
and directly banged away at a rat; but she missed him wide, and said
|
|
“Ouch!” it hurt her arm so. Then she told me to try for the next one.
|
|
I wanted to be getting away before the old man got back, but of course
|
|
I didn't let on. I got the thing, and the first rat that showed his
|
|
nose I let drive, and if he'd a stayed where he was he'd a been a
|
|
tolerable sick rat. She said that was first-rate, and she reckoned I
|
|
would hive the next one. She went and got the lump of lead and fetched
|
|
it back, and brought along a hank of yarn which she wanted me to help
|
|
her with. I held up my two hands and she put the hank over them, and
|
|
went on talking about her and her husband's matters. But she broke off
|
|
to say:
|
|
|
|
“Keep your eye on the rats. You better have the lead in your lap,
|
|
handy.”
|
|
|
|
So she dropped the lump into my lap just at that moment, and I clapped
|
|
my legs together on it and she went on talking. But only about a
|
|
minute. Then she took off the hank and looked me straight in the face,
|
|
and very pleasant, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Come, now, what's your real name?”
|
|
|
|
“Wh--what, mum?”
|
|
|
|
“What's your real name? Is it Bill, or Tom, or Bob?--or what is it?”
|
|
|
|
I reckon I shook like a leaf, and I didn't know hardly what to do. But
|
|
I says:
|
|
|
|
“Please to don't poke fun at a poor girl like me, mum. If I'm in the
|
|
way here, I'll--”
|
|
|
|
“No, you won't. Set down and stay where you are. I ain't going to hurt
|
|
you, and I ain't going to tell on you, nuther. You just tell me your
|
|
secret, and trust me. I'll keep it; and, what's more, I'll help
|
|
you. So'll my old man if you want him to. You see, you're a runaway
|
|
'prentice, that's all. It ain't anything. There ain't no harm in it.
|
|
You've been treated bad, and you made up your mind to cut. Bless you,
|
|
child, I wouldn't tell on you. Tell me all about it now, that's a good
|
|
boy.”
|
|
|
|
So I said it wouldn't be no use to try to play it any longer, and I
|
|
would just make a clean breast and tell her everything, but she musn't
|
|
go back on her promise. Then I told her my father and mother was dead,
|
|
and the law had bound me out to a mean old farmer in the country thirty
|
|
mile back from the river, and he treated me so bad I couldn't stand it
|
|
no longer; he went away to be gone a couple of days, and so I took my
|
|
chance and stole some of his daughter's old clothes and cleared out, and
|
|
I had been three nights coming the thirty miles. I traveled nights,
|
|
and hid daytimes and slept, and the bag of bread and meat I carried from
|
|
home lasted me all the way, and I had a-plenty. I said I believed my
|
|
uncle Abner Moore would take care of me, and so that was why I struck
|
|
out for this town of Goshen.
|
|
|
|
“Goshen, child? This ain't Goshen. This is St. Petersburg. Goshen's
|
|
ten mile further up the river. Who told you this was Goshen?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, a man I met at daybreak this morning, just as I was going to turn
|
|
into the woods for my regular sleep. He told me when the roads forked I
|
|
must take the right hand, and five mile would fetch me to Goshen.”
|
|
|
|
“He was drunk, I reckon. He told you just exactly wrong.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, he did act like he was drunk, but it ain't no matter now. I got
|
|
to be moving along. I'll fetch Goshen before daylight.”
|
|
|
|
“Hold on a minute. I'll put you up a snack to eat. You might want it.”
|
|
|
|
So she put me up a snack, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Say, when a cow's laying down, which end of her gets up first? Answer
|
|
up prompt now--don't stop to study over it. Which end gets up first?”
|
|
|
|
“The hind end, mum.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, then, a horse?”
|
|
|
|
“The for'rard end, mum.”
|
|
|
|
“Which side of a tree does the moss grow on?”
|
|
|
|
“North side.”
|
|
|
|
“If fifteen cows is browsing on a hillside, how many of them eats with
|
|
their heads pointed the same direction?”
|
|
|
|
“The whole fifteen, mum.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, I reckon you _have_ lived in the country. I thought maybe you
|
|
was trying to hocus me again. What's your real name, now?”
|
|
|
|
“George Peters, mum.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, try to remember it, George. Don't forget and tell me it's
|
|
Elexander before you go, and then get out by saying it's George
|
|
Elexander when I catch you. And don't go about women in that old
|
|
calico. You do a girl tolerable poor, but you might fool men, maybe.
|
|
Bless you, child, when you set out to thread a needle don't hold the
|
|
thread still and fetch the needle up to it; hold the needle still and
|
|
poke the thread at it; that's the way a woman most always does, but a
|
|
man always does t'other way. And when you throw at a rat or anything,
|
|
hitch yourself up a tiptoe and fetch your hand up over your head as
|
|
awkward as you can, and miss your rat about six or seven foot. Throw
|
|
stiff-armed from the shoulder, like there was a pivot there for it to
|
|
turn on, like a girl; not from the wrist and elbow, with your arm out
|
|
to one side, like a boy. And, mind you, when a girl tries to catch
|
|
anything in her lap she throws her knees apart; she don't clap them
|
|
together, the way you did when you catched the lump of lead. Why, I
|
|
spotted you for a boy when you was threading the needle; and I contrived
|
|
the other things just to make certain. Now trot along to your uncle,
|
|
Sarah Mary Williams George Elexander Peters, and if you get into trouble
|
|
you send word to Mrs. Judith Loftus, which is me, and I'll do what I can
|
|
to get you out of it. Keep the river road all the way, and next time
|
|
you tramp take shoes and socks with you. The river road's a rocky one,
|
|
and your feet'll be in a condition when you get to Goshen, I reckon.”
|
|
|
|
I went up the bank about fifty yards, and then I doubled on my tracks
|
|
and slipped back to where my canoe was, a good piece below the house. I
|
|
jumped in, and was off in a hurry. I went up-stream far enough to
|
|
make the head of the island, and then started across. I took off the
|
|
sun-bonnet, for I didn't want no blinders on then. When I was about the
|
|
middle I heard the clock begin to strike, so I stops and listens; the
|
|
sound come faint over the water but clear--eleven. When I struck the
|
|
head of the island I never waited to blow, though I was most winded, but
|
|
I shoved right into the timber where my old camp used to be, and started
|
|
a good fire there on a high and dry spot.
|
|
|
|
Then I jumped in the canoe and dug out for our place, a mile and a half
|
|
below, as hard as I could go. I landed, and slopped through the timber
|
|
and up the ridge and into the cavern. There Jim laid, sound asleep on
|
|
the ground. I roused him out and says:
|
|
|
|
“Git up and hump yourself, Jim! There ain't a minute to lose. They're
|
|
after us!”
|
|
|
|
Jim never asked no questions, he never said a word; but the way he
|
|
worked for the next half an hour showed about how he was scared. By
|
|
that time everything we had in the world was on our raft, and she was
|
|
ready to be shoved out from the willow cove where she was hid. We
|
|
put out the camp fire at the cavern the first thing, and didn't show a
|
|
candle outside after that.
|
|
|
|
I took the canoe out from the shore a little piece, and took a look;
|
|
but if there was a boat around I couldn't see it, for stars and shadows
|
|
ain't good to see by. Then we got out the raft and slipped along down
|
|
in the shade, past the foot of the island dead still--never saying a
|
|
word.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XII.
|
|
|
|
IT must a been close on to one o'clock when we got below the island at
|
|
last, and the raft did seem to go mighty slow. If a boat was to come
|
|
along we was going to take to the canoe and break for the Illinois
|
|
shore; and it was well a boat didn't come, for we hadn't ever thought to
|
|
put the gun in the canoe, or a fishing-line, or anything to eat. We
|
|
was in ruther too much of a sweat to think of so many things. It warn't
|
|
good judgment to put _everything_ on the raft.
|
|
|
|
If the men went to the island I just expect they found the camp fire I
|
|
built, and watched it all night for Jim to come. Anyways, they stayed
|
|
away from us, and if my building the fire never fooled them it warn't no
|
|
fault of mine. I played it as low down on them as I could.
|
|
|
|
When the first streak of day began to show we tied up to a towhead in a
|
|
big bend on the Illinois side, and hacked off cottonwood branches with
|
|
the hatchet, and covered up the raft with them so she looked like there
|
|
had been a cave-in in the bank there. A tow-head is a sandbar that has
|
|
cottonwoods on it as thick as harrow-teeth.
|
|
|
|
We had mountains on the Missouri shore and heavy timber on the Illinois
|
|
side, and the channel was down the Missouri shore at that place, so we
|
|
warn't afraid of anybody running across us. We laid there all day,
|
|
and watched the rafts and steamboats spin down the Missouri shore, and
|
|
up-bound steamboats fight the big river in the middle. I told Jim all
|
|
about the time I had jabbering with that woman; and Jim said she was
|
|
a smart one, and if she was to start after us herself she wouldn't set
|
|
down and watch a camp fire--no, sir, she'd fetch a dog. Well, then, I
|
|
said, why couldn't she tell her husband to fetch a dog? Jim said he
|
|
bet she did think of it by the time the men was ready to start, and he
|
|
believed they must a gone up-town to get a dog and so they lost all that
|
|
time, or else we wouldn't be here on a towhead sixteen or seventeen mile
|
|
below the village--no, indeedy, we would be in that same old town again.
|
|
So I said I didn't care what was the reason they didn't get us as long
|
|
as they didn't.
|
|
|
|
When it was beginning to come on dark we poked our heads out of the
|
|
cottonwood thicket, and looked up and down and across; nothing in sight;
|
|
so Jim took up some of the top planks of the raft and built a snug
|
|
wigwam to get under in blazing weather and rainy, and to keep the things
|
|
dry. Jim made a floor for the wigwam, and raised it a foot or more above
|
|
the level of the raft, so now the blankets and all the traps was out of
|
|
reach of steamboat waves. Right in the middle of the wigwam we made a
|
|
layer of dirt about five or six inches deep with a frame around it for
|
|
to hold it to its place; this was to build a fire on in sloppy weather
|
|
or chilly; the wigwam would keep it from being seen. We made an extra
|
|
steering-oar, too, because one of the others might get broke on a snag
|
|
or something. We fixed up a short forked stick to hang the old lantern
|
|
on, because we must always light the lantern whenever we see a steamboat
|
|
coming down-stream, to keep from getting run over; but we wouldn't have
|
|
to light it for up-stream boats unless we see we was in what they call
|
|
a “crossing”; for the river was pretty high yet, very low banks being
|
|
still a little under water; so up-bound boats didn't always run the
|
|
channel, but hunted easy water.
|
|
|
|
This second night we run between seven and eight hours, with a current
|
|
that was making over four mile an hour. We catched fish and talked,
|
|
and we took a swim now and then to keep off sleepiness. It was kind of
|
|
solemn, drifting down the big, still river, laying on our backs looking
|
|
up at the stars, and we didn't ever feel like talking loud, and it
|
|
warn't often that we laughed--only a little kind of a low chuckle. We
|
|
had mighty good weather as a general thing, and nothing ever happened to
|
|
us at all--that night, nor the next, nor the next.
|
|
|
|
Every night we passed towns, some of them away up on black hillsides,
|
|
nothing but just a shiny bed of lights; not a house could you see. The
|
|
fifth night we passed St. Louis, and it was like the whole world lit up.
|
|
In St. Petersburg they used to say there was twenty or thirty thousand
|
|
people in St. Louis, but I never believed it till I see that wonderful
|
|
spread of lights at two o'clock that still night. There warn't a sound
|
|
there; everybody was asleep.
|
|
|
|
Every night now I used to slip ashore towards ten o'clock at some little
|
|
village, and buy ten or fifteen cents' worth of meal or bacon or other
|
|
stuff to eat; and sometimes I lifted a chicken that warn't roosting
|
|
comfortable, and took him along. Pap always said, take a chicken when
|
|
you get a chance, because if you don't want him yourself you can easy
|
|
find somebody that does, and a good deed ain't ever forgot. I never see
|
|
pap when he didn't want the chicken himself, but that is what he used to
|
|
say, anyway.
|
|
|
|
Mornings before daylight I slipped into cornfields and borrowed a
|
|
watermelon, or a mushmelon, or a punkin, or some new corn, or things of
|
|
that kind. Pap always said it warn't no harm to borrow things if you
|
|
was meaning to pay them back some time; but the widow said it warn't
|
|
anything but a soft name for stealing, and no decent body would do it.
|
|
Jim said he reckoned the widow was partly right and pap was partly
|
|
right; so the best way would be for us to pick out two or three things
|
|
from the list and say we wouldn't borrow them any more--then he reckoned
|
|
it wouldn't be no harm to borrow the others. So we talked it over all
|
|
one night, drifting along down the river, trying to make up our minds
|
|
whether to drop the watermelons, or the cantelopes, or the mushmelons,
|
|
or what. But towards daylight we got it all settled satisfactory, and
|
|
concluded to drop crabapples and p'simmons. We warn't feeling just
|
|
right before that, but it was all comfortable now. I was glad the way
|
|
it come out, too, because crabapples ain't ever good, and the p'simmons
|
|
wouldn't be ripe for two or three months yet.
|
|
|
|
We shot a water-fowl now and then that got up too early in the morning
|
|
or didn't go to bed early enough in the evening. Take it all round, we
|
|
lived pretty high.
|
|
|
|
The fifth night below St. Louis we had a big storm after midnight, with
|
|
a power of thunder and lightning, and the rain poured down in a solid
|
|
sheet. We stayed in the wigwam and let the raft take care of itself.
|
|
When the lightning glared out we could see a big straight river ahead,
|
|
and high, rocky bluffs on both sides. By and by says I, “Hel-_lo_, Jim,
|
|
looky yonder!” It was a steamboat that had killed herself on a rock.
|
|
We was drifting straight down for her. The lightning showed her very
|
|
distinct. She was leaning over, with part of her upper deck above
|
|
water, and you could see every little chimbly-guy clean and clear, and a
|
|
chair by the big bell, with an old slouch hat hanging on the back of it,
|
|
when the flashes come.
|
|
|
|
Well, it being away in the night and stormy, and all so mysterious-like,
|
|
I felt just the way any other boy would a felt when I see that wreck
|
|
laying there so mournful and lonesome in the middle of the river. I
|
|
wanted to get aboard of her and slink around a little, and see what
|
|
there was there. So I says:
|
|
|
|
“Le's land on her, Jim.”
|
|
|
|
But Jim was dead against it at first. He says:
|
|
|
|
“I doan' want to go fool'n 'long er no wrack. We's doin' blame' well,
|
|
en we better let blame' well alone, as de good book says. Like as not
|
|
dey's a watchman on dat wrack.”
|
|
|
|
“Watchman your grandmother,” I says; “there ain't nothing to watch but
|
|
the texas and the pilot-house; and do you reckon anybody's going to resk
|
|
his life for a texas and a pilot-house such a night as this, when
|
|
it's likely to break up and wash off down the river any minute?” Jim
|
|
couldn't say nothing to that, so he didn't try. “And besides,” I says,
|
|
“we might borrow something worth having out of the captain's stateroom.
|
|
Seegars, I bet you--and cost five cents apiece, solid cash. Steamboat
|
|
captains is always rich, and get sixty dollars a month, and _they_ don't
|
|
care a cent what a thing costs, you know, long as they want it. Stick a
|
|
candle in your pocket; I can't rest, Jim, till we give her a rummaging.
|
|
Do you reckon Tom Sawyer would ever go by this thing? Not for pie, he
|
|
wouldn't. He'd call it an adventure--that's what he'd call it; and he'd
|
|
land on that wreck if it was his last act. And wouldn't he throw style
|
|
into it?--wouldn't he spread himself, nor nothing? Why, you'd think it
|
|
was Christopher C'lumbus discovering Kingdom-Come. I wish Tom Sawyer
|
|
_was_ here.”
|
|
|
|
Jim he grumbled a little, but give in. He said we mustn't talk any more
|
|
than we could help, and then talk mighty low. The lightning showed us
|
|
the wreck again just in time, and we fetched the stabboard derrick, and
|
|
made fast there.
|
|
|
|
The deck was high out here. We went sneaking down the slope of it to
|
|
labboard, in the dark, towards the texas, feeling our way slow with our
|
|
feet, and spreading our hands out to fend off the guys, for it was so
|
|
dark we couldn't see no sign of them. Pretty soon we struck the forward
|
|
end of the skylight, and clumb on to it; and the next step fetched us in
|
|
front of the captain's door, which was open, and by Jimminy, away down
|
|
through the texas-hall we see a light! and all in the same second we
|
|
seem to hear low voices in yonder!
|
|
|
|
Jim whispered and said he was feeling powerful sick, and told me to come
|
|
along. I says, all right, and was going to start for the raft; but just
|
|
then I heard a voice wail out and say:
|
|
|
|
“Oh, please don't, boys; I swear I won't ever tell!”
|
|
|
|
Another voice said, pretty loud:
|
|
|
|
“It's a lie, Jim Turner. You've acted this way before. You always want
|
|
more'n your share of the truck, and you've always got it, too, because
|
|
you've swore 't if you didn't you'd tell. But this time you've said
|
|
it jest one time too many. You're the meanest, treacherousest hound in
|
|
this country.”
|
|
|
|
By this time Jim was gone for the raft. I was just a-biling with
|
|
curiosity; and I says to myself, Tom Sawyer wouldn't back out now,
|
|
and so I won't either; I'm a-going to see what's going on here. So I
|
|
dropped on my hands and knees in the little passage, and crept aft
|
|
in the dark till there warn't but one stateroom betwixt me and the
|
|
cross-hall of the texas. Then in there I see a man stretched on the
|
|
floor and tied hand and foot, and two men standing over him, and one
|
|
of them had a dim lantern in his hand, and the other one had a pistol.
|
|
This one kept pointing the pistol at the man's head on the floor, and
|
|
saying:
|
|
|
|
“I'd _like_ to! And I orter, too--a mean skunk!”
|
|
|
|
The man on the floor would shrivel up and say, “Oh, please don't, Bill;
|
|
I hain't ever goin' to tell.”
|
|
|
|
And every time he said that the man with the lantern would laugh and
|
|
say:
|
|
|
|
“'Deed you _ain't!_ You never said no truer thing 'n that, you bet
|
|
you.” And once he said: “Hear him beg! and yit if we hadn't got the
|
|
best of him and tied him he'd a killed us both. And what _for_? Jist
|
|
for noth'n. Jist because we stood on our _rights_--that's what for. But
|
|
I lay you ain't a-goin' to threaten nobody any more, Jim Turner. Put
|
|
_up_ that pistol, Bill.”
|
|
|
|
Bill says:
|
|
|
|
“I don't want to, Jake Packard. I'm for killin' him--and didn't he kill
|
|
old Hatfield jist the same way--and don't he deserve it?”
|
|
|
|
“But I don't _want_ him killed, and I've got my reasons for it.”
|
|
|
|
“Bless yo' heart for them words, Jake Packard! I'll never forgit you
|
|
long's I live!” says the man on the floor, sort of blubbering.
|
|
|
|
Packard didn't take no notice of that, but hung up his lantern on a nail
|
|
and started towards where I was there in the dark, and motioned Bill
|
|
to come. I crawfished as fast as I could about two yards, but the boat
|
|
slanted so that I couldn't make very good time; so to keep from getting
|
|
run over and catched I crawled into a stateroom on the upper side.
|
|
The man came a-pawing along in the dark, and when Packard got to my
|
|
stateroom, he says:
|
|
|
|
“Here--come in here.”
|
|
|
|
And in he come, and Bill after him. But before they got in I was up
|
|
in the upper berth, cornered, and sorry I come. Then they stood there,
|
|
with their hands on the ledge of the berth, and talked. I couldn't see
|
|
them, but I could tell where they was by the whisky they'd been having.
|
|
I was glad I didn't drink whisky; but it wouldn't made much difference
|
|
anyway, because most of the time they couldn't a treed me because I
|
|
didn't breathe. I was too scared. And, besides, a body _couldn't_
|
|
breathe and hear such talk. They talked low and earnest. Bill wanted
|
|
to kill Turner. He says:
|
|
|
|
“He's said he'll tell, and he will. If we was to give both our shares
|
|
to him _now_ it wouldn't make no difference after the row and the way
|
|
we've served him. Shore's you're born, he'll turn State's evidence; now
|
|
you hear _me_. I'm for putting him out of his troubles.”
|
|
|
|
“So'm I,” says Packard, very quiet.
|
|
|
|
“Blame it, I'd sorter begun to think you wasn't. Well, then, that's all
|
|
right. Le's go and do it.”
|
|
|
|
“Hold on a minute; I hain't had my say yit. You listen to me.
|
|
Shooting's good, but there's quieter ways if the thing's _got_ to be
|
|
done. But what I say is this: it ain't good sense to go court'n around
|
|
after a halter if you can git at what you're up to in some way that's
|
|
jist as good and at the same time don't bring you into no resks. Ain't
|
|
that so?”
|
|
|
|
“You bet it is. But how you goin' to manage it this time?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, my idea is this: we'll rustle around and gather up whatever
|
|
pickins we've overlooked in the staterooms, and shove for shore and hide
|
|
the truck. Then we'll wait. Now I say it ain't a-goin' to be more'n two
|
|
hours befo' this wrack breaks up and washes off down the river. See?
|
|
He'll be drownded, and won't have nobody to blame for it but his own
|
|
self. I reckon that's a considerble sight better 'n killin' of him.
|
|
I'm unfavorable to killin' a man as long as you can git aroun' it; it
|
|
ain't good sense, it ain't good morals. Ain't I right?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes, I reck'n you are. But s'pose she _don't_ break up and wash off?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, we can wait the two hours anyway and see, can't we?”
|
|
|
|
“All right, then; come along.”
|
|
|
|
So they started, and I lit out, all in a cold sweat, and scrambled
|
|
forward. It was dark as pitch there; but I said, in a kind of a coarse
|
|
whisper, “Jim!” and he answered up, right at my elbow, with a sort of a
|
|
moan, and I says:
|
|
|
|
“Quick, Jim, it ain't no time for fooling around and moaning; there's a
|
|
gang of murderers in yonder, and if we don't hunt up their boat and set
|
|
her drifting down the river so these fellows can't get away from the
|
|
wreck there's one of 'em going to be in a bad fix. But if we find their
|
|
boat we can put _all_ of 'em in a bad fix--for the sheriff 'll get 'em.
|
|
Quick--hurry! I'll hunt the labboard side, you hunt the stabboard. You
|
|
start at the raft, and--”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, my lordy, lordy! _raf'_? Dey ain' no raf' no mo'; she done broke
|
|
loose en gone I--en here we is!”
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIII.
|
|
|
|
WELL, I catched my breath and most fainted. Shut up on a wreck with
|
|
such a gang as that! But it warn't no time to be sentimentering. We'd
|
|
_got_ to find that boat now--had to have it for ourselves. So we went
|
|
a-quaking and shaking down the stabboard side, and slow work it was,
|
|
too--seemed a week before we got to the stern. No sign of a boat. Jim
|
|
said he didn't believe he could go any further--so scared he hadn't
|
|
hardly any strength left, he said. But I said, come on, if we get left
|
|
on this wreck we are in a fix, sure. So on we prowled again. We struck
|
|
for the stern of the texas, and found it, and then scrabbled along
|
|
forwards on the skylight, hanging on from shutter to shutter, for the
|
|
edge of the skylight was in the water. When we got pretty close to the
|
|
cross-hall door there was the skiff, sure enough! I could just barely
|
|
see her. I felt ever so thankful. In another second I would a been
|
|
aboard of her, but just then the door opened. One of the men stuck his
|
|
head out only about a couple of foot from me, and I thought I was gone;
|
|
but he jerked it in again, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Heave that blame lantern out o' sight, Bill!”
|
|
|
|
He flung a bag of something into the boat, and then got in himself and
|
|
set down. It was Packard. Then Bill _he_ come out and got in. Packard
|
|
says, in a low voice:
|
|
|
|
“All ready--shove off!”
|
|
|
|
I couldn't hardly hang on to the shutters, I was so weak. But Bill
|
|
says:
|
|
|
|
“Hold on--'d you go through him?”
|
|
|
|
“No. Didn't you?”
|
|
|
|
“No. So he's got his share o' the cash yet.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, then, come along; no use to take truck and leave money.”
|
|
|
|
“Say, won't he suspicion what we're up to?”
|
|
|
|
“Maybe he won't. But we got to have it anyway. Come along.”
|
|
|
|
So they got out and went in.
|
|
|
|
The door slammed to because it was on the careened side; and in a half
|
|
second I was in the boat, and Jim come tumbling after me. I out with my
|
|
knife and cut the rope, and away we went!
|
|
|
|
We didn't touch an oar, and we didn't speak nor whisper, nor hardly even
|
|
breathe. We went gliding swift along, dead silent, past the tip of the
|
|
paddle-box, and past the stern; then in a second or two more we was a
|
|
hundred yards below the wreck, and the darkness soaked her up, every
|
|
last sign of her, and we was safe, and knowed it.
|
|
|
|
When we was three or four hundred yards down-stream we see the lantern
|
|
show like a little spark at the texas door for a second, and we knowed
|
|
by that that the rascals had missed their boat, and was beginning to
|
|
understand that they was in just as much trouble now as Jim Turner was.
|
|
|
|
Then Jim manned the oars, and we took out after our raft. Now was the
|
|
first time that I begun to worry about the men--I reckon I hadn't
|
|
had time to before. I begun to think how dreadful it was, even for
|
|
murderers, to be in such a fix. I says to myself, there ain't no
|
|
telling but I might come to be a murderer myself yet, and then how would
|
|
I like it? So says I to Jim:
|
|
|
|
“The first light we see we'll land a hundred yards below it or above
|
|
it, in a place where it's a good hiding-place for you and the skiff, and
|
|
then I'll go and fix up some kind of a yarn, and get somebody to go for
|
|
that gang and get them out of their scrape, so they can be hung when
|
|
their time comes.”
|
|
|
|
But that idea was a failure; for pretty soon it begun to storm again,
|
|
and this time worse than ever. The rain poured down, and never a light
|
|
showed; everybody in bed, I reckon. We boomed along down the river,
|
|
watching for lights and watching for our raft. After a long time the
|
|
rain let up, but the clouds stayed, and the lightning kept whimpering,
|
|
and by and by a flash showed us a black thing ahead, floating, and we
|
|
made for it.
|
|
|
|
It was the raft, and mighty glad was we to get aboard of it again. We
|
|
seen a light now away down to the right, on shore. So I said I would
|
|
go for it. The skiff was half full of plunder which that gang had stole
|
|
there on the wreck. We hustled it on to the raft in a pile, and I told
|
|
Jim to float along down, and show a light when he judged he had gone
|
|
about two mile, and keep it burning till I come; then I manned my oars
|
|
and shoved for the light. As I got down towards it three or four more
|
|
showed--up on a hillside. It was a village. I closed in above the shore
|
|
light, and laid on my oars and floated. As I went by I see it was a
|
|
lantern hanging on the jackstaff of a double-hull ferryboat. I skimmed
|
|
around for the watchman, a-wondering whereabouts he slept; and by and
|
|
by I found him roosting on the bitts forward, with his head down between
|
|
his knees. I gave his shoulder two or three little shoves, and begun to
|
|
cry.
|
|
|
|
He stirred up in a kind of a startlish way; but when he see it was only
|
|
me he took a good gap and stretch, and then he says:
|
|
|
|
“Hello, what's up? Don't cry, bub. What's the trouble?”
|
|
|
|
I says:
|
|
|
|
“Pap, and mam, and sis, and--”
|
|
|
|
Then I broke down. He says:
|
|
|
|
“Oh, dang it now, _don't_ take on so; we all has to have our troubles,
|
|
and this 'n 'll come out all right. What's the matter with 'em?”
|
|
|
|
“They're--they're--are you the watchman of the boat?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes,” he says, kind of pretty-well-satisfied like. “I'm the captain
|
|
and the owner and the mate and the pilot and watchman and head
|
|
deck-hand; and sometimes I'm the freight and passengers. I ain't as
|
|
rich as old Jim Hornback, and I can't be so blame' generous and good
|
|
to Tom, Dick, and Harry as what he is, and slam around money the way he
|
|
does; but I've told him a many a time 't I wouldn't trade places with
|
|
him; for, says I, a sailor's life's the life for me, and I'm derned if
|
|
_I'd_ live two mile out o' town, where there ain't nothing ever goin'
|
|
on, not for all his spondulicks and as much more on top of it. Says I--”
|
|
|
|
I broke in and says:
|
|
|
|
“They're in an awful peck of trouble, and--”
|
|
|
|
“_Who_ is?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, pap and mam and sis and Miss Hooker; and if you'd take your
|
|
ferryboat and go up there--”
|
|
|
|
“Up where? Where are they?”
|
|
|
|
“On the wreck.”
|
|
|
|
“What wreck?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, there ain't but one.”
|
|
|
|
“What, you don't mean the Walter Scott?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes.”
|
|
|
|
“Good land! what are they doin' _there_, for gracious sakes?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, they didn't go there a-purpose.”
|
|
|
|
“I bet they didn't! Why, great goodness, there ain't no chance for 'em
|
|
if they don't git off mighty quick! Why, how in the nation did they
|
|
ever git into such a scrape?”
|
|
|
|
“Easy enough. Miss Hooker was a-visiting up there to the town--”
|
|
|
|
“Yes, Booth's Landing--go on.”
|
|
|
|
“She was a-visiting there at Booth's Landing, and just in the edge of
|
|
the evening she started over with her nigger woman in the horse-ferry
|
|
to stay all night at her friend's house, Miss What-you-may-call-her I
|
|
disremember her name--and they lost their steering-oar, and swung
|
|
around and went a-floating down, stern first, about two mile, and
|
|
saddle-baggsed on the wreck, and the ferryman and the nigger woman and
|
|
the horses was all lost, but Miss Hooker she made a grab and got aboard
|
|
the wreck. Well, about an hour after dark we come along down in our
|
|
trading-scow, and it was so dark we didn't notice the wreck till we was
|
|
right on it; and so _we_ saddle-baggsed; but all of us was saved but
|
|
Bill Whipple--and oh, he _was_ the best cretur!--I most wish 't it had
|
|
been me, I do.”
|
|
|
|
“My George! It's the beatenest thing I ever struck. And _then_ what
|
|
did you all do?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, we hollered and took on, but it's so wide there we couldn't
|
|
make nobody hear. So pap said somebody got to get ashore and get help
|
|
somehow. I was the only one that could swim, so I made a dash for it,
|
|
and Miss Hooker she said if I didn't strike help sooner, come here and
|
|
hunt up her uncle, and he'd fix the thing. I made the land about a mile
|
|
below, and been fooling along ever since, trying to get people to do
|
|
something, but they said, 'What, in such a night and such a current?
|
|
There ain't no sense in it; go for the steam ferry.' Now if you'll go
|
|
and--”
|
|
|
|
“By Jackson, I'd _like_ to, and, blame it, I don't know but I will; but
|
|
who in the dingnation's a-going' to _pay_ for it? Do you reckon your
|
|
pap--”
|
|
|
|
“Why _that's_ all right. Miss Hooker she tole me, _particular_, that
|
|
her uncle Hornback--”
|
|
|
|
“Great guns! is _he_ her uncle? Looky here, you break for that light
|
|
over yonder-way, and turn out west when you git there, and about a
|
|
quarter of a mile out you'll come to the tavern; tell 'em to dart you
|
|
out to Jim Hornback's, and he'll foot the bill. And don't you fool
|
|
around any, because he'll want to know the news. Tell him I'll have
|
|
his niece all safe before he can get to town. Hump yourself, now; I'm
|
|
a-going up around the corner here to roust out my engineer.”
|
|
|
|
I struck for the light, but as soon as he turned the corner I went back
|
|
and got into my skiff and bailed her out, and then pulled up shore in
|
|
the easy water about six hundred yards, and tucked myself in among
|
|
some woodboats; for I couldn't rest easy till I could see the ferryboat
|
|
start. But take it all around, I was feeling ruther comfortable on
|
|
accounts of taking all this trouble for that gang, for not many would
|
|
a done it. I wished the widow knowed about it. I judged she would be
|
|
proud of me for helping these rapscallions, because rapscallions and
|
|
dead beats is the kind the widow and good people takes the most interest
|
|
in.
|
|
|
|
Well, before long here comes the wreck, dim and dusky, sliding along
|
|
down! A kind of cold shiver went through me, and then I struck out for
|
|
her. She was very deep, and I see in a minute there warn't much chance
|
|
for anybody being alive in her. I pulled all around her and hollered
|
|
a little, but there wasn't any answer; all dead still. I felt a little
|
|
bit heavy-hearted about the gang, but not much, for I reckoned if they
|
|
could stand it I could.
|
|
|
|
Then here comes the ferryboat; so I shoved for the middle of the river
|
|
on a long down-stream slant; and when I judged I was out of eye-reach
|
|
I laid on my oars, and looked back and see her go and smell around the
|
|
wreck for Miss Hooker's remainders, because the captain would know her
|
|
uncle Hornback would want them; and then pretty soon the ferryboat give
|
|
it up and went for the shore, and I laid into my work and went a-booming
|
|
down the river.
|
|
|
|
It did seem a powerful long time before Jim's light showed up; and when
|
|
it did show it looked like it was a thousand mile off. By the time I
|
|
got there the sky was beginning to get a little gray in the east; so we
|
|
struck for an island, and hid the raft, and sunk the skiff, and turned
|
|
in and slept like dead people.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIV.
|
|
|
|
BY and by, when we got up, we turned over the truck the gang had stole
|
|
off of the wreck, and found boots, and blankets, and clothes, and all
|
|
sorts of other things, and a lot of books, and a spyglass, and three
|
|
boxes of seegars. We hadn't ever been this rich before in neither of
|
|
our lives. The seegars was prime. We laid off all the afternoon in the
|
|
woods talking, and me reading the books, and having a general good
|
|
time. I told Jim all about what happened inside the wreck and at the
|
|
ferryboat, and I said these kinds of things was adventures; but he said
|
|
he didn't want no more adventures. He said that when I went in the
|
|
texas and he crawled back to get on the raft and found her gone he
|
|
nearly died, because he judged it was all up with _him_ anyway it could
|
|
be fixed; for if he didn't get saved he would get drownded; and if he
|
|
did get saved, whoever saved him would send him back home so as to get
|
|
the reward, and then Miss Watson would sell him South, sure. Well, he
|
|
was right; he was most always right; he had an uncommon level head for a
|
|
nigger.
|
|
|
|
I read considerable to Jim about kings and dukes and earls and such, and
|
|
how gaudy they dressed, and how much style they put on, and called each
|
|
other your majesty, and your grace, and your lordship, and so on, 'stead
|
|
of mister; and Jim's eyes bugged out, and he was interested. He says:
|
|
|
|
“I didn' know dey was so many un um. I hain't hearn 'bout none un um,
|
|
skasely, but ole King Sollermun, onless you counts dem kings dat's in a
|
|
pack er k'yards. How much do a king git?”
|
|
|
|
“Get?” I says; “why, they get a thousand dollars a month if they want
|
|
it; they can have just as much as they want; everything belongs to
|
|
them.”
|
|
|
|
“_Ain'_ dat gay? En what dey got to do, Huck?”
|
|
|
|
“_They_ don't do nothing! Why, how you talk! They just set around.”
|
|
|
|
“No; is dat so?”
|
|
|
|
“Of course it is. They just set around--except, maybe, when there's a
|
|
war; then they go to the war. But other times they just lazy around; or
|
|
go hawking--just hawking and sp--Sh!--d' you hear a noise?”
|
|
|
|
We skipped out and looked; but it warn't nothing but the flutter of a
|
|
steamboat's wheel away down, coming around the point; so we come back.
|
|
|
|
“Yes,” says I, “and other times, when things is dull, they fuss with the
|
|
parlyment; and if everybody don't go just so he whacks their heads off.
|
|
But mostly they hang round the harem.”
|
|
|
|
“Roun' de which?”
|
|
|
|
“Harem.”
|
|
|
|
“What's de harem?”
|
|
|
|
“The place where he keeps his wives. Don't you know about the harem?
|
|
Solomon had one; he had about a million wives.”
|
|
|
|
“Why, yes, dat's so; I--I'd done forgot it. A harem's a bo'd'n-house, I
|
|
reck'n. Mos' likely dey has rackety times in de nussery. En I reck'n
|
|
de wives quarrels considable; en dat 'crease de racket. Yit dey say
|
|
Sollermun de wises' man dat ever live'. I doan' take no stock in
|
|
dat. Bekase why: would a wise man want to live in de mids' er sich a
|
|
blim-blammin' all de time? No--'deed he wouldn't. A wise man 'ud take
|
|
en buil' a biler-factry; en den he could shet _down_ de biler-factry
|
|
when he want to res'.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, but he _was_ the wisest man, anyway; because the widow she told
|
|
me so, her own self.”
|
|
|
|
“I doan k'yer what de widder say, he _warn't_ no wise man nuther. He
|
|
had some er de dad-fetchedes' ways I ever see. Does you know 'bout dat
|
|
chile dat he 'uz gwyne to chop in two?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes, the widow told me all about it.”
|
|
|
|
“_Well_, den! Warn' dat de beatenes' notion in de worl'? You jes'
|
|
take en look at it a minute. Dah's de stump, dah--dat's one er de women;
|
|
heah's you--dat's de yuther one; I's Sollermun; en dish yer dollar bill's
|
|
de chile. Bofe un you claims it. What does I do? Does I shin aroun'
|
|
mongs' de neighbors en fine out which un you de bill _do_ b'long to, en
|
|
han' it over to de right one, all safe en soun', de way dat anybody dat
|
|
had any gumption would? No; I take en whack de bill in _two_, en give
|
|
half un it to you, en de yuther half to de yuther woman. Dat's de way
|
|
Sollermun was gwyne to do wid de chile. Now I want to ast you: what's
|
|
de use er dat half a bill?--can't buy noth'n wid it. En what use is a
|
|
half a chile? I wouldn' give a dern for a million un um.”
|
|
|
|
“But hang it, Jim, you've clean missed the point--blame it, you've missed
|
|
it a thousand mile.”
|
|
|
|
“Who? Me? Go 'long. Doan' talk to me 'bout yo' pints. I reck'n I
|
|
knows sense when I sees it; en dey ain' no sense in sich doin's as
|
|
dat. De 'spute warn't 'bout a half a chile, de 'spute was 'bout a whole
|
|
chile; en de man dat think he kin settle a 'spute 'bout a whole chile
|
|
wid a half a chile doan' know enough to come in out'n de rain. Doan'
|
|
talk to me 'bout Sollermun, Huck, I knows him by de back.”
|
|
|
|
“But I tell you you don't get the point.”
|
|
|
|
“Blame de point! I reck'n I knows what I knows. En mine you, de _real_
|
|
pint is down furder--it's down deeper. It lays in de way Sollermun was
|
|
raised. You take a man dat's got on'y one or two chillen; is dat man
|
|
gwyne to be waseful o' chillen? No, he ain't; he can't 'ford it. _He_
|
|
know how to value 'em. But you take a man dat's got 'bout five million
|
|
chillen runnin' roun' de house, en it's diffunt. _He_ as soon chop a
|
|
chile in two as a cat. Dey's plenty mo'. A chile er two, mo' er less,
|
|
warn't no consekens to Sollermun, dad fatch him!”
|
|
|
|
I never see such a nigger. If he got a notion in his head once, there
|
|
warn't no getting it out again. He was the most down on Solomon of
|
|
any nigger I ever see. So I went to talking about other kings, and let
|
|
Solomon slide. I told about Louis Sixteenth that got his head cut off
|
|
in France long time ago; and about his little boy the dolphin, that
|
|
would a been a king, but they took and shut him up in jail, and some say
|
|
he died there.
|
|
|
|
“Po' little chap.”
|
|
|
|
“But some says he got out and got away, and come to America.”
|
|
|
|
“Dat's good! But he'll be pooty lonesome--dey ain' no kings here, is
|
|
dey, Huck?”
|
|
|
|
“No.”
|
|
|
|
“Den he cain't git no situation. What he gwyne to do?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, I don't know. Some of them gets on the police, and some of them
|
|
learns people how to talk French.”
|
|
|
|
“Why, Huck, doan' de French people talk de same way we does?”
|
|
|
|
“_No_, Jim; you couldn't understand a word they said--not a single word.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, now, I be ding-busted! How do dat come?”
|
|
|
|
“I don't know; but it's so. I got some of their jabber out of a book.
|
|
S'pose a man was to come to you and say Polly-voo-franzy--what would you
|
|
think?”
|
|
|
|
“I wouldn' think nuff'n; I'd take en bust him over de head--dat is, if he
|
|
warn't white. I wouldn't 'low no nigger to call me dat.”
|
|
|
|
“Shucks, it ain't calling you anything. It's only saying, do you know
|
|
how to talk French?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, den, why couldn't he _say_ it?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, he _is_ a-saying it. That's a Frenchman's _way_ of saying it.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, it's a blame ridicklous way, en I doan' want to hear no mo' 'bout
|
|
it. Dey ain' no sense in it.”
|
|
|
|
“Looky here, Jim; does a cat talk like we do?”
|
|
|
|
“No, a cat don't.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, does a cow?”
|
|
|
|
“No, a cow don't, nuther.”
|
|
|
|
“Does a cat talk like a cow, or a cow talk like a cat?”
|
|
|
|
“No, dey don't.”
|
|
|
|
“It's natural and right for 'em to talk different from each other, ain't
|
|
it?”
|
|
|
|
“Course.”
|
|
|
|
“And ain't it natural and right for a cat and a cow to talk different
|
|
from _us_?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, mos' sholy it is.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, then, why ain't it natural and right for a _Frenchman_ to talk
|
|
different from us? You answer me that.”
|
|
|
|
“Is a cat a man, Huck?”
|
|
|
|
“No.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, den, dey ain't no sense in a cat talkin' like a man. Is a cow a
|
|
man?--er is a cow a cat?”
|
|
|
|
“No, she ain't either of them.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, den, she ain't got no business to talk like either one er the
|
|
yuther of 'em. Is a Frenchman a man?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes.”
|
|
|
|
“_Well_, den! Dad blame it, why doan' he _talk_ like a man? You answer
|
|
me _dat_!”
|
|
|
|
I see it warn't no use wasting words--you can't learn a nigger to argue.
|
|
So I quit.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XV.
|
|
|
|
WE judged that three nights more would fetch us to Cairo, at the bottom
|
|
of Illinois, where the Ohio River comes in, and that was what we was
|
|
after. We would sell the raft and get on a steamboat and go way up the
|
|
Ohio amongst the free States, and then be out of trouble.
|
|
|
|
Well, the second night a fog begun to come on, and we made for a towhead
|
|
to tie to, for it wouldn't do to try to run in a fog; but when I paddled
|
|
ahead in the canoe, with the line to make fast, there warn't anything
|
|
but little saplings to tie to. I passed the line around one of them
|
|
right on the edge of the cut bank, but there was a stiff current, and
|
|
the raft come booming down so lively she tore it out by the roots and
|
|
away she went. I see the fog closing down, and it made me so sick and
|
|
scared I couldn't budge for most a half a minute it seemed to me--and
|
|
then there warn't no raft in sight; you couldn't see twenty yards. I
|
|
jumped into the canoe and run back to the stern, and grabbed the paddle
|
|
and set her back a stroke. But she didn't come. I was in such a hurry
|
|
I hadn't untied her. I got up and tried to untie her, but I was so
|
|
excited my hands shook so I couldn't hardly do anything with them.
|
|
|
|
As soon as I got started I took out after the raft, hot and heavy, right
|
|
down the towhead. That was all right as far as it went, but the towhead
|
|
warn't sixty yards long, and the minute I flew by the foot of it I shot
|
|
out into the solid white fog, and hadn't no more idea which way I was
|
|
going than a dead man.
|
|
|
|
Thinks I, it won't do to paddle; first I know I'll run into the bank
|
|
or a towhead or something; I got to set still and float, and yet it's
|
|
mighty fidgety business to have to hold your hands still at such a time.
|
|
I whooped and listened. Away down there somewheres I hears a small
|
|
whoop, and up comes my spirits. I went tearing after it, listening
|
|
sharp to hear it again. The next time it come I see I warn't heading
|
|
for it, but heading away to the right of it. And the next time I was
|
|
heading away to the left of it--and not gaining on it much either, for
|
|
I was flying around, this way and that and t'other, but it was going
|
|
straight ahead all the time.
|
|
|
|
I did wish the fool would think to beat a tin pan, and beat it all the
|
|
time, but he never did, and it was the still places between the whoops
|
|
that was making the trouble for me. Well, I fought along, and directly
|
|
I hears the whoop _behind_ me. I was tangled good now. That was
|
|
somebody else's whoop, or else I was turned around.
|
|
|
|
I throwed the paddle down. I heard the whoop again; it was behind me
|
|
yet, but in a different place; it kept coming, and kept changing its
|
|
place, and I kept answering, till by and by it was in front of me again,
|
|
and I knowed the current had swung the canoe's head down-stream, and I
|
|
was all right if that was Jim and not some other raftsman hollering.
|
|
I couldn't tell nothing about voices in a fog, for nothing don't look
|
|
natural nor sound natural in a fog.
|
|
|
|
The whooping went on, and in about a minute I come a-booming down on a
|
|
cut bank with smoky ghosts of big trees on it, and the current throwed
|
|
me off to the left and shot by, amongst a lot of snags that fairly
|
|
roared, the currrent was tearing by them so swift.
|
|
|
|
In another second or two it was solid white and still again. I set
|
|
perfectly still then, listening to my heart thump, and I reckon I didn't
|
|
draw a breath while it thumped a hundred.
|
|
|
|
I just give up then. I knowed what the matter was. That cut bank
|
|
was an island, and Jim had gone down t'other side of it. It warn't no
|
|
towhead that you could float by in ten minutes. It had the big timber
|
|
of a regular island; it might be five or six miles long and more than
|
|
half a mile wide.
|
|
|
|
I kept quiet, with my ears cocked, about fifteen minutes, I reckon. I
|
|
was floating along, of course, four or five miles an hour; but you don't
|
|
ever think of that. No, you _feel_ like you are laying dead still on
|
|
the water; and if a little glimpse of a snag slips by you don't think to
|
|
yourself how fast _you're_ going, but you catch your breath and think,
|
|
my! how that snag's tearing along. If you think it ain't dismal and
|
|
lonesome out in a fog that way by yourself in the night, you try it
|
|
once--you'll see.
|
|
|
|
Next, for about a half an hour, I whoops now and then; at last I hears
|
|
the answer a long ways off, and tries to follow it, but I couldn't do
|
|
it, and directly I judged I'd got into a nest of towheads, for I had
|
|
little dim glimpses of them on both sides of me--sometimes just a narrow
|
|
channel between, and some that I couldn't see I knowed was there because
|
|
I'd hear the wash of the current against the old dead brush and trash
|
|
that hung over the banks. Well, I warn't long loosing the whoops down
|
|
amongst the towheads; and I only tried to chase them a little while,
|
|
anyway, because it was worse than chasing a Jack-o'-lantern. You never
|
|
knowed a sound dodge around so, and swap places so quick and so much.
|
|
|
|
I had to claw away from the bank pretty lively four or five times, to
|
|
keep from knocking the islands out of the river; and so I judged the
|
|
raft must be butting into the bank every now and then, or else it would
|
|
get further ahead and clear out of hearing--it was floating a little
|
|
faster than what I was.
|
|
|
|
Well, I seemed to be in the open river again by and by, but I couldn't
|
|
hear no sign of a whoop nowheres. I reckoned Jim had fetched up on a
|
|
snag, maybe, and it was all up with him. I was good and tired, so I
|
|
laid down in the canoe and said I wouldn't bother no more. I didn't
|
|
want to go to sleep, of course; but I was so sleepy I couldn't help it;
|
|
so I thought I would take jest one little cat-nap.
|
|
|
|
But I reckon it was more than a cat-nap, for when I waked up the stars
|
|
was shining bright, the fog was all gone, and I was spinning down a
|
|
big bend stern first. First I didn't know where I was; I thought I was
|
|
dreaming; and when things began to come back to me they seemed to come
|
|
up dim out of last week.
|
|
|
|
It was a monstrous big river here, with the tallest and the thickest
|
|
kind of timber on both banks; just a solid wall, as well as I could see
|
|
by the stars. I looked away down-stream, and seen a black speck on the
|
|
water. I took after it; but when I got to it it warn't nothing but a
|
|
couple of sawlogs made fast together. Then I see another speck, and
|
|
chased that; then another, and this time I was right. It was the raft.
|
|
|
|
When I got to it Jim was setting there with his head down between his
|
|
knees, asleep, with his right arm hanging over the steering-oar. The
|
|
other oar was smashed off, and the raft was littered up with leaves and
|
|
branches and dirt. So she'd had a rough time.
|
|
|
|
I made fast and laid down under Jim's nose on the raft, and began to
|
|
gap, and stretch my fists out against Jim, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Hello, Jim, have I been asleep? Why didn't you stir me up?”
|
|
|
|
“Goodness gracious, is dat you, Huck? En you ain' dead--you ain'
|
|
drownded--you's back agin? It's too good for true, honey, it's too good
|
|
for true. Lemme look at you chile, lemme feel o' you. No, you ain'
|
|
dead! you's back agin, 'live en soun', jis de same ole Huck--de same ole
|
|
Huck, thanks to goodness!”
|
|
|
|
“What's the matter with you, Jim? You been a-drinking?”
|
|
|
|
“Drinkin'? Has I ben a-drinkin'? Has I had a chance to be a-drinkin'?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, then, what makes you talk so wild?”
|
|
|
|
“How does I talk wild?”
|
|
|
|
“_How_? Why, hain't you been talking about my coming back, and all that
|
|
stuff, as if I'd been gone away?”
|
|
|
|
“Huck--Huck Finn, you look me in de eye; look me in de eye. _Hain't_ you
|
|
ben gone away?”
|
|
|
|
“Gone away? Why, what in the nation do you mean? I hain't been gone
|
|
anywheres. Where would I go to?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, looky here, boss, dey's sumf'n wrong, dey is. Is I _me_, or who
|
|
_is_ I? Is I heah, or whah _is_ I? Now dat's what I wants to know.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, I think you're here, plain enough, but I think you're a
|
|
tangle-headed old fool, Jim.”
|
|
|
|
“I is, is I? Well, you answer me dis: Didn't you tote out de line in
|
|
de canoe fer to make fas' to de tow-head?”
|
|
|
|
“No, I didn't. What tow-head? I hain't see no tow-head.”
|
|
|
|
“You hain't seen no towhead? Looky here, didn't de line pull loose en
|
|
de raf' go a-hummin' down de river, en leave you en de canoe behine in
|
|
de fog?”
|
|
|
|
“What fog?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, de fog!--de fog dat's been aroun' all night. En didn't you whoop,
|
|
en didn't I whoop, tell we got mix' up in de islands en one un us got
|
|
los' en t'other one was jis' as good as los', 'kase he didn' know whah
|
|
he wuz? En didn't I bust up agin a lot er dem islands en have a turrible
|
|
time en mos' git drownded? Now ain' dat so, boss--ain't it so? You
|
|
answer me dat.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, this is too many for me, Jim. I hain't seen no fog, nor no
|
|
islands, nor no troubles, nor nothing. I been setting here talking with
|
|
you all night till you went to sleep about ten minutes ago, and I reckon
|
|
I done the same. You couldn't a got drunk in that time, so of course
|
|
you've been dreaming.”
|
|
|
|
“Dad fetch it, how is I gwyne to dream all dat in ten minutes?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, hang it all, you did dream it, because there didn't any of it
|
|
happen.”
|
|
|
|
“But, Huck, it's all jis' as plain to me as--”
|
|
|
|
“It don't make no difference how plain it is; there ain't nothing in it.
|
|
I know, because I've been here all the time.”
|
|
|
|
Jim didn't say nothing for about five minutes, but set there studying
|
|
over it. Then he says:
|
|
|
|
“Well, den, I reck'n I did dream it, Huck; but dog my cats ef it ain't
|
|
de powerfullest dream I ever see. En I hain't ever had no dream b'fo'
|
|
dat's tired me like dis one.”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, well, that's all right, because a dream does tire a body like
|
|
everything sometimes. But this one was a staving dream; tell me all
|
|
about it, Jim.”
|
|
|
|
So Jim went to work and told me the whole thing right through, just as
|
|
it happened, only he painted it up considerable. Then he said he must
|
|
start in and “'terpret” it, because it was sent for a warning. He said
|
|
the first towhead stood for a man that would try to do us some good, but
|
|
the current was another man that would get us away from him. The whoops
|
|
was warnings that would come to us every now and then, and if we didn't
|
|
try hard to make out to understand them they'd just take us into bad
|
|
luck, 'stead of keeping us out of it. The lot of towheads was troubles
|
|
we was going to get into with quarrelsome people and all kinds of mean
|
|
folks, but if we minded our business and didn't talk back and aggravate
|
|
them, we would pull through and get out of the fog and into the big
|
|
clear river, which was the free States, and wouldn't have no more
|
|
trouble.
|
|
|
|
It had clouded up pretty dark just after I got on to the raft, but it
|
|
was clearing up again now.
|
|
|
|
“Oh, well, that's all interpreted well enough as far as it goes, Jim,” I
|
|
says; “but what does _these_ things stand for?”
|
|
|
|
It was the leaves and rubbish on the raft and the smashed oar. You
|
|
could see them first-rate now.
|
|
|
|
Jim looked at the trash, and then looked at me, and back at the trash
|
|
again. He had got the dream fixed so strong in his head that he
|
|
couldn't seem to shake it loose and get the facts back into its place
|
|
again right away. But when he did get the thing straightened around he
|
|
looked at me steady without ever smiling, and says:
|
|
|
|
“What do dey stan' for? I'se gwyne to tell you. When I got all wore
|
|
out wid work, en wid de callin' for you, en went to sleep, my heart wuz
|
|
mos' broke bekase you wuz los', en I didn' k'yer no' mo' what become
|
|
er me en de raf'. En when I wake up en fine you back agin, all safe
|
|
en soun', de tears come, en I could a got down on my knees en kiss yo'
|
|
foot, I's so thankful. En all you wuz thinkin' 'bout wuz how you could
|
|
make a fool uv ole Jim wid a lie. Dat truck dah is _trash_; en trash
|
|
is what people is dat puts dirt on de head er dey fren's en makes 'em
|
|
ashamed.”
|
|
|
|
Then he got up slow and walked to the wigwam, and went in there without
|
|
saying anything but that. But that was enough. It made me feel so mean
|
|
I could almost kissed _his_ foot to get him to take it back.
|
|
|
|
It was fifteen minutes before I could work myself up to go and humble
|
|
myself to a nigger; but I done it, and I warn't ever sorry for it
|
|
afterwards, neither. I didn't do him no more mean tricks, and I
|
|
wouldn't done that one if I'd a knowed it would make him feel that way.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVI.
|
|
|
|
WE slept most all day, and started out at night, a little ways behind a
|
|
monstrous long raft that was as long going by as a procession. She had
|
|
four long sweeps at each end, so we judged she carried as many as thirty
|
|
men, likely. She had five big wigwams aboard, wide apart, and an open
|
|
camp fire in the middle, and a tall flag-pole at each end. There was a
|
|
power of style about her. It _amounted_ to something being a raftsman
|
|
on such a craft as that.
|
|
|
|
We went drifting down into a big bend, and the night clouded up and got
|
|
hot. The river was very wide, and was walled with solid timber on
|
|
both sides; you couldn't see a break in it hardly ever, or a light. We
|
|
talked about Cairo, and wondered whether we would know it when we got to
|
|
it. I said likely we wouldn't, because I had heard say there warn't but
|
|
about a dozen houses there, and if they didn't happen to have them lit
|
|
up, how was we going to know we was passing a town? Jim said if the two
|
|
big rivers joined together there, that would show. But I said maybe
|
|
we might think we was passing the foot of an island and coming into the
|
|
same old river again. That disturbed Jim--and me too. So the question
|
|
was, what to do? I said, paddle ashore the first time a light showed,
|
|
and tell them pap was behind, coming along with a trading-scow, and
|
|
was a green hand at the business, and wanted to know how far it was to
|
|
Cairo. Jim thought it was a good idea, so we took a smoke on it and
|
|
waited.
|
|
|
|
There warn't nothing to do now but to look out sharp for the town, and
|
|
not pass it without seeing it. He said he'd be mighty sure to see it,
|
|
because he'd be a free man the minute he seen it, but if he missed it
|
|
he'd be in a slave country again and no more show for freedom. Every
|
|
little while he jumps up and says:
|
|
|
|
“Dah she is?”
|
|
|
|
But it warn't. It was Jack-o'-lanterns, or lightning bugs; so he set
|
|
down again, and went to watching, same as before. Jim said it made him
|
|
all over trembly and feverish to be so close to freedom. Well, I can
|
|
tell you it made me all over trembly and feverish, too, to hear him,
|
|
because I begun to get it through my head that he _was_ most free--and
|
|
who was to blame for it? Why, _me_. I couldn't get that out of my
|
|
conscience, no how nor no way. It got to troubling me so I couldn't
|
|
rest; I couldn't stay still in one place. It hadn't ever come home to
|
|
me before, what this thing was that I was doing. But now it did; and it
|
|
stayed with me, and scorched me more and more. I tried to make out to
|
|
myself that I warn't to blame, because I didn't run Jim off from his
|
|
rightful owner; but it warn't no use, conscience up and says, every
|
|
time, “But you knowed he was running for his freedom, and you could a
|
|
paddled ashore and told somebody.” That was so--I couldn't get around
|
|
that noway. That was where it pinched. Conscience says to me, “What
|
|
had poor Miss Watson done to you that you could see her nigger go off
|
|
right under your eyes and never say one single word? What did that poor
|
|
old woman do to you that you could treat her so mean? Why, she tried to
|
|
learn you your book, she tried to learn you your manners, she tried to
|
|
be good to you every way she knowed how. _That's_ what she done.”
|
|
|
|
I got to feeling so mean and so miserable I most wished I was dead. I
|
|
fidgeted up and down the raft, abusing myself to myself, and Jim was
|
|
fidgeting up and down past me. We neither of us could keep still.
|
|
Every time he danced around and says, “Dah's Cairo!” it went through me
|
|
like a shot, and I thought if it _was_ Cairo I reckoned I would die of
|
|
miserableness.
|
|
|
|
Jim talked out loud all the time while I was talking to myself. He was
|
|
saying how the first thing he would do when he got to a free State he
|
|
would go to saving up money and never spend a single cent, and when he
|
|
got enough he would buy his wife, which was owned on a farm close to
|
|
where Miss Watson lived; and then they would both work to buy the
|
|
two children, and if their master wouldn't sell them, they'd get an
|
|
Ab'litionist to go and steal them.
|
|
|
|
It most froze me to hear such talk. He wouldn't ever dared to talk such
|
|
talk in his life before. Just see what a difference it made in him the
|
|
minute he judged he was about free. It was according to the old saying,
|
|
“Give a nigger an inch and he'll take an ell.” Thinks I, this is what
|
|
comes of my not thinking. Here was this nigger, which I had as good
|
|
as helped to run away, coming right out flat-footed and saying he would
|
|
steal his children--children that belonged to a man I didn't even know; a
|
|
man that hadn't ever done me no harm.
|
|
|
|
I was sorry to hear Jim say that, it was such a lowering of him. My
|
|
conscience got to stirring me up hotter than ever, until at last I says
|
|
to it, “Let up on me--it ain't too late yet--I'll paddle ashore at the
|
|
first light and tell.” I felt easy and happy and light as a feather
|
|
right off. All my troubles was gone. I went to looking out sharp for a
|
|
light, and sort of singing to myself. By and by one showed. Jim sings
|
|
out:
|
|
|
|
“We's safe, Huck, we's safe! Jump up and crack yo' heels! Dat's de
|
|
good ole Cairo at las', I jis knows it!”
|
|
|
|
I says:
|
|
|
|
“I'll take the canoe and go and see, Jim. It mightn't be, you know.”
|
|
|
|
He jumped and got the canoe ready, and put his old coat in the bottom
|
|
for me to set on, and give me the paddle; and as I shoved off, he says:
|
|
|
|
“Pooty soon I'll be a-shout'n' for joy, en I'll say, it's all on
|
|
accounts o' Huck; I's a free man, en I couldn't ever ben free ef it
|
|
hadn' ben for Huck; Huck done it. Jim won't ever forgit you, Huck;
|
|
you's de bes' fren' Jim's ever had; en you's de _only_ fren' ole Jim's
|
|
got now.”
|
|
|
|
I was paddling off, all in a sweat to tell on him; but when he says
|
|
this, it seemed to kind of take the tuck all out of me. I went along
|
|
slow then, and I warn't right down certain whether I was glad I started
|
|
or whether I warn't. When I was fifty yards off, Jim says:
|
|
|
|
“Dah you goes, de ole true Huck; de on'y white genlman dat ever kep' his
|
|
promise to ole Jim.”
|
|
|
|
Well, I just felt sick. But I says, I _got_ to do it--I can't get _out_
|
|
of it. Right then along comes a skiff with two men in it with guns, and
|
|
they stopped and I stopped. One of them says:
|
|
|
|
“What's that yonder?”
|
|
|
|
“A piece of a raft,” I says.
|
|
|
|
“Do you belong on it?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes, sir.”
|
|
|
|
“Any men on it?”
|
|
|
|
“Only one, sir.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, there's five niggers run off to-night up yonder, above the head
|
|
of the bend. Is your man white or black?”
|
|
|
|
I didn't answer up prompt. I tried to, but the words wouldn't come. I
|
|
tried for a second or two to brace up and out with it, but I warn't man
|
|
enough--hadn't the spunk of a rabbit. I see I was weakening; so I just
|
|
give up trying, and up and says:
|
|
|
|
“He's white.”
|
|
|
|
“I reckon we'll go and see for ourselves.”
|
|
|
|
“I wish you would,” says I, “because it's pap that's there, and maybe
|
|
you'd help me tow the raft ashore where the light is. He's sick--and so
|
|
is mam and Mary Ann.”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, the devil! we're in a hurry, boy. But I s'pose we've got to.
|
|
Come, buckle to your paddle, and let's get along.”
|
|
|
|
I buckled to my paddle and they laid to their oars. When we had made a
|
|
stroke or two, I says:
|
|
|
|
“Pap'll be mighty much obleeged to you, I can tell you. Everybody goes
|
|
away when I want them to help me tow the raft ashore, and I can't do it
|
|
by myself.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, that's infernal mean. Odd, too. Say, boy, what's the matter
|
|
with your father?”
|
|
|
|
“It's the--a--the--well, it ain't anything much.”
|
|
|
|
They stopped pulling. It warn't but a mighty little ways to the raft
|
|
now. One says:
|
|
|
|
“Boy, that's a lie. What _is_ the matter with your pap? Answer up
|
|
square now, and it'll be the better for you.”
|
|
|
|
“I will, sir, I will, honest--but don't leave us, please. It's
|
|
the--the--Gentlemen, if you'll only pull ahead, and let me heave you the
|
|
headline, you won't have to come a-near the raft--please do.”
|
|
|
|
“Set her back, John, set her back!” says one. They backed water. “Keep
|
|
away, boy--keep to looard. Confound it, I just expect the wind has
|
|
blowed it to us. Your pap's got the small-pox, and you know it precious
|
|
well. Why didn't you come out and say so? Do you want to spread it all
|
|
over?”
|
|
|
|
“Well,” says I, a-blubbering, “I've told everybody before, and they just
|
|
went away and left us.”
|
|
|
|
“Poor devil, there's something in that. We are right down sorry for
|
|
you, but we--well, hang it, we don't want the small-pox, you see. Look
|
|
here, I'll tell you what to do. Don't you try to land by yourself, or
|
|
you'll smash everything to pieces. You float along down about twenty
|
|
miles, and you'll come to a town on the left-hand side of the river. It
|
|
will be long after sun-up then, and when you ask for help you tell them
|
|
your folks are all down with chills and fever. Don't be a fool again,
|
|
and let people guess what is the matter. Now we're trying to do you a
|
|
kindness; so you just put twenty miles between us, that's a good boy.
|
|
It wouldn't do any good to land yonder where the light is--it's only a
|
|
wood-yard. Say, I reckon your father's poor, and I'm bound to say he's
|
|
in pretty hard luck. Here, I'll put a twenty-dollar gold piece on this
|
|
board, and you get it when it floats by. I feel mighty mean to leave
|
|
you; but my kingdom! it won't do to fool with small-pox, don't you see?”
|
|
|
|
“Hold on, Parker,” says the other man, “here's a twenty to put on the
|
|
board for me. Good-bye, boy; you do as Mr. Parker told you, and you'll
|
|
be all right.”
|
|
|
|
“That's so, my boy--good-bye, good-bye. If you see any runaway niggers
|
|
you get help and nab them, and you can make some money by it.”
|
|
|
|
“Good-bye, sir,” says I; “I won't let no runaway niggers get by me if I
|
|
can help it.”
|
|
|
|
They went off and I got aboard the raft, feeling bad and low, because I
|
|
knowed very well I had done wrong, and I see it warn't no use for me
|
|
to try to learn to do right; a body that don't get _started_ right when
|
|
he's little ain't got no show--when the pinch comes there ain't nothing
|
|
to back him up and keep him to his work, and so he gets beat. Then I
|
|
thought a minute, and says to myself, hold on; s'pose you'd a done right
|
|
and give Jim up, would you felt better than what you do now? No, says
|
|
I, I'd feel bad--I'd feel just the same way I do now. Well, then, says
|
|
I, what's the use you learning to do right when it's troublesome to do
|
|
right and ain't no trouble to do wrong, and the wages is just the same?
|
|
I was stuck. I couldn't answer that. So I reckoned I wouldn't bother
|
|
no more about it, but after this always do whichever come handiest at
|
|
the time.
|
|
|
|
I went into the wigwam; Jim warn't there. I looked all around; he
|
|
warn't anywhere. I says:
|
|
|
|
“Jim!”
|
|
|
|
“Here I is, Huck. Is dey out o' sight yit? Don't talk loud.”
|
|
|
|
He was in the river under the stern oar, with just his nose out. I told
|
|
him they were out of sight, so he come aboard. He says:
|
|
|
|
“I was a-listenin' to all de talk, en I slips into de river en was gwyne
|
|
to shove for sho' if dey come aboard. Den I was gwyne to swim to de
|
|
raf' agin when dey was gone. But lawsy, how you did fool 'em, Huck!
|
|
Dat _wuz_ de smartes' dodge! I tell you, chile, I'spec it save' ole
|
|
Jim--ole Jim ain't going to forgit you for dat, honey.”
|
|
|
|
Then we talked about the money. It was a pretty good raise--twenty
|
|
dollars apiece. Jim said we could take deck passage on a steamboat
|
|
now, and the money would last us as far as we wanted to go in the free
|
|
States. He said twenty mile more warn't far for the raft to go, but he
|
|
wished we was already there.
|
|
|
|
Towards daybreak we tied up, and Jim was mighty particular about hiding
|
|
the raft good. Then he worked all day fixing things in bundles, and
|
|
getting all ready to quit rafting.
|
|
|
|
That night about ten we hove in sight of the lights of a town away down
|
|
in a left-hand bend.
|
|
|
|
I went off in the canoe to ask about it. Pretty soon I found a man out
|
|
in the river with a skiff, setting a trot-line. I ranged up and says:
|
|
|
|
“Mister, is that town Cairo?”
|
|
|
|
“Cairo? no. You must be a blame' fool.”
|
|
|
|
“What town is it, mister?”
|
|
|
|
“If you want to know, go and find out. If you stay here botherin'
|
|
around me for about a half a minute longer you'll get something you
|
|
won't want.”
|
|
|
|
I paddled to the raft. Jim was awful disappointed, but I said never
|
|
mind, Cairo would be the next place, I reckoned.
|
|
|
|
We passed another town before daylight, and I was going out again; but
|
|
it was high ground, so I didn't go. No high ground about Cairo, Jim
|
|
said. I had forgot it. We laid up for the day on a towhead tolerable
|
|
close to the left-hand bank. I begun to suspicion something. So did
|
|
Jim. I says:
|
|
|
|
“Maybe we went by Cairo in the fog that night.”
|
|
|
|
He says:
|
|
|
|
“Doan' le's talk about it, Huck. Po' niggers can't have no luck. I
|
|
awluz 'spected dat rattlesnake-skin warn't done wid its work.”
|
|
|
|
“I wish I'd never seen that snake-skin, Jim--I do wish I'd never laid
|
|
eyes on it.”
|
|
|
|
“It ain't yo' fault, Huck; you didn' know. Don't you blame yo'self
|
|
'bout it.”
|
|
|
|
When it was daylight, here was the clear Ohio water inshore, sure
|
|
enough, and outside was the old regular Muddy! So it was all up with
|
|
Cairo.
|
|
|
|
We talked it all over. It wouldn't do to take to the shore; we couldn't
|
|
take the raft up the stream, of course. There warn't no way but to wait
|
|
for dark, and start back in the canoe and take the chances. So we slept
|
|
all day amongst the cottonwood thicket, so as to be fresh for the work,
|
|
and when we went back to the raft about dark the canoe was gone!
|
|
|
|
We didn't say a word for a good while. There warn't anything to
|
|
say. We both knowed well enough it was some more work of the
|
|
rattlesnake-skin; so what was the use to talk about it? It would only
|
|
look like we was finding fault, and that would be bound to fetch more
|
|
bad luck--and keep on fetching it, too, till we knowed enough to keep
|
|
still.
|
|
|
|
By and by we talked about what we better do, and found there warn't no
|
|
way but just to go along down with the raft till we got a chance to buy
|
|
a canoe to go back in. We warn't going to borrow it when there warn't
|
|
anybody around, the way pap would do, for that might set people after
|
|
us.
|
|
|
|
So we shoved out after dark on the raft.
|
|
|
|
Anybody that don't believe yet that it's foolishness to handle a
|
|
snake-skin, after all that that snake-skin done for us, will believe it
|
|
now if they read on and see what more it done for us.
|
|
|
|
The place to buy canoes is off of rafts laying up at shore. But we
|
|
didn't see no rafts laying up; so we went along during three hours and
|
|
more. Well, the night got gray and ruther thick, which is the next
|
|
meanest thing to fog. You can't tell the shape of the river, and you
|
|
can't see no distance. It got to be very late and still, and then along
|
|
comes a steamboat up the river. We lit the lantern, and judged she
|
|
would see it. Up-stream boats didn't generly come close to us; they
|
|
go out and follow the bars and hunt for easy water under the reefs; but
|
|
nights like this they bull right up the channel against the whole river.
|
|
|
|
We could hear her pounding along, but we didn't see her good till she
|
|
was close. She aimed right for us. Often they do that and try to see
|
|
how close they can come without touching; sometimes the wheel bites off
|
|
a sweep, and then the pilot sticks his head out and laughs, and thinks
|
|
he's mighty smart. Well, here she comes, and we said she was going to
|
|
try and shave us; but she didn't seem to be sheering off a bit. She
|
|
was a big one, and she was coming in a hurry, too, looking like a black
|
|
cloud with rows of glow-worms around it; but all of a sudden she bulged
|
|
out, big and scary, with a long row of wide-open furnace doors shining
|
|
like red-hot teeth, and her monstrous bows and guards hanging right
|
|
over us. There was a yell at us, and a jingling of bells to stop the
|
|
engines, a powwow of cussing, and whistling of steam--and as Jim went
|
|
overboard on one side and I on the other, she come smashing straight
|
|
through the raft.
|
|
|
|
I dived--and I aimed to find the bottom, too, for a thirty-foot wheel
|
|
had got to go over me, and I wanted it to have plenty of room. I could
|
|
always stay under water a minute; this time I reckon I stayed under a
|
|
minute and a half. Then I bounced for the top in a hurry, for I was
|
|
nearly busting. I popped out to my armpits and blowed the water out of
|
|
my nose, and puffed a bit. Of course there was a booming current; and
|
|
of course that boat started her engines again ten seconds after she
|
|
stopped them, for they never cared much for raftsmen; so now she was
|
|
churning along up the river, out of sight in the thick weather, though I
|
|
could hear her.
|
|
|
|
I sung out for Jim about a dozen times, but I didn't get any answer;
|
|
so I grabbed a plank that touched me while I was “treading water,” and
|
|
struck out for shore, shoving it ahead of me. But I made out to see
|
|
that the drift of the current was towards the left-hand shore, which
|
|
meant that I was in a crossing; so I changed off and went that way.
|
|
|
|
It was one of these long, slanting, two-mile crossings; so I was a good
|
|
long time in getting over. I made a safe landing, and clumb up the
|
|
bank. I couldn't see but a little ways, but I went poking along over
|
|
rough ground for a quarter of a mile or more, and then I run across a
|
|
big old-fashioned double log-house before I noticed it. I was going to
|
|
rush by and get away, but a lot of dogs jumped out and went to howling
|
|
and barking at me, and I knowed better than to move another peg.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVII.
|
|
|
|
IN about a minute somebody spoke out of a window without putting his
|
|
head out, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Be done, boys! Who's there?”
|
|
|
|
I says:
|
|
|
|
“It's me.”
|
|
|
|
“Who's me?”
|
|
|
|
“George Jackson, sir.”
|
|
|
|
“What do you want?”
|
|
|
|
“I don't want nothing, sir. I only want to go along by, but the dogs
|
|
won't let me.”
|
|
|
|
“What are you prowling around here this time of night for--hey?”
|
|
|
|
“I warn't prowling around, sir, I fell overboard off of the steamboat.”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, you did, did you? Strike a light there, somebody. What did you
|
|
say your name was?”
|
|
|
|
“George Jackson, sir. I'm only a boy.”
|
|
|
|
“Look here, if you're telling the truth you needn't be afraid--nobody'll
|
|
hurt you. But don't try to budge; stand right where you are. Rouse out
|
|
Bob and Tom, some of you, and fetch the guns. George Jackson, is there
|
|
anybody with you?”
|
|
|
|
“No, sir, nobody.”
|
|
|
|
I heard the people stirring around in the house now, and see a light.
|
|
The man sung out:
|
|
|
|
“Snatch that light away, Betsy, you old fool--ain't you got any sense?
|
|
Put it on the floor behind the front door. Bob, if you and Tom are
|
|
ready, take your places.”
|
|
|
|
“All ready.”
|
|
|
|
“Now, George Jackson, do you know the Shepherdsons?”
|
|
|
|
“No, sir; I never heard of them.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, that may be so, and it mayn't. Now, all ready. Step forward,
|
|
George Jackson. And mind, don't you hurry--come mighty slow. If there's
|
|
anybody with you, let him keep back--if he shows himself he'll be shot.
|
|
Come along now. Come slow; push the door open yourself--just enough to
|
|
squeeze in, d' you hear?”
|
|
|
|
I didn't hurry; I couldn't if I'd a wanted to. I took one slow step at
|
|
a time and there warn't a sound, only I thought I could hear my heart.
|
|
The dogs were as still as the humans, but they followed a little behind
|
|
me. When I got to the three log doorsteps I heard them unlocking and
|
|
unbarring and unbolting. I put my hand on the door and pushed it a
|
|
little and a little more till somebody said, “There, that's enough--put
|
|
your head in.” I done it, but I judged they would take it off.
|
|
|
|
The candle was on the floor, and there they all was, looking at me, and
|
|
me at them, for about a quarter of a minute: Three big men with guns
|
|
pointed at me, which made me wince, I tell you; the oldest, gray
|
|
and about sixty, the other two thirty or more--all of them fine and
|
|
handsome--and the sweetest old gray-headed lady, and back of her two
|
|
young women which I couldn't see right well. The old gentleman says:
|
|
|
|
“There; I reckon it's all right. Come in.”
|
|
|
|
As soon as I was in the old gentleman he locked the door and barred it
|
|
and bolted it, and told the young men to come in with their guns, and
|
|
they all went in a big parlor that had a new rag carpet on the floor,
|
|
and got together in a corner that was out of the range of the front
|
|
windows--there warn't none on the side. They held the candle, and took a
|
|
good look at me, and all said, “Why, _he_ ain't a Shepherdson--no, there
|
|
ain't any Shepherdson about him.” Then the old man said he hoped I
|
|
wouldn't mind being searched for arms, because he didn't mean no harm by
|
|
it--it was only to make sure. So he didn't pry into my pockets, but only
|
|
felt outside with his hands, and said it was all right. He told me to
|
|
make myself easy and at home, and tell all about myself; but the old
|
|
lady says:
|
|
|
|
“Why, bless you, Saul, the poor thing's as wet as he can be; and don't
|
|
you reckon it may be he's hungry?”
|
|
|
|
“True for you, Rachel--I forgot.”
|
|
|
|
So the old lady says:
|
|
|
|
“Betsy” (this was a nigger woman), “you fly around and get him something
|
|
to eat as quick as you can, poor thing; and one of you girls go and wake
|
|
up Buck and tell him--oh, here he is himself. Buck, take this little
|
|
stranger and get the wet clothes off from him and dress him up in some
|
|
of yours that's dry.”
|
|
|
|
Buck looked about as old as me--thirteen or fourteen or along there,
|
|
though he was a little bigger than me. He hadn't on anything but a
|
|
shirt, and he was very frowzy-headed. He came in gaping and digging one
|
|
fist into his eyes, and he was dragging a gun along with the other one.
|
|
He says:
|
|
|
|
“Ain't they no Shepherdsons around?”
|
|
|
|
They said, no, 'twas a false alarm.
|
|
|
|
“Well,” he says, “if they'd a ben some, I reckon I'd a got one.”
|
|
|
|
They all laughed, and Bob says:
|
|
|
|
“Why, Buck, they might have scalped us all, you've been so slow in
|
|
coming.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, nobody come after me, and it ain't right I'm always kept down; I
|
|
don't get no show.”
|
|
|
|
“Never mind, Buck, my boy,” says the old man, “you'll have show enough,
|
|
all in good time, don't you fret about that. Go 'long with you now, and
|
|
do as your mother told you.”
|
|
|
|
When we got up-stairs to his room he got me a coarse shirt and a
|
|
roundabout and pants of his, and I put them on. While I was at it he
|
|
asked me what my name was, but before I could tell him he started to
|
|
tell me about a bluejay and a young rabbit he had catched in the woods
|
|
day before yesterday, and he asked me where Moses was when the candle
|
|
went out. I said I didn't know; I hadn't heard about it before, no way.
|
|
|
|
“Well, guess,” he says.
|
|
|
|
“How'm I going to guess,” says I, “when I never heard tell of it
|
|
before?”
|
|
|
|
“But you can guess, can't you? It's just as easy.”
|
|
|
|
“_Which_ candle?” I says.
|
|
|
|
“Why, any candle,” he says.
|
|
|
|
“I don't know where he was,” says I; “where was he?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, he was in the _dark_! That's where he was!”
|
|
|
|
“Well, if you knowed where he was, what did you ask me for?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, blame it, it's a riddle, don't you see? Say, how long are you
|
|
going to stay here? You got to stay always. We can just have booming
|
|
times--they don't have no school now. Do you own a dog? I've got a
|
|
dog--and he'll go in the river and bring out chips that you throw in. Do
|
|
you like to comb up Sundays, and all that kind of foolishness? You bet
|
|
I don't, but ma she makes me. Confound these ole britches! I reckon
|
|
I'd better put 'em on, but I'd ruther not, it's so warm. Are you all
|
|
ready? All right. Come along, old hoss.”
|
|
|
|
Cold corn-pone, cold corn-beef, butter and buttermilk--that is what they
|
|
had for me down there, and there ain't nothing better that ever I've
|
|
come across yet. Buck and his ma and all of them smoked cob pipes,
|
|
except the nigger woman, which was gone, and the two young women. They
|
|
all smoked and talked, and I eat and talked. The young women had
|
|
quilts around them, and their hair down their backs. They all asked me
|
|
questions, and I told them how pap and me and all the family was living
|
|
on a little farm down at the bottom of Arkansaw, and my sister Mary Ann
|
|
run off and got married and never was heard of no more, and Bill went
|
|
to hunt them and he warn't heard of no more, and Tom and Mort died,
|
|
and then there warn't nobody but just me and pap left, and he was just
|
|
trimmed down to nothing, on account of his troubles; so when he died
|
|
I took what there was left, because the farm didn't belong to us, and
|
|
started up the river, deck passage, and fell overboard; and that was how
|
|
I come to be here. So they said I could have a home there as long as I
|
|
wanted it. Then it was most daylight and everybody went to bed, and I
|
|
went to bed with Buck, and when I waked up in the morning, drat it all,
|
|
I had forgot what my name was. So I laid there about an hour trying to
|
|
think, and when Buck waked up I says:
|
|
|
|
“Can you spell, Buck?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes,” he says.
|
|
|
|
“I bet you can't spell my name,” says I.
|
|
|
|
“I bet you what you dare I can,” says he.
|
|
|
|
“All right,” says I, “go ahead.”
|
|
|
|
“G-e-o-r-g-e J-a-x-o-n--there now,” he says.
|
|
|
|
“Well,” says I, “you done it, but I didn't think you could. It ain't no
|
|
slouch of a name to spell--right off without studying.”
|
|
|
|
I set it down, private, because somebody might want _me_ to spell it
|
|
next, and so I wanted to be handy with it and rattle it off like I was
|
|
used to it.
|
|
|
|
It was a mighty nice family, and a mighty nice house, too. I hadn't
|
|
seen no house out in the country before that was so nice and had so much
|
|
style. It didn't have an iron latch on the front door, nor a wooden one
|
|
with a buckskin string, but a brass knob to turn, the same as houses in
|
|
town. There warn't no bed in the parlor, nor a sign of a bed; but heaps
|
|
of parlors in towns has beds in them. There was a big fireplace that
|
|
was bricked on the bottom, and the bricks was kept clean and red by
|
|
pouring water on them and scrubbing them with another brick; sometimes
|
|
they wash them over with red water-paint that they call Spanish-brown,
|
|
same as they do in town. They had big brass dog-irons that could hold
|
|
up a saw-log. There was a clock on the middle of the mantelpiece, with
|
|
a picture of a town painted on the bottom half of the glass front, and
|
|
a round place in the middle of it for the sun, and you could see the
|
|
pendulum swinging behind it. It was beautiful to hear that clock tick;
|
|
and sometimes when one of these peddlers had been along and scoured her
|
|
up and got her in good shape, she would start in and strike a hundred
|
|
and fifty before she got tuckered out. They wouldn't took any money for
|
|
her.
|
|
|
|
Well, there was a big outlandish parrot on each side of the clock,
|
|
made out of something like chalk, and painted up gaudy. By one of the
|
|
parrots was a cat made of crockery, and a crockery dog by the other;
|
|
and when you pressed down on them they squeaked, but didn't open
|
|
their mouths nor look different nor interested. They squeaked through
|
|
underneath. There was a couple of big wild-turkey-wing fans spread out
|
|
behind those things. On the table in the middle of the room was a kind
|
|
of a lovely crockery basket that had apples and oranges and peaches and
|
|
grapes piled up in it, which was much redder and yellower and prettier
|
|
than real ones is, but they warn't real because you could see where
|
|
pieces had got chipped off and showed the white chalk, or whatever it
|
|
was, underneath.
|
|
|
|
This table had a cover made out of beautiful oilcloth, with a red and
|
|
blue spread-eagle painted on it, and a painted border all around. It
|
|
come all the way from Philadelphia, they said. There was some books,
|
|
too, piled up perfectly exact, on each corner of the table. One was a
|
|
big family Bible full of pictures. One was Pilgrim's Progress, about a
|
|
man that left his family, it didn't say why. I read considerable in it
|
|
now and then. The statements was interesting, but tough. Another was
|
|
Friendship's Offering, full of beautiful stuff and poetry; but I didn't
|
|
read the poetry. Another was Henry Clay's Speeches, and another was Dr.
|
|
Gunn's Family Medicine, which told you all about what to do if a body
|
|
was sick or dead. There was a hymn book, and a lot of other books. And
|
|
there was nice split-bottom chairs, and perfectly sound, too--not bagged
|
|
down in the middle and busted, like an old basket.
|
|
|
|
They had pictures hung on the walls--mainly Washingtons and Lafayettes,
|
|
and battles, and Highland Marys, and one called “Signing the
|
|
Declaration.” There was some that they called crayons, which one of the
|
|
daughters which was dead made her own self when she was only
|
|
fifteen years old. They was different from any pictures I ever see
|
|
before--blacker, mostly, than is common. One was a woman in a slim black
|
|
dress, belted small under the armpits, with bulges like a cabbage in
|
|
the middle of the sleeves, and a large black scoop-shovel bonnet with
|
|
a black veil, and white slim ankles crossed about with black tape, and
|
|
very wee black slippers, like a chisel, and she was leaning pensive on a
|
|
tombstone on her right elbow, under a weeping willow, and her other hand
|
|
hanging down her side holding a white handkerchief and a reticule,
|
|
and underneath the picture it said “Shall I Never See Thee More Alas.”
|
|
Another one was a young lady with her hair all combed up straight
|
|
to the top of her head, and knotted there in front of a comb like a
|
|
chair-back, and she was crying into a handkerchief and had a dead bird
|
|
laying on its back in her other hand with its heels up, and underneath
|
|
the picture it said “I Shall Never Hear Thy Sweet Chirrup More Alas.”
|
|
There was one where a young lady was at a window looking up at the
|
|
moon, and tears running down her cheeks; and she had an open letter in
|
|
one hand with black sealing wax showing on one edge of it, and she was
|
|
mashing a locket with a chain to it against her mouth, and underneath
|
|
the picture it said “And Art Thou Gone Yes Thou Art Gone Alas.” These
|
|
was all nice pictures, I reckon, but I didn't somehow seem to take
|
|
to them, because if ever I was down a little they always give me the
|
|
fan-tods. Everybody was sorry she died, because she had laid out a lot
|
|
more of these pictures to do, and a body could see by what she had done
|
|
what they had lost. But I reckoned that with her disposition she was
|
|
having a better time in the graveyard. She was at work on what they
|
|
said was her greatest picture when she took sick, and every day and
|
|
every night it was her prayer to be allowed to live till she got it
|
|
done, but she never got the chance. It was a picture of a young woman
|
|
in a long white gown, standing on the rail of a bridge all ready to jump
|
|
off, with her hair all down her back, and looking up to the moon, with
|
|
the tears running down her face, and she had two arms folded across her
|
|
breast, and two arms stretched out in front, and two more reaching up
|
|
towards the moon--and the idea was to see which pair would look best,
|
|
and then scratch out all the other arms; but, as I was saying, she died
|
|
before she got her mind made up, and now they kept this picture over the
|
|
head of the bed in her room, and every time her birthday come they hung
|
|
flowers on it. Other times it was hid with a little curtain. The young
|
|
woman in the picture had a kind of a nice sweet face, but there was so
|
|
many arms it made her look too spidery, seemed to me.
|
|
|
|
This young girl kept a scrap-book when she was alive, and used to paste
|
|
obituaries and accidents and cases of patient suffering in it out of the
|
|
Presbyterian Observer, and write poetry after them out of her own head.
|
|
It was very good poetry. This is what she wrote about a boy by the name
|
|
of Stephen Dowling Bots that fell down a well and was drownded:
|
|
|
|
ODE TO STEPHEN DOWLING BOTS, DEC'D
|
|
|
|
And did young Stephen sicken, And did young Stephen die? And did the
|
|
sad hearts thicken, And did the mourners cry?
|
|
|
|
No; such was not the fate of Young Stephen Dowling Bots; Though sad
|
|
hearts round him thickened, 'Twas not from sickness' shots.
|
|
|
|
No whooping-cough did rack his frame, Nor measles drear with spots;
|
|
Not these impaired the sacred name Of Stephen Dowling Bots.
|
|
|
|
Despised love struck not with woe That head of curly knots, Nor
|
|
stomach troubles laid him low, Young Stephen Dowling Bots.
|
|
|
|
O no. Then list with tearful eye, Whilst I his fate do tell. His soul
|
|
did from this cold world fly By falling down a well.
|
|
|
|
They got him out and emptied him; Alas it was too late; His spirit
|
|
was gone for to sport aloft In the realms of the good and great.
|
|
|
|
If Emmeline Grangerford could make poetry like that before she was
|
|
fourteen, there ain't no telling what she could a done by and by. Buck
|
|
said she could rattle off poetry like nothing. She didn't ever have to
|
|
stop to think. He said she would slap down a line, and if she couldn't
|
|
find anything to rhyme with it would just scratch it out and slap down
|
|
another one, and go ahead. She warn't particular; she could write about
|
|
anything you choose to give her to write about just so it was sadful.
|
|
Every time a man died, or a woman died, or a child died, she would be on
|
|
hand with her “tribute” before he was cold. She called them tributes.
|
|
The neighbors said it was the doctor first, then Emmeline, then the
|
|
undertaker--the undertaker never got in ahead of Emmeline but once, and
|
|
then she hung fire on a rhyme for the dead person's name, which was
|
|
Whistler. She warn't ever the same after that; she never complained,
|
|
but she kinder pined away and did not live long. Poor thing, many's the
|
|
time I made myself go up to the little room that used to be hers and get
|
|
out her poor old scrap-book and read in it when her pictures had been
|
|
aggravating me and I had soured on her a little. I liked all that
|
|
family, dead ones and all, and warn't going to let anything come between
|
|
us. Poor Emmeline made poetry about all the dead people when she was
|
|
alive, and it didn't seem right that there warn't nobody to make some
|
|
about her now she was gone; so I tried to sweat out a verse or two
|
|
myself, but I couldn't seem to make it go somehow. They kept Emmeline's
|
|
room trim and nice, and all the things fixed in it just the way she
|
|
liked to have them when she was alive, and nobody ever slept there.
|
|
The old lady took care of the room herself, though there was plenty
|
|
of niggers, and she sewed there a good deal and read her Bible there
|
|
mostly.
|
|
|
|
Well, as I was saying about the parlor, there was beautiful curtains on
|
|
the windows: white, with pictures painted on them of castles with vines
|
|
all down the walls, and cattle coming down to drink. There was a little
|
|
old piano, too, that had tin pans in it, I reckon, and nothing was ever
|
|
so lovely as to hear the young ladies sing “The Last Link is Broken”
|
|
and play “The Battle of Prague” on it. The walls of all the rooms was
|
|
plastered, and most had carpets on the floors, and the whole house was
|
|
whitewashed on the outside.
|
|
|
|
It was a double house, and the big open place betwixt them was roofed
|
|
and floored, and sometimes the table was set there in the middle of the
|
|
day, and it was a cool, comfortable place. Nothing couldn't be better.
|
|
And warn't the cooking good, and just bushels of it too!
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XVIII.
|
|
|
|
COL. Grangerford was a gentleman, you see. He was a gentleman all
|
|
over; and so was his family. He was well born, as the saying is, and
|
|
that's worth as much in a man as it is in a horse, so the Widow Douglas
|
|
said, and nobody ever denied that she was of the first aristocracy
|
|
in our town; and pap he always said it, too, though he warn't no more
|
|
quality than a mudcat himself. Col. Grangerford was very tall and
|
|
very slim, and had a darkish-paly complexion, not a sign of red in it
|
|
anywheres; he was clean shaved every morning all over his thin face, and
|
|
he had the thinnest kind of lips, and the thinnest kind of nostrils, and
|
|
a high nose, and heavy eyebrows, and the blackest kind of eyes, sunk so
|
|
deep back that they seemed like they was looking out of caverns at
|
|
you, as you may say. His forehead was high, and his hair was black and
|
|
straight and hung to his shoulders. His hands was long and thin, and
|
|
every day of his life he put on a clean shirt and a full suit from head
|
|
to foot made out of linen so white it hurt your eyes to look at it;
|
|
and on Sundays he wore a blue tail-coat with brass buttons on it. He
|
|
carried a mahogany cane with a silver head to it. There warn't no
|
|
frivolishness about him, not a bit, and he warn't ever loud. He was
|
|
as kind as he could be--you could feel that, you know, and so you had
|
|
confidence. Sometimes he smiled, and it was good to see; but when he
|
|
straightened himself up like a liberty-pole, and the lightning begun to
|
|
flicker out from under his eyebrows, you wanted to climb a tree first,
|
|
and find out what the matter was afterwards. He didn't ever have to
|
|
tell anybody to mind their manners--everybody was always good-mannered
|
|
where he was. Everybody loved to have him around, too; he was sunshine
|
|
most always--I mean he made it seem like good weather. When he turned
|
|
into a cloudbank it was awful dark for half a minute, and that was
|
|
enough; there wouldn't nothing go wrong again for a week.
|
|
|
|
When him and the old lady come down in the morning all the family got
|
|
up out of their chairs and give them good-day, and didn't set down again
|
|
till they had set down. Then Tom and Bob went to the sideboard where
|
|
the decanter was, and mixed a glass of bitters and handed it to him, and
|
|
he held it in his hand and waited till Tom's and Bob's was mixed, and
|
|
then they bowed and said, “Our duty to you, sir, and madam;” and _they_
|
|
bowed the least bit in the world and said thank you, and so they drank,
|
|
all three, and Bob and Tom poured a spoonful of water on the sugar and
|
|
the mite of whisky or apple brandy in the bottom of their tumblers, and
|
|
give it to me and Buck, and we drank to the old people too.
|
|
|
|
Bob was the oldest and Tom next--tall, beautiful men with very broad
|
|
shoulders and brown faces, and long black hair and black eyes. They
|
|
dressed in white linen from head to foot, like the old gentleman, and
|
|
wore broad Panama hats.
|
|
|
|
Then there was Miss Charlotte; she was twenty-five, and tall and proud
|
|
and grand, but as good as she could be when she warn't stirred up; but
|
|
when she was she had a look that would make you wilt in your tracks,
|
|
like her father. She was beautiful.
|
|
|
|
So was her sister, Miss Sophia, but it was a different kind. She was
|
|
gentle and sweet like a dove, and she was only twenty.
|
|
|
|
Each person had their own nigger to wait on them--Buck too. My nigger
|
|
had a monstrous easy time, because I warn't used to having anybody do
|
|
anything for me, but Buck's was on the jump most of the time.
|
|
|
|
This was all there was of the family now, but there used to be
|
|
more--three sons; they got killed; and Emmeline that died.
|
|
|
|
The old gentleman owned a lot of farms and over a hundred niggers.
|
|
Sometimes a stack of people would come there, horseback, from ten or
|
|
fifteen mile around, and stay five or six days, and have such junketings
|
|
round about and on the river, and dances and picnics in the woods
|
|
daytimes, and balls at the house nights. These people was mostly
|
|
kinfolks of the family. The men brought their guns with them. It was a
|
|
handsome lot of quality, I tell you.
|
|
|
|
There was another clan of aristocracy around there--five or six
|
|
families--mostly of the name of Shepherdson. They was as high-toned
|
|
and well born and rich and grand as the tribe of Grangerfords. The
|
|
Shepherdsons and Grangerfords used the same steamboat landing, which was
|
|
about two mile above our house; so sometimes when I went up there with a
|
|
lot of our folks I used to see a lot of the Shepherdsons there on their
|
|
fine horses.
|
|
|
|
One day Buck and me was away out in the woods hunting, and heard a horse
|
|
coming. We was crossing the road. Buck says:
|
|
|
|
“Quick! Jump for the woods!”
|
|
|
|
We done it, and then peeped down the woods through the leaves. Pretty
|
|
soon a splendid young man come galloping down the road, setting his
|
|
horse easy and looking like a soldier. He had his gun across his
|
|
pommel. I had seen him before. It was young Harney Shepherdson. I
|
|
heard Buck's gun go off at my ear, and Harney's hat tumbled off from his
|
|
head. He grabbed his gun and rode straight to the place where we was
|
|
hid. But we didn't wait. We started through the woods on a run. The
|
|
woods warn't thick, so I looked over my shoulder to dodge the bullet,
|
|
and twice I seen Harney cover Buck with his gun; and then he rode away
|
|
the way he come--to get his hat, I reckon, but I couldn't see. We never
|
|
stopped running till we got home. The old gentleman's eyes blazed a
|
|
minute--'twas pleasure, mainly, I judged--then his face sort of smoothed
|
|
down, and he says, kind of gentle:
|
|
|
|
“I don't like that shooting from behind a bush. Why didn't you step
|
|
into the road, my boy?”
|
|
|
|
“The Shepherdsons don't, father. They always take advantage.”
|
|
|
|
Miss Charlotte she held her head up like a queen while Buck was telling
|
|
his tale, and her nostrils spread and her eyes snapped. The two young
|
|
men looked dark, but never said nothing. Miss Sophia she turned pale,
|
|
but the color come back when she found the man warn't hurt.
|
|
|
|
Soon as I could get Buck down by the corn-cribs under the trees by
|
|
ourselves, I says:
|
|
|
|
“Did you want to kill him, Buck?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, I bet I did.”
|
|
|
|
“What did he do to you?”
|
|
|
|
“Him? He never done nothing to me.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, then, what did you want to kill him for?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, nothing--only it's on account of the feud.”
|
|
|
|
“What's a feud?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, where was you raised? Don't you know what a feud is?”
|
|
|
|
“Never heard of it before--tell me about it.”
|
|
|
|
“Well,” says Buck, “a feud is this way: A man has a quarrel with
|
|
another man, and kills him; then that other man's brother kills _him_;
|
|
then the other brothers, on both sides, goes for one another; then the
|
|
_cousins_ chip in--and by and by everybody's killed off, and there ain't
|
|
no more feud. But it's kind of slow, and takes a long time.”
|
|
|
|
“Has this one been going on long, Buck?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, I should _reckon_! It started thirty year ago, or som'ers along
|
|
there. There was trouble 'bout something, and then a lawsuit to settle
|
|
it; and the suit went agin one of the men, and so he up and shot the
|
|
man that won the suit--which he would naturally do, of course. Anybody
|
|
would.”
|
|
|
|
“What was the trouble about, Buck?--land?”
|
|
|
|
“I reckon maybe--I don't know.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, who done the shooting? Was it a Grangerford or a Shepherdson?”
|
|
|
|
“Laws, how do I know? It was so long ago.”
|
|
|
|
“Don't anybody know?”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, yes, pa knows, I reckon, and some of the other old people; but they
|
|
don't know now what the row was about in the first place.”
|
|
|
|
“Has there been many killed, Buck?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes; right smart chance of funerals. But they don't always kill. Pa's
|
|
got a few buckshot in him; but he don't mind it 'cuz he don't weigh
|
|
much, anyway. Bob's been carved up some with a bowie, and Tom's been
|
|
hurt once or twice.”
|
|
|
|
“Has anybody been killed this year, Buck?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes; we got one and they got one. 'Bout three months ago my cousin
|
|
Bud, fourteen year old, was riding through the woods on t'other side
|
|
of the river, and didn't have no weapon with him, which was blame'
|
|
foolishness, and in a lonesome place he hears a horse a-coming behind
|
|
him, and sees old Baldy Shepherdson a-linkin' after him with his gun in
|
|
his hand and his white hair a-flying in the wind; and 'stead of jumping
|
|
off and taking to the brush, Bud 'lowed he could out-run him; so they
|
|
had it, nip and tuck, for five mile or more, the old man a-gaining all
|
|
the time; so at last Bud seen it warn't any use, so he stopped and faced
|
|
around so as to have the bullet holes in front, you know, and the old
|
|
man he rode up and shot him down. But he didn't git much chance to
|
|
enjoy his luck, for inside of a week our folks laid _him_ out.”
|
|
|
|
“I reckon that old man was a coward, Buck.”
|
|
|
|
“I reckon he _warn't_ a coward. Not by a blame' sight. There ain't a
|
|
coward amongst them Shepherdsons--not a one. And there ain't no cowards
|
|
amongst the Grangerfords either. Why, that old man kep' up his end in a
|
|
fight one day for half an hour against three Grangerfords, and come
|
|
out winner. They was all a-horseback; he lit off of his horse and got
|
|
behind a little woodpile, and kep' his horse before him to stop the
|
|
bullets; but the Grangerfords stayed on their horses and capered around
|
|
the old man, and peppered away at him, and he peppered away at them.
|
|
Him and his horse both went home pretty leaky and crippled, but the
|
|
Grangerfords had to be _fetched_ home--and one of 'em was dead, and
|
|
another died the next day. No, sir; if a body's out hunting for cowards
|
|
he don't want to fool away any time amongst them Shepherdsons, becuz
|
|
they don't breed any of that _kind_.”
|
|
|
|
Next Sunday we all went to church, about three mile, everybody
|
|
a-horseback. The men took their guns along, so did Buck, and kept
|
|
them between their knees or stood them handy against the wall. The
|
|
Shepherdsons done the same. It was pretty ornery preaching--all about
|
|
brotherly love, and such-like tiresomeness; but everybody said it was
|
|
a good sermon, and they all talked it over going home, and had such
|
|
a powerful lot to say about faith and good works and free grace and
|
|
preforeordestination, and I don't know what all, that it did seem to me
|
|
to be one of the roughest Sundays I had run across yet.
|
|
|
|
About an hour after dinner everybody was dozing around, some in their
|
|
chairs and some in their rooms, and it got to be pretty dull. Buck and
|
|
a dog was stretched out on the grass in the sun sound asleep. I went up
|
|
to our room, and judged I would take a nap myself. I found that sweet
|
|
Miss Sophia standing in her door, which was next to ours, and she took
|
|
me in her room and shut the door very soft, and asked me if I liked her,
|
|
and I said I did; and she asked me if I would do something for her and
|
|
not tell anybody, and I said I would. Then she said she'd forgot her
|
|
Testament, and left it in the seat at church between two other books,
|
|
and would I slip out quiet and go there and fetch it to her, and not say
|
|
nothing to nobody. I said I would. So I slid out and slipped off up the
|
|
road, and there warn't anybody at the church, except maybe a hog or two,
|
|
for there warn't any lock on the door, and hogs likes a puncheon floor
|
|
in summer-time because it's cool. If you notice, most folks don't go to
|
|
church only when they've got to; but a hog is different.
|
|
|
|
Says I to myself, something's up; it ain't natural for a girl to be in
|
|
such a sweat about a Testament. So I give it a shake, and out drops a
|
|
little piece of paper with “HALF-PAST TWO” wrote on it with a pencil. I
|
|
ransacked it, but couldn't find anything else. I couldn't make anything
|
|
out of that, so I put the paper in the book again, and when I got home
|
|
and upstairs there was Miss Sophia in her door waiting for me. She
|
|
pulled me in and shut the door; then she looked in the Testament till
|
|
she found the paper, and as soon as she read it she looked glad; and
|
|
before a body could think she grabbed me and give me a squeeze, and
|
|
said I was the best boy in the world, and not to tell anybody. She was
|
|
mighty red in the face for a minute, and her eyes lighted up, and it
|
|
made her powerful pretty. I was a good deal astonished, but when I got
|
|
my breath I asked her what the paper was about, and she asked me if I
|
|
had read it, and I said no, and she asked me if I could read writing,
|
|
and I told her “no, only coarse-hand,” and then she said the paper
|
|
warn't anything but a book-mark to keep her place, and I might go and
|
|
play now.
|
|
|
|
I went off down to the river, studying over this thing, and pretty soon
|
|
I noticed that my nigger was following along behind. When we was out
|
|
of sight of the house he looked back and around a second, and then comes
|
|
a-running, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Mars Jawge, if you'll come down into de swamp I'll show you a whole
|
|
stack o' water-moccasins.”
|
|
|
|
Thinks I, that's mighty curious; he said that yesterday. He oughter
|
|
know a body don't love water-moccasins enough to go around hunting for
|
|
them. What is he up to, anyway? So I says:
|
|
|
|
“All right; trot ahead.”
|
|
|
|
I followed a half a mile; then he struck out over the swamp, and waded
|
|
ankle deep as much as another half-mile. We come to a little flat piece
|
|
of land which was dry and very thick with trees and bushes and vines,
|
|
and he says:
|
|
|
|
“You shove right in dah jist a few steps, Mars Jawge; dah's whah dey is.
|
|
I's seed 'm befo'; I don't k'yer to see 'em no mo'.”
|
|
|
|
Then he slopped right along and went away, and pretty soon the trees hid
|
|
him. I poked into the place a-ways and come to a little open patch
|
|
as big as a bedroom all hung around with vines, and found a man laying
|
|
there asleep--and, by jings, it was my old Jim!
|
|
|
|
I waked him up, and I reckoned it was going to be a grand surprise to
|
|
him to see me again, but it warn't. He nearly cried he was so glad, but
|
|
he warn't surprised. Said he swum along behind me that night, and heard
|
|
me yell every time, but dasn't answer, because he didn't want nobody to
|
|
pick _him_ up and take him into slavery again. Says he:
|
|
|
|
“I got hurt a little, en couldn't swim fas', so I wuz a considable ways
|
|
behine you towards de las'; when you landed I reck'ned I could ketch
|
|
up wid you on de lan' 'dout havin' to shout at you, but when I see dat
|
|
house I begin to go slow. I 'uz off too fur to hear what dey say to
|
|
you--I wuz 'fraid o' de dogs; but when it 'uz all quiet agin I knowed
|
|
you's in de house, so I struck out for de woods to wait for day. Early
|
|
in de mawnin' some er de niggers come along, gwyne to de fields, en dey
|
|
tuk me en showed me dis place, whah de dogs can't track me on accounts
|
|
o' de water, en dey brings me truck to eat every night, en tells me how
|
|
you's a-gitt'n along.”
|
|
|
|
“Why didn't you tell my Jack to fetch me here sooner, Jim?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, 'twarn't no use to 'sturb you, Huck, tell we could do sumfn--but
|
|
we's all right now. I ben a-buyin' pots en pans en vittles, as I got a
|
|
chanst, en a-patchin' up de raf' nights when--”
|
|
|
|
“_What_ raft, Jim?”
|
|
|
|
“Our ole raf'.”
|
|
|
|
“You mean to say our old raft warn't smashed all to flinders?”
|
|
|
|
“No, she warn't. She was tore up a good deal--one en' of her was; but
|
|
dey warn't no great harm done, on'y our traps was mos' all los'. Ef we
|
|
hadn' dive' so deep en swum so fur under water, en de night hadn' ben
|
|
so dark, en we warn't so sk'yerd, en ben sich punkin-heads, as de sayin'
|
|
is, we'd a seed de raf'. But it's jis' as well we didn't, 'kase now
|
|
she's all fixed up agin mos' as good as new, en we's got a new lot o'
|
|
stuff, in de place o' what 'uz los'.”
|
|
|
|
“Why, how did you get hold of the raft again, Jim--did you catch her?”
|
|
|
|
“How I gwyne to ketch her en I out in de woods? No; some er de niggers
|
|
foun' her ketched on a snag along heah in de ben', en dey hid her in a
|
|
crick 'mongst de willows, en dey wuz so much jawin' 'bout which un 'um
|
|
she b'long to de mos' dat I come to heah 'bout it pooty soon, so I ups
|
|
en settles de trouble by tellin' 'um she don't b'long to none uv um, but
|
|
to you en me; en I ast 'm if dey gwyne to grab a young white genlman's
|
|
propaty, en git a hid'n for it? Den I gin 'm ten cents apiece, en dey
|
|
'uz mighty well satisfied, en wisht some mo' raf's 'ud come along en
|
|
make 'm rich agin. Dey's mighty good to me, dese niggers is, en whatever
|
|
I wants 'm to do fur me I doan' have to ast 'm twice, honey. Dat Jack's
|
|
a good nigger, en pooty smart.”
|
|
|
|
“Yes, he is. He ain't ever told me you was here; told me to come, and
|
|
he'd show me a lot of water-moccasins. If anything happens _he_ ain't
|
|
mixed up in it. He can say he never seen us together, and it 'll be the
|
|
truth.”
|
|
|
|
I don't want to talk much about the next day. I reckon I'll cut it
|
|
pretty short. I waked up about dawn, and was a-going to turn over and
|
|
go to sleep again when I noticed how still it was--didn't seem to be
|
|
anybody stirring. That warn't usual. Next I noticed that Buck was
|
|
up and gone. Well, I gets up, a-wondering, and goes down stairs--nobody
|
|
around; everything as still as a mouse. Just the same outside. Thinks
|
|
I, what does it mean? Down by the wood-pile I comes across my Jack, and
|
|
says:
|
|
|
|
“What's it all about?”
|
|
|
|
Says he:
|
|
|
|
“Don't you know, Mars Jawge?”
|
|
|
|
“No,” says I, “I don't.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, den, Miss Sophia's run off! 'deed she has. She run off in de
|
|
night some time--nobody don't know jis' when; run off to get married
|
|
to dat young Harney Shepherdson, you know--leastways, so dey 'spec. De
|
|
fambly foun' it out 'bout half an hour ago--maybe a little mo'--en' I
|
|
_tell_ you dey warn't no time los'. Sich another hurryin' up guns
|
|
en hosses _you_ never see! De women folks has gone for to stir up de
|
|
relations, en ole Mars Saul en de boys tuck dey guns en rode up de
|
|
river road for to try to ketch dat young man en kill him 'fo' he kin
|
|
git acrost de river wid Miss Sophia. I reck'n dey's gwyne to be mighty
|
|
rough times.”
|
|
|
|
“Buck went off 'thout waking me up.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, I reck'n he _did_! Dey warn't gwyne to mix you up in it.
|
|
Mars Buck he loaded up his gun en 'lowed he's gwyne to fetch home a
|
|
Shepherdson or bust. Well, dey'll be plenty un 'm dah, I reck'n, en you
|
|
bet you he'll fetch one ef he gits a chanst.”
|
|
|
|
I took up the river road as hard as I could put. By and by I begin to
|
|
hear guns a good ways off. When I come in sight of the log store and
|
|
the woodpile where the steamboats lands I worked along under the trees
|
|
and brush till I got to a good place, and then I clumb up into the
|
|
forks of a cottonwood that was out of reach, and watched. There was a
|
|
wood-rank four foot high a little ways in front of the tree, and first I
|
|
was going to hide behind that; but maybe it was luckier I didn't.
|
|
|
|
There was four or five men cavorting around on their horses in the open
|
|
place before the log store, cussing and yelling, and trying to get at
|
|
a couple of young chaps that was behind the wood-rank alongside of the
|
|
steamboat landing; but they couldn't come it. Every time one of them
|
|
showed himself on the river side of the woodpile he got shot at. The
|
|
two boys was squatting back to back behind the pile, so they could watch
|
|
both ways.
|
|
|
|
By and by the men stopped cavorting around and yelling. They started
|
|
riding towards the store; then up gets one of the boys, draws a steady
|
|
bead over the wood-rank, and drops one of them out of his saddle. All
|
|
the men jumped off of their horses and grabbed the hurt one and started
|
|
to carry him to the store; and that minute the two boys started on the
|
|
run. They got half way to the tree I was in before the men noticed.
|
|
Then the men see them, and jumped on their horses and took out after
|
|
them. They gained on the boys, but it didn't do no good, the boys had
|
|
too good a start; they got to the woodpile that was in front of my tree,
|
|
and slipped in behind it, and so they had the bulge on the men again.
|
|
One of the boys was Buck, and the other was a slim young chap about
|
|
nineteen years old.
|
|
|
|
The men ripped around awhile, and then rode away. As soon as they was
|
|
out of sight I sung out to Buck and told him. He didn't know what
|
|
to make of my voice coming out of the tree at first. He was awful
|
|
surprised. He told me to watch out sharp and let him know when the
|
|
men come in sight again; said they was up to some devilment or
|
|
other--wouldn't be gone long. I wished I was out of that tree, but I
|
|
dasn't come down. Buck begun to cry and rip, and 'lowed that him and
|
|
his cousin Joe (that was the other young chap) would make up for this
|
|
day yet. He said his father and his two brothers was killed, and two
|
|
or three of the enemy. Said the Shepherdsons laid for them in
|
|
ambush. Buck said his father and brothers ought to waited for their
|
|
relations--the Shepherdsons was too strong for them. I asked him what
|
|
was become of young Harney and Miss Sophia. He said they'd got across
|
|
the river and was safe. I was glad of that; but the way Buck did take
|
|
on because he didn't manage to kill Harney that day he shot at him--I
|
|
hain't ever heard anything like it.
|
|
|
|
All of a sudden, bang! bang! bang! goes three or four guns--the men had
|
|
slipped around through the woods and come in from behind without their
|
|
horses! The boys jumped for the river--both of them hurt--and as they
|
|
swum down the current the men run along the bank shooting at them and
|
|
singing out, “Kill them, kill them!” It made me so sick I most fell out
|
|
of the tree. I ain't a-going to tell _all_ that happened--it would make
|
|
me sick again if I was to do that. I wished I hadn't ever come ashore
|
|
that night to see such things. I ain't ever going to get shut of
|
|
them--lots of times I dream about them.
|
|
|
|
I stayed in the tree till it begun to get dark, afraid to come down.
|
|
Sometimes I heard guns away off in the woods; and twice I seen little
|
|
gangs of men gallop past the log store with guns; so I reckoned the
|
|
trouble was still a-going on. I was mighty downhearted; so I made up my
|
|
mind I wouldn't ever go anear that house again, because I reckoned I
|
|
was to blame, somehow. I judged that that piece of paper meant that Miss
|
|
Sophia was to meet Harney somewheres at half-past two and run off; and
|
|
I judged I ought to told her father about that paper and the curious way
|
|
she acted, and then maybe he would a locked her up, and this awful mess
|
|
wouldn't ever happened.
|
|
|
|
When I got down out of the tree I crept along down the river bank a
|
|
piece, and found the two bodies laying in the edge of the water, and
|
|
tugged at them till I got them ashore; then I covered up their faces,
|
|
and got away as quick as I could. I cried a little when I was covering
|
|
up Buck's face, for he was mighty good to me.
|
|
|
|
It was just dark now. I never went near the house, but struck through
|
|
the woods and made for the swamp. Jim warn't on his island, so I
|
|
tramped off in a hurry for the crick, and crowded through the willows,
|
|
red-hot to jump aboard and get out of that awful country. The raft was
|
|
gone! My souls, but I was scared! I couldn't get my breath for most
|
|
a minute. Then I raised a yell. A voice not twenty-five foot from me
|
|
says:
|
|
|
|
“Good lan'! is dat you, honey? Doan' make no noise.”
|
|
|
|
It was Jim's voice--nothing ever sounded so good before. I run along the
|
|
bank a piece and got aboard, and Jim he grabbed me and hugged me, he was
|
|
so glad to see me. He says:
|
|
|
|
“Laws bless you, chile, I 'uz right down sho' you's dead agin. Jack's
|
|
been heah; he say he reck'n you's ben shot, kase you didn' come home no
|
|
mo'; so I's jes' dis minute a startin' de raf' down towards de mouf er
|
|
de crick, so's to be all ready for to shove out en leave soon as Jack
|
|
comes agin en tells me for certain you _is_ dead. Lawsy, I's mighty
|
|
glad to git you back again, honey.”
|
|
|
|
I says:
|
|
|
|
“All right--that's mighty good; they won't find me, and they'll think
|
|
I've been killed, and floated down the river--there's something up there
|
|
that 'll help them think so--so don't you lose no time, Jim, but just
|
|
shove off for the big water as fast as ever you can.”
|
|
|
|
I never felt easy till the raft was two mile below there and out in
|
|
the middle of the Mississippi. Then we hung up our signal lantern, and
|
|
judged that we was free and safe once more. I hadn't had a bite to eat
|
|
since yesterday, so Jim he got out some corn-dodgers and buttermilk,
|
|
and pork and cabbage and greens--there ain't nothing in the world so good
|
|
when it's cooked right--and whilst I eat my supper we talked and had a
|
|
good time. I was powerful glad to get away from the feuds, and so was
|
|
Jim to get away from the swamp. We said there warn't no home like a
|
|
raft, after all. Other places do seem so cramped up and smothery, but a
|
|
raft don't. You feel mighty free and easy and comfortable on a raft.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XIX.
|
|
|
|
TWO or three days and nights went by; I reckon I might say they swum by,
|
|
they slid along so quiet and smooth and lovely. Here is the way we put
|
|
in the time. It was a monstrous big river down there--sometimes a mile
|
|
and a half wide; we run nights, and laid up and hid daytimes; soon as
|
|
night was most gone we stopped navigating and tied up--nearly always
|
|
in the dead water under a towhead; and then cut young cottonwoods and
|
|
willows, and hid the raft with them. Then we set out the lines. Next
|
|
we slid into the river and had a swim, so as to freshen up and cool
|
|
off; then we set down on the sandy bottom where the water was about knee
|
|
deep, and watched the daylight come. Not a sound anywheres--perfectly
|
|
still--just like the whole world was asleep, only sometimes the bullfrogs
|
|
a-cluttering, maybe. The first thing to see, looking away over the
|
|
water, was a kind of dull line--that was the woods on t'other side; you
|
|
couldn't make nothing else out; then a pale place in the sky; then more
|
|
paleness spreading around; then the river softened up away off, and
|
|
warn't black any more, but gray; you could see little dark spots
|
|
drifting along ever so far away--trading scows, and such things; and
|
|
long black streaks--rafts; sometimes you could hear a sweep screaking; or
|
|
jumbled up voices, it was so still, and sounds come so far; and by and
|
|
by you could see a streak on the water which you know by the look of the
|
|
streak that there's a snag there in a swift current which breaks on it
|
|
and makes that streak look that way; and you see the mist curl up off
|
|
of the water, and the east reddens up, and the river, and you make out a
|
|
log-cabin in the edge of the woods, away on the bank on t'other side of
|
|
the river, being a woodyard, likely, and piled by them cheats so you can
|
|
throw a dog through it anywheres; then the nice breeze springs up, and
|
|
comes fanning you from over there, so cool and fresh and sweet to smell
|
|
on account of the woods and the flowers; but sometimes not that way,
|
|
because they've left dead fish laying around, gars and such, and they
|
|
do get pretty rank; and next you've got the full day, and everything
|
|
smiling in the sun, and the song-birds just going it!
|
|
|
|
A little smoke couldn't be noticed now, so we would take some fish off
|
|
of the lines and cook up a hot breakfast. And afterwards we would watch
|
|
the lonesomeness of the river, and kind of lazy along, and by and by
|
|
lazy off to sleep. Wake up by and by, and look to see what done it, and
|
|
maybe see a steamboat coughing along up-stream, so far off towards the
|
|
other side you couldn't tell nothing about her only whether she was
|
|
a stern-wheel or side-wheel; then for about an hour there wouldn't be
|
|
nothing to hear nor nothing to see--just solid lonesomeness. Next
|
|
you'd see a raft sliding by, away off yonder, and maybe a galoot on it
|
|
chopping, because they're most always doing it on a raft; you'd see the
|
|
axe flash and come down--you don't hear nothing; you see that axe go
|
|
up again, and by the time it's above the man's head then you hear the
|
|
_k'chunk_!--it had took all that time to come over the water. So we
|
|
would put in the day, lazying around, listening to the stillness. Once
|
|
there was a thick fog, and the rafts and things that went by was beating
|
|
tin pans so the steamboats wouldn't run over them. A scow or a
|
|
raft went by so close we could hear them talking and cussing and
|
|
laughing--heard them plain; but we couldn't see no sign of them; it made
|
|
you feel crawly; it was like spirits carrying on that way in the air.
|
|
Jim said he believed it was spirits; but I says:
|
|
|
|
“No; spirits wouldn't say, 'Dern the dern fog.'”
|
|
|
|
Soon as it was night out we shoved; when we got her out to about the
|
|
middle we let her alone, and let her float wherever the current wanted
|
|
her to; then we lit the pipes, and dangled our legs in the water, and
|
|
talked about all kinds of things--we was always naked, day and night,
|
|
whenever the mosquitoes would let us--the new clothes Buck's folks made
|
|
for me was too good to be comfortable, and besides I didn't go much on
|
|
clothes, nohow.
|
|
|
|
Sometimes we'd have that whole river all to ourselves for the longest
|
|
time. Yonder was the banks and the islands, across the water; and maybe
|
|
a spark--which was a candle in a cabin window; and sometimes on the water
|
|
you could see a spark or two--on a raft or a scow, you know; and maybe
|
|
you could hear a fiddle or a song coming over from one of them crafts.
|
|
It's lovely to live on a raft. We had the sky up there, all speckled
|
|
with stars, and we used to lay on our backs and look up at them, and
|
|
discuss about whether they was made or only just happened. Jim he
|
|
allowed they was made, but I allowed they happened; I judged it would
|
|
have took too long to _make_ so many. Jim said the moon could a _laid_
|
|
them; well, that looked kind of reasonable, so I didn't say nothing
|
|
against it, because I've seen a frog lay most as many, so of course it
|
|
could be done. We used to watch the stars that fell, too, and see them
|
|
streak down. Jim allowed they'd got spoiled and was hove out of the
|
|
nest.
|
|
|
|
Once or twice of a night we would see a steamboat slipping along in the
|
|
dark, and now and then she would belch a whole world of sparks up out
|
|
of her chimbleys, and they would rain down in the river and look awful
|
|
pretty; then she would turn a corner and her lights would wink out and
|
|
her powwow shut off and leave the river still again; and by and by her
|
|
waves would get to us, a long time after she was gone, and joggle the
|
|
raft a bit, and after that you wouldn't hear nothing for you couldn't
|
|
tell how long, except maybe frogs or something.
|
|
|
|
After midnight the people on shore went to bed, and then for two or
|
|
three hours the shores was black--no more sparks in the cabin windows.
|
|
These sparks was our clock--the first one that showed again meant
|
|
morning was coming, so we hunted a place to hide and tie up right away.
|
|
|
|
One morning about daybreak I found a canoe and crossed over a chute to
|
|
the main shore--it was only two hundred yards--and paddled about a mile
|
|
up a crick amongst the cypress woods, to see if I couldn't get some
|
|
berries. Just as I was passing a place where a kind of a cowpath crossed
|
|
the crick, here comes a couple of men tearing up the path as tight as
|
|
they could foot it. I thought I was a goner, for whenever anybody was
|
|
after anybody I judged it was _me_--or maybe Jim. I was about to dig out
|
|
from there in a hurry, but they was pretty close to me then, and sung
|
|
out and begged me to save their lives--said they hadn't been doing
|
|
nothing, and was being chased for it--said there was men and dogs
|
|
a-coming. They wanted to jump right in, but I says:
|
|
|
|
“Don't you do it. I don't hear the dogs and horses yet; you've got time
|
|
to crowd through the brush and get up the crick a little ways; then you
|
|
take to the water and wade down to me and get in--that'll throw the dogs
|
|
off the scent.”
|
|
|
|
They done it, and soon as they was aboard I lit out for our towhead,
|
|
and in about five or ten minutes we heard the dogs and the men away off,
|
|
shouting. We heard them come along towards the crick, but couldn't
|
|
see them; they seemed to stop and fool around a while; then, as we got
|
|
further and further away all the time, we couldn't hardly hear them at
|
|
all; by the time we had left a mile of woods behind us and struck the
|
|
river, everything was quiet, and we paddled over to the towhead and hid
|
|
in the cottonwoods and was safe.
|
|
|
|
One of these fellows was about seventy or upwards, and had a bald head
|
|
and very gray whiskers. He had an old battered-up slouch hat on, and
|
|
a greasy blue woollen shirt, and ragged old blue jeans britches stuffed
|
|
into his boot-tops, and home-knit galluses--no, he only had one. He had
|
|
an old long-tailed blue jeans coat with slick brass buttons flung over
|
|
his arm, and both of them had big, fat, ratty-looking carpet-bags.
|
|
|
|
The other fellow was about thirty, and dressed about as ornery. After
|
|
breakfast we all laid off and talked, and the first thing that come out
|
|
was that these chaps didn't know one another.
|
|
|
|
“What got you into trouble?” says the baldhead to t'other chap.
|
|
|
|
“Well, I'd been selling an article to take the tartar off the teeth--and
|
|
it does take it off, too, and generly the enamel along with it--but I
|
|
stayed about one night longer than I ought to, and was just in the act
|
|
of sliding out when I ran across you on the trail this side of town, and
|
|
you told me they were coming, and begged me to help you to get off. So
|
|
I told you I was expecting trouble myself, and would scatter out _with_
|
|
you. That's the whole yarn--what's yourn?
|
|
|
|
“Well, I'd ben a-running' a little temperance revival thar 'bout a week,
|
|
and was the pet of the women folks, big and little, for I was makin' it
|
|
mighty warm for the rummies, I _tell_ you, and takin' as much as five
|
|
or six dollars a night--ten cents a head, children and niggers free--and
|
|
business a-growin' all the time, when somehow or another a little report
|
|
got around last night that I had a way of puttin' in my time with a
|
|
private jug on the sly. A nigger rousted me out this mornin', and told
|
|
me the people was getherin' on the quiet with their dogs and horses, and
|
|
they'd be along pretty soon and give me 'bout half an hour's start,
|
|
and then run me down if they could; and if they got me they'd tar
|
|
and feather me and ride me on a rail, sure. I didn't wait for no
|
|
breakfast--I warn't hungry.”
|
|
|
|
“Old man,” said the young one, “I reckon we might double-team it
|
|
together; what do you think?”
|
|
|
|
“I ain't undisposed. What's your line--mainly?”
|
|
|
|
“Jour printer by trade; do a little in patent medicines;
|
|
theater-actor--tragedy, you know; take a turn to mesmerism and phrenology
|
|
when there's a chance; teach singing-geography school for a change;
|
|
sling a lecture sometimes--oh, I do lots of things--most anything that
|
|
comes handy, so it ain't work. What's your lay?”
|
|
|
|
“I've done considerble in the doctoring way in my time. Layin' on o'
|
|
hands is my best holt--for cancer and paralysis, and sich things; and I
|
|
k'n tell a fortune pretty good when I've got somebody along to find out
|
|
the facts for me. Preachin's my line, too, and workin' camp-meetin's,
|
|
and missionaryin' around.”
|
|
|
|
Nobody never said anything for a while; then the young man hove a sigh
|
|
and says:
|
|
|
|
“Alas!”
|
|
|
|
“What 're you alassin' about?” says the bald-head.
|
|
|
|
“To think I should have lived to be leading such a life, and be degraded
|
|
down into such company.” And he begun to wipe the corner of his eye
|
|
with a rag.
|
|
|
|
“Dern your skin, ain't the company good enough for you?” says the
|
|
baldhead, pretty pert and uppish.
|
|
|
|
“Yes, it _is_ good enough for me; it's as good as I deserve; for who
|
|
fetched me so low when I was so high? I did myself. I don't blame
|
|
_you_, gentlemen--far from it; I don't blame anybody. I deserve it
|
|
all. Let the cold world do its worst; one thing I know--there's a grave
|
|
somewhere for me. The world may go on just as it's always done, and take
|
|
everything from me--loved ones, property, everything; but it can't take
|
|
that. Some day I'll lie down in it and forget it all, and my poor broken
|
|
heart will be at rest.” He went on a-wiping.
|
|
|
|
“Drot your pore broken heart,” says the baldhead; “what are you heaving
|
|
your pore broken heart at _us_ f'r? _we_ hain't done nothing.”
|
|
|
|
“No, I know you haven't. I ain't blaming you, gentlemen. I brought
|
|
myself down--yes, I did it myself. It's right I should suffer--perfectly
|
|
right--I don't make any moan.”
|
|
|
|
“Brought you down from whar? Whar was you brought down from?”
|
|
|
|
“Ah, you would not believe me; the world never believes--let it pass--'tis
|
|
no matter. The secret of my birth--”
|
|
|
|
“The secret of your birth! Do you mean to say--”
|
|
|
|
“Gentlemen,” says the young man, very solemn, “I will reveal it to you,
|
|
for I feel I may have confidence in you. By rights I am a duke!”
|
|
|
|
Jim's eyes bugged out when he heard that; and I reckon mine did, too.
|
|
Then the baldhead says: “No! you can't mean it?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes. My great-grandfather, eldest son of the Duke of Bridgewater, fled
|
|
to this country about the end of the last century, to breathe the pure
|
|
air of freedom; married here, and died, leaving a son, his own father
|
|
dying about the same time. The second son of the late duke seized the
|
|
titles and estates--the infant real duke was ignored. I am the lineal
|
|
descendant of that infant--I am the rightful Duke of Bridgewater; and
|
|
here am I, forlorn, torn from my high estate, hunted of men, despised
|
|
by the cold world, ragged, worn, heart-broken, and degraded to the
|
|
companionship of felons on a raft!”
|
|
|
|
Jim pitied him ever so much, and so did I. We tried to comfort him, but
|
|
he said it warn't much use, he couldn't be much comforted; said if we
|
|
was a mind to acknowledge him, that would do him more good than most
|
|
anything else; so we said we would, if he would tell us how. He said we
|
|
ought to bow when we spoke to him, and say “Your Grace,” or “My Lord,”
|
|
or “Your Lordship”--and he wouldn't mind it if we called him plain
|
|
“Bridgewater,” which, he said, was a title anyway, and not a name; and
|
|
one of us ought to wait on him at dinner, and do any little thing for
|
|
him he wanted done.
|
|
|
|
Well, that was all easy, so we done it. All through dinner Jim stood
|
|
around and waited on him, and says, “Will yo' Grace have some o' dis or
|
|
some o' dat?” and so on, and a body could see it was mighty pleasing to
|
|
him.
|
|
|
|
But the old man got pretty silent by and by--didn't have much to say, and
|
|
didn't look pretty comfortable over all that petting that was going on
|
|
around that duke. He seemed to have something on his mind. So, along
|
|
in the afternoon, he says:
|
|
|
|
“Looky here, Bilgewater,” he says, “I'm nation sorry for you, but you
|
|
ain't the only person that's had troubles like that.”
|
|
|
|
“No?”
|
|
|
|
“No you ain't. You ain't the only person that's ben snaked down
|
|
wrongfully out'n a high place.”
|
|
|
|
“Alas!”
|
|
|
|
“No, you ain't the only person that's had a secret of his birth.” And,
|
|
by jings, _he_ begins to cry.
|
|
|
|
“Hold! What do you mean?”
|
|
|
|
“Bilgewater, kin I trust you?” says the old man, still sort of sobbing.
|
|
|
|
“To the bitter death!” He took the old man by the hand and squeezed it,
|
|
and says, “That secret of your being: speak!”
|
|
|
|
“Bilgewater, I am the late Dauphin!”
|
|
|
|
You bet you, Jim and me stared this time. Then the duke says:
|
|
|
|
“You are what?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes, my friend, it is too true--your eyes is lookin' at this very moment
|
|
on the pore disappeared Dauphin, Looy the Seventeen, son of Looy the
|
|
Sixteen and Marry Antonette.”
|
|
|
|
“You! At your age! No! You mean you're the late Charlemagne; you must
|
|
be six or seven hundred years old, at the very least.”
|
|
|
|
“Trouble has done it, Bilgewater, trouble has done it; trouble has brung
|
|
these gray hairs and this premature balditude. Yes, gentlemen, you
|
|
see before you, in blue jeans and misery, the wanderin', exiled,
|
|
trampled-on, and sufferin' rightful King of France.”
|
|
|
|
Well, he cried and took on so that me and Jim didn't know hardly what to
|
|
do, we was so sorry--and so glad and proud we'd got him with us, too.
|
|
So we set in, like we done before with the duke, and tried to comfort
|
|
_him_. But he said it warn't no use, nothing but to be dead and done
|
|
with it all could do him any good; though he said it often made him feel
|
|
easier and better for a while if people treated him according to his
|
|
rights, and got down on one knee to speak to him, and always called him
|
|
“Your Majesty,” and waited on him first at meals, and didn't set down
|
|
in his presence till he asked them. So Jim and me set to majestying him,
|
|
and doing this and that and t'other for him, and standing up till he
|
|
told us we might set down. This done him heaps of good, and so he
|
|
got cheerful and comfortable. But the duke kind of soured on him, and
|
|
didn't look a bit satisfied with the way things was going; still,
|
|
the king acted real friendly towards him, and said the duke's
|
|
great-grandfather and all the other Dukes of Bilgewater was a good
|
|
deal thought of by _his_ father, and was allowed to come to the palace
|
|
considerable; but the duke stayed huffy a good while, till by and by the
|
|
king says:
|
|
|
|
“Like as not we got to be together a blamed long time on this h-yer
|
|
raft, Bilgewater, and so what's the use o' your bein' sour? It 'll only
|
|
make things oncomfortable. It ain't my fault I warn't born a duke,
|
|
it ain't your fault you warn't born a king--so what's the use to worry?
|
|
Make the best o' things the way you find 'em, says I--that's my motto.
|
|
This ain't no bad thing that we've struck here--plenty grub and an easy
|
|
life--come, give us your hand, duke, and le's all be friends.”
|
|
|
|
The duke done it, and Jim and me was pretty glad to see it. It took
|
|
away all the uncomfortableness and we felt mighty good over it, because
|
|
it would a been a miserable business to have any unfriendliness on the
|
|
raft; for what you want, above all things, on a raft, is for everybody
|
|
to be satisfied, and feel right and kind towards the others.
|
|
|
|
It didn't take me long to make up my mind that these liars warn't no
|
|
kings nor dukes at all, but just low-down humbugs and frauds. But I
|
|
never said nothing, never let on; kept it to myself; it's the best way;
|
|
then you don't have no quarrels, and don't get into no trouble. If they
|
|
wanted us to call them kings and dukes, I hadn't no objections, 'long as
|
|
it would keep peace in the family; and it warn't no use to tell Jim, so
|
|
I didn't tell him. If I never learnt nothing else out of pap, I learnt
|
|
that the best way to get along with his kind of people is to let them
|
|
have their own way.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XX.
|
|
|
|
THEY asked us considerable many questions; wanted to know what we
|
|
covered up the raft that way for, and laid by in the daytime instead of
|
|
running--was Jim a runaway nigger? Says I:
|
|
|
|
“Goodness sakes! would a runaway nigger run _south_?”
|
|
|
|
No, they allowed he wouldn't. I had to account for things some way, so
|
|
I says:
|
|
|
|
“My folks was living in Pike County, in Missouri, where I was born, and
|
|
they all died off but me and pa and my brother Ike. Pa, he 'lowed
|
|
he'd break up and go down and live with Uncle Ben, who's got a little
|
|
one-horse place on the river, forty-four mile below Orleans. Pa was
|
|
pretty poor, and had some debts; so when he'd squared up there warn't
|
|
nothing left but sixteen dollars and our nigger, Jim. That warn't
|
|
enough to take us fourteen hundred mile, deck passage nor no other way.
|
|
Well, when the river rose pa had a streak of luck one day; he ketched
|
|
this piece of a raft; so we reckoned we'd go down to Orleans on it.
|
|
Pa's luck didn't hold out; a steamboat run over the forrard corner of
|
|
the raft one night, and we all went overboard and dove under the wheel;
|
|
Jim and me come up all right, but pa was drunk, and Ike was only four
|
|
years old, so they never come up no more. Well, for the next day or
|
|
two we had considerable trouble, because people was always coming out in
|
|
skiffs and trying to take Jim away from me, saying they believed he was
|
|
a runaway nigger. We don't run daytimes no more now; nights they don't
|
|
bother us.”
|
|
|
|
The duke says:
|
|
|
|
“Leave me alone to cipher out a way so we can run in the daytime if we
|
|
want to. I'll think the thing over--I'll invent a plan that'll fix it.
|
|
We'll let it alone for to-day, because of course we don't want to go by
|
|
that town yonder in daylight--it mightn't be healthy.”
|
|
|
|
Towards night it begun to darken up and look like rain; the heat
|
|
lightning was squirting around low down in the sky, and the leaves was
|
|
beginning to shiver--it was going to be pretty ugly, it was easy to see
|
|
that. So the duke and the king went to overhauling our wigwam, to see
|
|
what the beds was like. My bed was a straw tick better than Jim's,
|
|
which was a corn-shuck tick; there's always cobs around about in a shuck
|
|
tick, and they poke into you and hurt; and when you roll over the dry
|
|
shucks sound like you was rolling over in a pile of dead leaves; it
|
|
makes such a rustling that you wake up. Well, the duke allowed he would
|
|
take my bed; but the king allowed he wouldn't. He says:
|
|
|
|
“I should a reckoned the difference in rank would a sejested to you that
|
|
a corn-shuck bed warn't just fitten for me to sleep on. Your Grace 'll
|
|
take the shuck bed yourself.”
|
|
|
|
Jim and me was in a sweat again for a minute, being afraid there was
|
|
going to be some more trouble amongst them; so we was pretty glad when
|
|
the duke says:
|
|
|
|
“'Tis my fate to be always ground into the mire under the iron heel of
|
|
oppression. Misfortune has broken my once haughty spirit; I yield, I
|
|
submit; 'tis my fate. I am alone in the world--let me suffer; can bear
|
|
it.”
|
|
|
|
We got away as soon as it was good and dark. The king told us to stand
|
|
well out towards the middle of the river, and not show a light till we
|
|
got a long ways below the town. We come in sight of the little bunch of
|
|
lights by and by--that was the town, you know--and slid by, about a half
|
|
a mile out, all right. When we was three-quarters of a mile below we
|
|
hoisted up our signal lantern; and about ten o'clock it come on to rain
|
|
and blow and thunder and lighten like everything; so the king told us
|
|
to both stay on watch till the weather got better; then him and the duke
|
|
crawled into the wigwam and turned in for the night. It was my watch
|
|
below till twelve, but I wouldn't a turned in anyway if I'd had a bed,
|
|
because a body don't see such a storm as that every day in the week, not
|
|
by a long sight. My souls, how the wind did scream along! And every
|
|
second or two there'd come a glare that lit up the white-caps for a half
|
|
a mile around, and you'd see the islands looking dusty through the rain,
|
|
and the trees thrashing around in the wind; then comes a H-WHACK!--bum!
|
|
bum! bumble-umble-um-bum-bum-bum-bum--and the thunder would go rumbling
|
|
and grumbling away, and quit--and then RIP comes another flash and
|
|
another sockdolager. The waves most washed me off the raft sometimes,
|
|
but I hadn't any clothes on, and didn't mind. We didn't have no trouble
|
|
about snags; the lightning was glaring and flittering around so constant
|
|
that we could see them plenty soon enough to throw her head this way or
|
|
that and miss them.
|
|
|
|
I had the middle watch, you know, but I was pretty sleepy by that time,
|
|
so Jim he said he would stand the first half of it for me; he was always
|
|
mighty good that way, Jim was. I crawled into the wigwam, but the king
|
|
and the duke had their legs sprawled around so there warn't no show for
|
|
me; so I laid outside--I didn't mind the rain, because it was warm, and
|
|
the waves warn't running so high now. About two they come up again,
|
|
though, and Jim was going to call me; but he changed his mind, because
|
|
he reckoned they warn't high enough yet to do any harm; but he was
|
|
mistaken about that, for pretty soon all of a sudden along comes a
|
|
regular ripper and washed me overboard. It most killed Jim a-laughing.
|
|
He was the easiest nigger to laugh that ever was, anyway.
|
|
|
|
I took the watch, and Jim he laid down and snored away; and by and by
|
|
the storm let up for good and all; and the first cabin-light that showed
|
|
I rousted him out, and we slid the raft into hiding quarters for the
|
|
day.
|
|
|
|
The king got out an old ratty deck of cards after breakfast, and him
|
|
and the duke played seven-up a while, five cents a game. Then they got
|
|
tired of it, and allowed they would “lay out a campaign,” as they called
|
|
it. The duke went down into his carpet-bag, and fetched up a lot of
|
|
little printed bills and read them out loud. One bill said, “The
|
|
celebrated Dr. Armand de Montalban, of Paris,” would “lecture on the
|
|
Science of Phrenology” at such and such a place, on the blank day of
|
|
blank, at ten cents admission, and “furnish charts of character at
|
|
twenty-five cents apiece.” The duke said that was _him_. In another
|
|
bill he was the “world-renowned Shakespearian tragedian, Garrick the
|
|
Younger, of Drury Lane, London.” In other bills he had a lot of other
|
|
names and done other wonderful things, like finding water and gold with
|
|
a “divining-rod,” “dissipating witch spells,” and so on. By and by he
|
|
says:
|
|
|
|
“But the histrionic muse is the darling. Have you ever trod the boards,
|
|
Royalty?”
|
|
|
|
“No,” says the king.
|
|
|
|
“You shall, then, before you're three days older, Fallen Grandeur,” says
|
|
the duke. “The first good town we come to we'll hire a hall and do the
|
|
sword fight in Richard III. and the balcony scene in Romeo and Juliet.
|
|
How does that strike you?”
|
|
|
|
“I'm in, up to the hub, for anything that will pay, Bilgewater; but, you
|
|
see, I don't know nothing about play-actin', and hain't ever seen much
|
|
of it. I was too small when pap used to have 'em at the palace. Do you
|
|
reckon you can learn me?”
|
|
|
|
“Easy!”
|
|
|
|
“All right. I'm jist a-freezn' for something fresh, anyway. Le's
|
|
commence right away.”
|
|
|
|
So the duke he told him all about who Romeo was and who Juliet was, and
|
|
said he was used to being Romeo, so the king could be Juliet.
|
|
|
|
“But if Juliet's such a young gal, duke, my peeled head and my white
|
|
whiskers is goin' to look oncommon odd on her, maybe.”
|
|
|
|
“No, don't you worry; these country jakes won't ever think of that.
|
|
Besides, you know, you'll be in costume, and that makes all the
|
|
difference in the world; Juliet's in a balcony, enjoying the moonlight
|
|
before she goes to bed, and she's got on her night-gown and her ruffled
|
|
nightcap. Here are the costumes for the parts.”
|
|
|
|
He got out two or three curtain-calico suits, which he said was
|
|
meedyevil armor for Richard III. and t'other chap, and a long white
|
|
cotton nightshirt and a ruffled nightcap to match. The king was
|
|
satisfied; so the duke got out his book and read the parts over in the
|
|
most splendid spread-eagle way, prancing around and acting at the same
|
|
time, to show how it had got to be done; then he give the book to the
|
|
king and told him to get his part by heart.
|
|
|
|
There was a little one-horse town about three mile down the bend, and
|
|
after dinner the duke said he had ciphered out his idea about how to run
|
|
in daylight without it being dangersome for Jim; so he allowed he would
|
|
go down to the town and fix that thing. The king allowed he would go,
|
|
too, and see if he couldn't strike something. We was out of coffee, so
|
|
Jim said I better go along with them in the canoe and get some.
|
|
|
|
When we got there there warn't nobody stirring; streets empty, and
|
|
perfectly dead and still, like Sunday. We found a sick nigger sunning
|
|
himself in a back yard, and he said everybody that warn't too young or
|
|
too sick or too old was gone to camp-meeting, about two mile back in the
|
|
woods. The king got the directions, and allowed he'd go and work that
|
|
camp-meeting for all it was worth, and I might go, too.
|
|
|
|
The duke said what he was after was a printing-office. We found it;
|
|
a little bit of a concern, up over a carpenter shop--carpenters and
|
|
printers all gone to the meeting, and no doors locked. It was a dirty,
|
|
littered-up place, and had ink marks, and handbills with pictures of
|
|
horses and runaway niggers on them, all over the walls. The duke shed
|
|
his coat and said he was all right now. So me and the king lit out for
|
|
the camp-meeting.
|
|
|
|
We got there in about a half an hour fairly dripping, for it was a most
|
|
awful hot day. There was as much as a thousand people there from
|
|
twenty mile around. The woods was full of teams and wagons, hitched
|
|
everywheres, feeding out of the wagon-troughs and stomping to keep
|
|
off the flies. There was sheds made out of poles and roofed over with
|
|
branches, where they had lemonade and gingerbread to sell, and piles of
|
|
watermelons and green corn and such-like truck.
|
|
|
|
The preaching was going on under the same kinds of sheds, only they was
|
|
bigger and held crowds of people. The benches was made out of outside
|
|
slabs of logs, with holes bored in the round side to drive sticks into
|
|
for legs. They didn't have no backs. The preachers had high platforms
|
|
to stand on at one end of the sheds. The women had on sun-bonnets;
|
|
and some had linsey-woolsey frocks, some gingham ones, and a few of the
|
|
young ones had on calico. Some of the young men was barefooted, and
|
|
some of the children didn't have on any clothes but just a tow-linen
|
|
shirt. Some of the old women was knitting, and some of the young folks
|
|
was courting on the sly.
|
|
|
|
The first shed we come to the preacher was lining out a hymn. He lined
|
|
out two lines, everybody sung it, and it was kind of grand to hear it,
|
|
there was so many of them and they done it in such a rousing way; then
|
|
he lined out two more for them to sing--and so on. The people woke up
|
|
more and more, and sung louder and louder; and towards the end some
|
|
begun to groan, and some begun to shout. Then the preacher begun to
|
|
preach, and begun in earnest, too; and went weaving first to one side of
|
|
the platform and then the other, and then a-leaning down over the front
|
|
of it, with his arms and his body going all the time, and shouting his
|
|
words out with all his might; and every now and then he would hold up
|
|
his Bible and spread it open, and kind of pass it around this way and
|
|
that, shouting, “It's the brazen serpent in the wilderness! Look upon
|
|
it and live!” And people would shout out, “Glory!--A-a-_men_!” And so
|
|
he went on, and the people groaning and crying and saying amen:
|
|
|
|
“Oh, come to the mourners' bench! come, black with sin! (_Amen_!) come,
|
|
sick and sore! (_Amen_!) come, lame and halt and blind! (_Amen_!) come,
|
|
pore and needy, sunk in shame! (_A-A-Men_!) come, all that's worn and
|
|
soiled and suffering!--come with a broken spirit! come with a contrite
|
|
heart! come in your rags and sin and dirt! the waters that cleanse
|
|
is free, the door of heaven stands open--oh, enter in and be at rest!”
|
|
(_A-A-Men_! _Glory, Glory Hallelujah!_)
|
|
|
|
And so on. You couldn't make out what the preacher said any more, on
|
|
account of the shouting and crying. Folks got up everywheres in the
|
|
crowd, and worked their way just by main strength to the mourners'
|
|
bench, with the tears running down their faces; and when all the
|
|
mourners had got up there to the front benches in a crowd, they sung and
|
|
shouted and flung themselves down on the straw, just crazy and wild.
|
|
|
|
Well, the first I knowed the king got a-going, and you could hear him
|
|
over everybody; and next he went a-charging up on to the platform, and
|
|
the preacher he begged him to speak to the people, and he done it. He
|
|
told them he was a pirate--been a pirate for thirty years out in the
|
|
Indian Ocean--and his crew was thinned out considerable last spring in
|
|
a fight, and he was home now to take out some fresh men, and thanks to
|
|
goodness he'd been robbed last night and put ashore off of a steamboat
|
|
without a cent, and he was glad of it; it was the blessedest thing that
|
|
ever happened to him, because he was a changed man now, and happy for
|
|
the first time in his life; and, poor as he was, he was going to start
|
|
right off and work his way back to the Indian Ocean, and put in the rest
|
|
of his life trying to turn the pirates into the true path; for he could
|
|
do it better than anybody else, being acquainted with all pirate crews
|
|
in that ocean; and though it would take him a long time to get there
|
|
without money, he would get there anyway, and every time he convinced
|
|
a pirate he would say to him, “Don't you thank me, don't you give me no
|
|
credit; it all belongs to them dear people in Pokeville camp-meeting,
|
|
natural brothers and benefactors of the race, and that dear preacher
|
|
there, the truest friend a pirate ever had!”
|
|
|
|
And then he busted into tears, and so did everybody. Then somebody
|
|
sings out, “Take up a collection for him, take up a collection!” Well,
|
|
a half a dozen made a jump to do it, but somebody sings out, “Let _him_
|
|
pass the hat around!” Then everybody said it, the preacher too.
|
|
|
|
So the king went all through the crowd with his hat swabbing his eyes,
|
|
and blessing the people and praising them and thanking them for being
|
|
so good to the poor pirates away off there; and every little while the
|
|
prettiest kind of girls, with the tears running down their cheeks, would
|
|
up and ask him would he let them kiss him for to remember him by; and he
|
|
always done it; and some of them he hugged and kissed as many as five or
|
|
six times--and he was invited to stay a week; and everybody wanted him to
|
|
live in their houses, and said they'd think it was an honor; but he said
|
|
as this was the last day of the camp-meeting he couldn't do no good, and
|
|
besides he was in a sweat to get to the Indian Ocean right off and go to
|
|
work on the pirates.
|
|
|
|
When we got back to the raft and he come to count up he found he had
|
|
collected eighty-seven dollars and seventy-five cents. And then he had
|
|
fetched away a three-gallon jug of whisky, too, that he found under a
|
|
wagon when he was starting home through the woods. The king said,
|
|
take it all around, it laid over any day he'd ever put in in the
|
|
missionarying line. He said it warn't no use talking, heathens don't
|
|
amount to shucks alongside of pirates to work a camp-meeting with.
|
|
|
|
The duke was thinking _he'd_ been doing pretty well till the king come
|
|
to show up, but after that he didn't think so so much. He had set
|
|
up and printed off two little jobs for farmers in that
|
|
printing-office--horse bills--and took the money, four dollars. And he
|
|
had got in ten dollars' worth of advertisements for the paper, which he
|
|
said he would put in for four dollars if they would pay in advance--so
|
|
they done it. The price of the paper was two dollars a year, but he took
|
|
in three subscriptions for half a dollar apiece on condition of them
|
|
paying him in advance; they were going to pay in cordwood and onions as
|
|
usual, but he said he had just bought the concern and knocked down the
|
|
price as low as he could afford it, and was going to run it for cash.
|
|
He set up a little piece of poetry, which he made, himself, out of
|
|
his own head--three verses--kind of sweet and saddish--the name of it was,
|
|
“Yes, crush, cold world, this breaking heart”--and he left that all set
|
|
up and ready to print in the paper, and didn't charge nothing for it.
|
|
Well, he took in nine dollars and a half, and said he'd done a pretty
|
|
square day's work for it.
|
|
|
|
Then he showed us another little job he'd printed and hadn't charged
|
|
for, because it was for us. It had a picture of a runaway nigger with
|
|
a bundle on a stick over his shoulder, and “$200 reward” under it. The
|
|
reading was all about Jim, and just described him to a dot. It said
|
|
he run away from St. Jacques' plantation, forty mile below New Orleans,
|
|
last winter, and likely went north, and whoever would catch him and send
|
|
him back he could have the reward and expenses.
|
|
|
|
“Now,” says the duke, “after to-night we can run in the daytime if we
|
|
want to. Whenever we see anybody coming we can tie Jim hand and foot
|
|
with a rope, and lay him in the wigwam and show this handbill and say we
|
|
captured him up the river, and were too poor to travel on a steamboat,
|
|
so we got this little raft on credit from our friends and are going down
|
|
to get the reward. Handcuffs and chains would look still better on Jim,
|
|
but it wouldn't go well with the story of us being so poor. Too much
|
|
like jewelry. Ropes are the correct thing--we must preserve the unities,
|
|
as we say on the boards.”
|
|
|
|
We all said the duke was pretty smart, and there couldn't be no trouble
|
|
about running daytimes. We judged we could make miles enough that night
|
|
to get out of the reach of the powwow we reckoned the duke's work in
|
|
the printing office was going to make in that little town; then we could
|
|
boom right along if we wanted to.
|
|
|
|
We laid low and kept still, and never shoved out till nearly ten
|
|
o'clock; then we slid by, pretty wide away from the town, and didn't
|
|
hoist our lantern till we was clear out of sight of it.
|
|
|
|
When Jim called me to take the watch at four in the morning, he says:
|
|
|
|
“Huck, does you reck'n we gwyne to run acrost any mo' kings on dis
|
|
trip?”
|
|
|
|
“No,” I says, “I reckon not.”
|
|
|
|
“Well,” says he, “dat's all right, den. I doan' mine one er two kings,
|
|
but dat's enough. Dis one's powerful drunk, en de duke ain' much
|
|
better.”
|
|
|
|
I found Jim had been trying to get him to talk French, so he could hear
|
|
what it was like; but he said he had been in this country so long, and
|
|
had so much trouble, he'd forgot it.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXI.
|
|
|
|
IT was after sun-up now, but we went right on and didn't tie up. The
|
|
king and the duke turned out by and by looking pretty rusty; but after
|
|
they'd jumped overboard and took a swim it chippered them up a good
|
|
deal. After breakfast the king he took a seat on the corner of the raft,
|
|
and pulled off his boots and rolled up his britches, and let his legs
|
|
dangle in the water, so as to be comfortable, and lit his pipe, and went
|
|
to getting his Romeo and Juliet by heart. When he had got it pretty
|
|
good him and the duke begun to practice it together. The duke had to
|
|
learn him over and over again how to say every speech; and he made him
|
|
sigh, and put his hand on his heart, and after a while he said he done
|
|
it pretty well; “only,” he says, “you mustn't bellow out _Romeo_!
|
|
that way, like a bull--you must say it soft and sick and languishy,
|
|
so--R-o-o-meo! that is the idea; for Juliet's a dear sweet mere child of
|
|
a girl, you know, and she doesn't bray like a jackass.”
|
|
|
|
Well, next they got out a couple of long swords that the duke made out
|
|
of oak laths, and begun to practice the sword fight--the duke called
|
|
himself Richard III.; and the way they laid on and pranced around
|
|
the raft was grand to see. But by and by the king tripped and fell
|
|
overboard, and after that they took a rest, and had a talk about all
|
|
kinds of adventures they'd had in other times along the river.
|
|
|
|
After dinner the duke says:
|
|
|
|
“Well, Capet, we'll want to make this a first-class show, you know, so
|
|
I guess we'll add a little more to it. We want a little something to
|
|
answer encores with, anyway.”
|
|
|
|
“What's onkores, Bilgewater?”
|
|
|
|
The duke told him, and then says:
|
|
|
|
“I'll answer by doing the Highland fling or the sailor's hornpipe; and
|
|
you--well, let me see--oh, I've got it--you can do Hamlet's soliloquy.”
|
|
|
|
“Hamlet's which?”
|
|
|
|
“Hamlet's soliloquy, you know; the most celebrated thing in Shakespeare.
|
|
Ah, it's sublime, sublime! Always fetches the house. I haven't got
|
|
it in the book--I've only got one volume--but I reckon I can piece it out
|
|
from memory. I'll just walk up and down a minute, and see if I can call
|
|
it back from recollection's vaults.”
|
|
|
|
So he went to marching up and down, thinking, and frowning horrible
|
|
every now and then; then he would hoist up his eyebrows; next he would
|
|
squeeze his hand on his forehead and stagger back and kind of moan; next
|
|
he would sigh, and next he'd let on to drop a tear. It was beautiful
|
|
to see him. By and by he got it. He told us to give attention. Then
|
|
he strikes a most noble attitude, with one leg shoved forwards, and his
|
|
arms stretched away up, and his head tilted back, looking up at the sky;
|
|
and then he begins to rip and rave and grit his teeth; and after that,
|
|
all through his speech, he howled, and spread around, and swelled up his
|
|
chest, and just knocked the spots out of any acting ever I see before.
|
|
This is the speech--I learned it, easy enough, while he was learning it
|
|
to the king:
|
|
|
|
To be, or not to be; that is the bare bodkin That makes calamity of
|
|
so long life; For who would fardels bear, till Birnam Wood do come
|
|
to Dunsinane, But that the fear of something after death Murders the
|
|
innocent sleep, Great nature's second course, And makes us rather sling
|
|
the arrows of outrageous fortune Than fly to others that we know not of.
|
|
There's the respect must give us pause: Wake Duncan with thy knocking! I
|
|
would thou couldst; For who would bear the whips and scorns of time, The
|
|
oppressor's wrong, the proud man's contumely, The law's delay, and the
|
|
quietus which his pangs might take. In the dead waste and middle of the
|
|
night, when churchyards yawn In customary suits of solemn black, But
|
|
that the undiscovered country from whose bourne no traveler returns,
|
|
Breathes forth contagion on the world, And thus the native hue of
|
|
resolution, like the poor cat i' the adage, Is sicklied o'er with care.
|
|
And all the clouds that lowered o'er our housetops, With this
|
|
regard their currents turn awry, And lose the name of action. 'Tis a
|
|
consummation devoutly to be wished. But soft you, the fair Ophelia: Ope
|
|
not thy ponderous and marble jaws. But get thee to a nunnery—go!
|
|
|
|
Well, the old man he liked that speech, and he mighty soon got it so he
|
|
could do it first rate. It seemed like he was just born for it; and when
|
|
he had his hand in and was excited, it was perfectly lovely the way he
|
|
would rip and tear and rair up behind when he was getting it off.
|
|
|
|
The first chance we got, the duke he had some show bills printed; and
|
|
after that, for two or three days as we floated along, the raft was a
|
|
most uncommon lively place, for there warn't nothing but sword-fighting
|
|
and rehearsing--as the duke called it--going on all the time. One morning,
|
|
when we was pretty well down the State of Arkansaw, we come in sight
|
|
of a little one-horse town in a big bend; so we tied up about
|
|
three-quarters of a mile above it, in the mouth of a crick which was
|
|
shut in like a tunnel by the cypress trees, and all of us but Jim took
|
|
the canoe and went down there to see if there was any chance in that
|
|
place for our show.
|
|
|
|
We struck it mighty lucky; there was going to be a circus there that
|
|
afternoon, and the country people was already beginning to come in, in
|
|
all kinds of old shackly wagons, and on horses. The circus would leave
|
|
before night, so our show would have a pretty good chance. The duke he
|
|
hired the court house, and we went around and stuck up our bills. They
|
|
read like this:
|
|
|
|
Shaksperean Revival!!!
|
|
|
|
Wonderful Attraction!
|
|
|
|
For One Night Only! The world renowned tragedians,
|
|
|
|
David Garrick the younger, of Drury Lane Theatre, London,
|
|
|
|
and
|
|
|
|
Edmund Kean the elder, of the Royal Haymarket Theatre, Whitechapel,
|
|
Pudding Lane, Piccadilly, London, and the Royal Continental Theatres, in
|
|
their sublime Shaksperean Spectacle entitled The Balcony Scene in
|
|
|
|
Romeo and Juliet!!!
|
|
|
|
Romeo...................................... Mr. Garrick.
|
|
|
|
Juliet..................................... Mr. Kean.
|
|
|
|
Assisted by the whole strength of the company!
|
|
|
|
New costumes, new scenery, new appointments!
|
|
|
|
Also:
|
|
|
|
The thrilling, masterly, and blood-curdling Broad-sword conflict In
|
|
Richard III.!!!
|
|
|
|
Richard III................................ Mr. Garrick.
|
|
|
|
Richmond................................... Mr. Kean.
|
|
|
|
also:
|
|
|
|
(by special request,)
|
|
|
|
Hamlet's Immortal Soliloquy!!
|
|
|
|
By the Illustrious Kean!
|
|
|
|
Done by him 300 consecutive nights in Paris!
|
|
|
|
For One Night Only,
|
|
|
|
On account of imperative European engagements!
|
|
|
|
Admission 25 cents; children and servants, 10 cents.
|
|
|
|
Then we went loafing around the town. The stores and houses was most all
|
|
old shackly dried-up frame concerns that hadn't ever been painted; they
|
|
was set up three or four foot above ground on stilts, so as to be out of
|
|
reach of the water when the river was overflowed. The houses had little
|
|
gardens around them, but they didn't seem to raise hardly anything in
|
|
them but jimpson weeds, and sunflowers, and ash-piles, and old curled-up
|
|
boots and shoes, and pieces of bottles, and rags, and played-out
|
|
tin-ware. The fences was made of different kinds of boards, nailed on
|
|
at different times; and they leaned every which-way, and had gates that
|
|
didn't generly have but one hinge--a leather one. Some of the fences
|
|
had been whitewashed, some time or another, but the duke said it was in
|
|
Clumbus's time, like enough. There was generly hogs in the garden, and
|
|
people driving them out.
|
|
|
|
All the stores was along one street. They had white domestic awnings in
|
|
front, and the country people hitched their horses to the awning-posts.
|
|
There was empty drygoods boxes under the awnings, and loafers roosting
|
|
on them all day long, whittling them with their Barlow knives; and
|
|
chawing tobacco, and gaping and yawning and stretching--a mighty ornery
|
|
lot. They generly had on yellow straw hats most as wide as an umbrella,
|
|
but didn't wear no coats nor waistcoats, they called one another Bill,
|
|
and Buck, and Hank, and Joe, and Andy, and talked lazy and drawly, and
|
|
used considerable many cuss words. There was as many as one loafer
|
|
leaning up against every awning-post, and he most always had his hands
|
|
in his britches-pockets, except when he fetched them out to lend a chaw
|
|
of tobacco or scratch. What a body was hearing amongst them all the
|
|
time was:
|
|
|
|
“Gimme a chaw 'v tobacker, Hank.”
|
|
|
|
“Cain't; I hain't got but one chaw left. Ask Bill.”
|
|
|
|
Maybe Bill he gives him a chaw; maybe he lies and says he ain't got
|
|
none. Some of them kinds of loafers never has a cent in the world, nor a
|
|
chaw of tobacco of their own. They get all their chawing by borrowing;
|
|
they say to a fellow, “I wisht you'd len' me a chaw, Jack, I jist this
|
|
minute give Ben Thompson the last chaw I had”--which is a lie pretty
|
|
much everytime; it don't fool nobody but a stranger; but Jack ain't no
|
|
stranger, so he says:
|
|
|
|
“_You_ give him a chaw, did you? So did your sister's cat's
|
|
grandmother. You pay me back the chaws you've awready borry'd off'n me,
|
|
Lafe Buckner, then I'll loan you one or two ton of it, and won't charge
|
|
you no back intrust, nuther.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, I _did_ pay you back some of it wunst.”
|
|
|
|
“Yes, you did--'bout six chaws. You borry'd store tobacker and paid back
|
|
nigger-head.”
|
|
|
|
Store tobacco is flat black plug, but these fellows mostly chaws the
|
|
natural leaf twisted. When they borrow a chaw they don't generly cut it
|
|
off with a knife, but set the plug in between their teeth, and gnaw with
|
|
their teeth and tug at the plug with their hands till they get it in
|
|
two; then sometimes the one that owns the tobacco looks mournful at it
|
|
when it's handed back, and says, sarcastic:
|
|
|
|
“Here, gimme the _chaw_, and you take the _plug_.”
|
|
|
|
All the streets and lanes was just mud; they warn't nothing else _but_
|
|
mud--mud as black as tar and nigh about a foot deep in some places,
|
|
and two or three inches deep in _all_ the places. The hogs loafed and
|
|
grunted around everywheres. You'd see a muddy sow and a litter of pigs
|
|
come lazying along the street and whollop herself right down in the way,
|
|
where folks had to walk around her, and she'd stretch out and shut her
|
|
eyes and wave her ears whilst the pigs was milking her, and look as
|
|
happy as if she was on salary. And pretty soon you'd hear a loafer
|
|
sing out, “Hi! _so_ boy! sick him, Tige!” and away the sow would go,
|
|
squealing most horrible, with a dog or two swinging to each ear, and
|
|
three or four dozen more a-coming; and then you would see all the
|
|
loafers get up and watch the thing out of sight, and laugh at the fun
|
|
and look grateful for the noise. Then they'd settle back again till
|
|
there was a dog fight. There couldn't anything wake them up all over,
|
|
and make them happy all over, like a dog fight--unless it might be
|
|
putting turpentine on a stray dog and setting fire to him, or tying a
|
|
tin pan to his tail and see him run himself to death.
|
|
|
|
On the river front some of the houses was sticking out over the bank,
|
|
and they was bowed and bent, and about ready to tumble in. The people
|
|
had moved out of them. The bank was caved away under one corner of some
|
|
others, and that corner was hanging over. People lived in them yet, but
|
|
it was dangersome, because sometimes a strip of land as wide as a house
|
|
caves in at a time. Sometimes a belt of land a quarter of a mile deep
|
|
will start in and cave along and cave along till it all caves into the
|
|
river in one summer. Such a town as that has to be always moving back,
|
|
and back, and back, because the river's always gnawing at it.
|
|
|
|
The nearer it got to noon that day the thicker and thicker was the
|
|
wagons and horses in the streets, and more coming all the time.
|
|
Families fetched their dinners with them from the country, and eat them
|
|
in the wagons. There was considerable whisky drinking going on, and I
|
|
seen three fights. By and by somebody sings out:
|
|
|
|
“Here comes old Boggs!--in from the country for his little old monthly
|
|
drunk; here he comes, boys!”
|
|
|
|
All the loafers looked glad; I reckoned they was used to having fun out
|
|
of Boggs. One of them says:
|
|
|
|
“Wonder who he's a-gwyne to chaw up this time. If he'd a-chawed up all
|
|
the men he's ben a-gwyne to chaw up in the last twenty year he'd have
|
|
considerable ruputation now.”
|
|
|
|
Another one says, “I wisht old Boggs 'd threaten me, 'cuz then I'd know
|
|
I warn't gwyne to die for a thousan' year.”
|
|
|
|
Boggs comes a-tearing along on his horse, whooping and yelling like an
|
|
Injun, and singing out:
|
|
|
|
“Cler the track, thar. I'm on the waw-path, and the price uv coffins is
|
|
a-gwyne to raise.”
|
|
|
|
He was drunk, and weaving about in his saddle; he was over fifty year
|
|
old, and had a very red face. Everybody yelled at him and laughed at
|
|
him and sassed him, and he sassed back, and said he'd attend to them and
|
|
lay them out in their regular turns, but he couldn't wait now because
|
|
he'd come to town to kill old Colonel Sherburn, and his motto was, “Meat
|
|
first, and spoon vittles to top off on.”
|
|
|
|
He see me, and rode up and says:
|
|
|
|
“Whar'd you come f'm, boy? You prepared to die?”
|
|
|
|
Then he rode on. I was scared, but a man says:
|
|
|
|
“He don't mean nothing; he's always a-carryin' on like that when he's
|
|
drunk. He's the best naturedest old fool in Arkansaw--never hurt nobody,
|
|
drunk nor sober.”
|
|
|
|
Boggs rode up before the biggest store in town, and bent his head down
|
|
so he could see under the curtain of the awning and yells:
|
|
|
|
“Come out here, Sherburn! Come out and meet the man you've swindled.
|
|
You're the houn' I'm after, and I'm a-gwyne to have you, too!”
|
|
|
|
And so he went on, calling Sherburn everything he could lay his tongue
|
|
to, and the whole street packed with people listening and laughing and
|
|
going on. By and by a proud-looking man about fifty-five--and he was a
|
|
heap the best dressed man in that town, too--steps out of the store, and
|
|
the crowd drops back on each side to let him come. He says to Boggs,
|
|
mighty ca'm and slow--he says:
|
|
|
|
“I'm tired of this, but I'll endure it till one o'clock. Till one
|
|
o'clock, mind--no longer. If you open your mouth against me only once
|
|
after that time you can't travel so far but I will find you.”
|
|
|
|
Then he turns and goes in. The crowd looked mighty sober; nobody
|
|
stirred, and there warn't no more laughing. Boggs rode off
|
|
blackguarding Sherburn as loud as he could yell, all down the street;
|
|
and pretty soon back he comes and stops before the store, still keeping
|
|
it up. Some men crowded around him and tried to get him to shut up,
|
|
but he wouldn't; they told him it would be one o'clock in about fifteen
|
|
minutes, and so he _must_ go home--he must go right away. But it didn't
|
|
do no good. He cussed away with all his might, and throwed his hat down
|
|
in the mud and rode over it, and pretty soon away he went a-raging down
|
|
the street again, with his gray hair a-flying. Everybody that could get
|
|
a chance at him tried their best to coax him off of his horse so they
|
|
could lock him up and get him sober; but it warn't no use--up the street
|
|
he would tear again, and give Sherburn another cussing. By and by
|
|
somebody says:
|
|
|
|
“Go for his daughter!--quick, go for his daughter; sometimes he'll listen
|
|
to her. If anybody can persuade him, she can.”
|
|
|
|
So somebody started on a run. I walked down street a ways and stopped.
|
|
In about five or ten minutes here comes Boggs again, but not on his
|
|
horse. He was a-reeling across the street towards me, bare-headed, with
|
|
a friend on both sides of him a-holt of his arms and hurrying him along.
|
|
He was quiet, and looked uneasy; and he warn't hanging back any, but was
|
|
doing some of the hurrying himself. Somebody sings out:
|
|
|
|
“Boggs!”
|
|
|
|
I looked over there to see who said it, and it was that Colonel
|
|
Sherburn. He was standing perfectly still in the street, and had a
|
|
pistol raised in his right hand--not aiming it, but holding it out with
|
|
the barrel tilted up towards the sky. The same second I see a young
|
|
girl coming on the run, and two men with her. Boggs and the men turned
|
|
round to see who called him, and when they see the pistol the men
|
|
jumped to one side, and the pistol-barrel come down slow and steady to
|
|
a level--both barrels cocked. Boggs throws up both of his hands and says,
|
|
“O Lord, don't shoot!” Bang! goes the first shot, and he staggers back,
|
|
clawing at the air--bang! goes the second one, and he tumbles backwards
|
|
on to the ground, heavy and solid, with his arms spread out. That young
|
|
girl screamed out and comes rushing, and down she throws herself on her
|
|
father, crying, and saying, “Oh, he's killed him, he's killed him!” The
|
|
crowd closed up around them, and shouldered and jammed one another, with
|
|
their necks stretched, trying to see, and people on the inside trying to
|
|
shove them back and shouting, “Back, back! give him air, give him air!”
|
|
|
|
Colonel Sherburn he tossed his pistol on to the ground, and turned
|
|
around on his heels and walked off.
|
|
|
|
They took Boggs to a little drug store, the crowd pressing around just
|
|
the same, and the whole town following, and I rushed and got a good
|
|
place at the window, where I was close to him and could see in. They
|
|
laid him on the floor and put one large Bible under his head, and opened
|
|
another one and spread it on his breast; but they tore open his shirt
|
|
first, and I seen where one of the bullets went in. He made about a
|
|
dozen long gasps, his breast lifting the Bible up when he drawed in his
|
|
breath, and letting it down again when he breathed it out--and after that
|
|
he laid still; he was dead. Then they pulled his daughter away from
|
|
him, screaming and crying, and took her off. She was about sixteen, and
|
|
very sweet and gentle looking, but awful pale and scared.
|
|
|
|
Well, pretty soon the whole town was there, squirming and scrouging and
|
|
pushing and shoving to get at the window and have a look, but people
|
|
that had the places wouldn't give them up, and folks behind them was
|
|
saying all the time, “Say, now, you've looked enough, you fellows;
|
|
'tain't right and 'tain't fair for you to stay thar all the time, and
|
|
never give nobody a chance; other folks has their rights as well as
|
|
you.”
|
|
|
|
There was considerable jawing back, so I slid out, thinking maybe
|
|
there was going to be trouble. The streets was full, and everybody was
|
|
excited. Everybody that seen the shooting was telling how it happened,
|
|
and there was a big crowd packed around each one of these fellows,
|
|
stretching their necks and listening. One long, lanky man, with long
|
|
hair and a big white fur stovepipe hat on the back of his head, and a
|
|
crooked-handled cane, marked out the places on the ground where Boggs
|
|
stood and where Sherburn stood, and the people following him around from
|
|
one place to t'other and watching everything he done, and bobbing their
|
|
heads to show they understood, and stooping a little and resting their
|
|
hands on their thighs to watch him mark the places on the ground with
|
|
his cane; and then he stood up straight and stiff where Sherburn had
|
|
stood, frowning and having his hat-brim down over his eyes, and sung
|
|
out, “Boggs!” and then fetched his cane down slow to a level, and says
|
|
“Bang!” staggered backwards, says “Bang!” again, and fell down flat on
|
|
his back. The people that had seen the thing said he done it perfect;
|
|
said it was just exactly the way it all happened. Then as much as a
|
|
dozen people got out their bottles and treated him.
|
|
|
|
Well, by and by somebody said Sherburn ought to be lynched. In about a
|
|
minute everybody was saying it; so away they went, mad and yelling, and
|
|
snatching down every clothes-line they come to to do the hanging with.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXII.
|
|
|
|
THEY swarmed up towards Sherburn's house, a-whooping and raging like
|
|
Injuns, and everything had to clear the way or get run over and tromped
|
|
to mush, and it was awful to see. Children was heeling it ahead of the
|
|
mob, screaming and trying to get out of the way; and every window along
|
|
the road was full of women's heads, and there was nigger boys in every
|
|
tree, and bucks and wenches looking over every fence; and as soon as the
|
|
mob would get nearly to them they would break and skaddle back out of
|
|
reach. Lots of the women and girls was crying and taking on, scared
|
|
most to death.
|
|
|
|
They swarmed up in front of Sherburn's palings as thick as they could
|
|
jam together, and you couldn't hear yourself think for the noise. It
|
|
was a little twenty-foot yard. Some sung out “Tear down the fence! tear
|
|
down the fence!” Then there was a racket of ripping and tearing and
|
|
smashing, and down she goes, and the front wall of the crowd begins to
|
|
roll in like a wave.
|
|
|
|
Just then Sherburn steps out on to the roof of his little front porch,
|
|
with a double-barrel gun in his hand, and takes his stand, perfectly
|
|
ca'm and deliberate, not saying a word. The racket stopped, and the
|
|
wave sucked back.
|
|
|
|
Sherburn never said a word--just stood there, looking down. The
|
|
stillness was awful creepy and uncomfortable. Sherburn run his eye slow
|
|
along the crowd; and wherever it struck the people tried a little to
|
|
out-gaze him, but they couldn't; they dropped their eyes and looked
|
|
sneaky. Then pretty soon Sherburn sort of laughed; not the pleasant
|
|
kind, but the kind that makes you feel like when you are eating bread
|
|
that's got sand in it.
|
|
|
|
Then he says, slow and scornful:
|
|
|
|
“The idea of _you_ lynching anybody! It's amusing. The idea of you
|
|
thinking you had pluck enough to lynch a _man_! Because you're brave
|
|
enough to tar and feather poor friendless cast-out women that come along
|
|
here, did that make you think you had grit enough to lay your hands on a
|
|
_man_? Why, a _man's_ safe in the hands of ten thousand of your kind--as
|
|
long as it's daytime and you're not behind him.
|
|
|
|
“Do I know you? I know you clear through. I was born and raised in the
|
|
South, and I've lived in the North; so I know the average all around.
|
|
The average man's a coward. In the North he lets anybody walk over him
|
|
that wants to, and goes home and prays for a humble spirit to bear it.
|
|
In the South one man all by himself, has stopped a stage full of men
|
|
in the daytime, and robbed the lot. Your newspapers call you a
|
|
brave people so much that you think you are braver than any other
|
|
people--whereas you're just _as_ brave, and no braver. Why don't your
|
|
juries hang murderers? Because they're afraid the man's friends will
|
|
shoot them in the back, in the dark--and it's just what they _would_ do.
|
|
|
|
“So they always acquit; and then a _man_ goes in the night, with a
|
|
hundred masked cowards at his back and lynches the rascal. Your mistake
|
|
is, that you didn't bring a man with you; that's one mistake, and the
|
|
other is that you didn't come in the dark and fetch your masks. You
|
|
brought _part_ of a man--Buck Harkness, there--and if you hadn't had him
|
|
to start you, you'd a taken it out in blowing.
|
|
|
|
“You didn't want to come. The average man don't like trouble and
|
|
danger. _You_ don't like trouble and danger. But if only _half_ a
|
|
man--like Buck Harkness, there--shouts 'Lynch him! lynch him!' you're
|
|
afraid to back down--afraid you'll be found out to be what you
|
|
are--_cowards_--and so you raise a yell, and hang yourselves on to that
|
|
half-a-man's coat-tail, and come raging up here, swearing what big
|
|
things you're going to do. The pitifulest thing out is a mob; that's
|
|
what an army is--a mob; they don't fight with courage that's born in
|
|
them, but with courage that's borrowed from their mass, and from their
|
|
officers. But a mob without any _man_ at the head of it is _beneath_
|
|
pitifulness. Now the thing for _you_ to do is to droop your tails and
|
|
go home and crawl in a hole. If any real lynching's going to be done it
|
|
will be done in the dark, Southern fashion; and when they come they'll
|
|
bring their masks, and fetch a _man_ along. Now _leave_--and take your
|
|
half-a-man with you”--tossing his gun up across his left arm and cocking
|
|
it when he says this.
|
|
|
|
The crowd washed back sudden, and then broke all apart, and went tearing
|
|
off every which way, and Buck Harkness he heeled it after them, looking
|
|
tolerable cheap. I could a stayed if I wanted to, but I didn't want to.
|
|
|
|
I went to the circus and loafed around the back side till the watchman
|
|
went by, and then dived in under the tent. I had my twenty-dollar gold
|
|
piece and some other money, but I reckoned I better save it, because
|
|
there ain't no telling how soon you are going to need it, away from
|
|
home and amongst strangers that way. You can't be too careful. I ain't
|
|
opposed to spending money on circuses when there ain't no other way, but
|
|
there ain't no use in _wasting_ it on them.
|
|
|
|
It was a real bully circus. It was the splendidest sight that ever was
|
|
when they all come riding in, two and two, a gentleman and lady, side
|
|
by side, the men just in their drawers and undershirts, and no shoes
|
|
nor stirrups, and resting their hands on their thighs easy and
|
|
comfortable--there must a been twenty of them--and every lady with a
|
|
lovely complexion, and perfectly beautiful, and looking just like a gang
|
|
of real sure-enough queens, and dressed in clothes that cost millions of
|
|
dollars, and just littered with diamonds. It was a powerful fine sight;
|
|
I never see anything so lovely. And then one by one they got up
|
|
and stood, and went a-weaving around the ring so gentle and wavy and
|
|
graceful, the men looking ever so tall and airy and straight, with their
|
|
heads bobbing and skimming along, away up there under the tent-roof, and
|
|
every lady's rose-leafy dress flapping soft and silky around her hips,
|
|
and she looking like the most loveliest parasol.
|
|
|
|
And then faster and faster they went, all of them dancing, first one
|
|
foot out in the air and then the other, the horses leaning more and
|
|
more, and the ringmaster going round and round the center-pole, cracking
|
|
his whip and shouting “Hi!--hi!” and the clown cracking jokes behind
|
|
him; and by and by all hands dropped the reins, and every lady put her
|
|
knuckles on her hips and every gentleman folded his arms, and then how
|
|
the horses did lean over and hump themselves! And so one after the
|
|
other they all skipped off into the ring, and made the sweetest bow I
|
|
ever see, and then scampered out, and everybody clapped their hands and
|
|
went just about wild.
|
|
|
|
Well, all through the circus they done the most astonishing things; and
|
|
all the time that clown carried on so it most killed the people. The
|
|
ringmaster couldn't ever say a word to him but he was back at him quick
|
|
as a wink with the funniest things a body ever said; and how he ever
|
|
_could_ think of so many of them, and so sudden and so pat, was what I
|
|
couldn't noway understand. Why, I couldn't a thought of them in a year.
|
|
And by and by a drunk man tried to get into the ring--said he wanted to
|
|
ride; said he could ride as well as anybody that ever was. They argued
|
|
and tried to keep him out, but he wouldn't listen, and the whole show
|
|
come to a standstill. Then the people begun to holler at him and make
|
|
fun of him, and that made him mad, and he begun to rip and tear; so that
|
|
stirred up the people, and a lot of men begun to pile down off of the
|
|
benches and swarm towards the ring, saying, “Knock him down! throw him
|
|
out!” and one or two women begun to scream. So, then, the ringmaster
|
|
he made a little speech, and said he hoped there wouldn't be no
|
|
disturbance, and if the man would promise he wouldn't make no more
|
|
trouble he would let him ride if he thought he could stay on the horse.
|
|
So everybody laughed and said all right, and the man got on. The minute
|
|
he was on, the horse begun to rip and tear and jump and cavort around,
|
|
with two circus men hanging on to his bridle trying to hold him, and the
|
|
drunk man hanging on to his neck, and his heels flying in the air every
|
|
jump, and the whole crowd of people standing up shouting and laughing
|
|
till tears rolled down. And at last, sure enough, all the circus men
|
|
could do, the horse broke loose, and away he went like the very nation,
|
|
round and round the ring, with that sot laying down on him and hanging
|
|
to his neck, with first one leg hanging most to the ground on one side,
|
|
and then t'other one on t'other side, and the people just crazy. It
|
|
warn't funny to me, though; I was all of a tremble to see his danger.
|
|
But pretty soon he struggled up astraddle and grabbed the bridle,
|
|
a-reeling this way and that; and the next minute he sprung up and
|
|
dropped the bridle and stood! and the horse a-going like a house afire
|
|
too. He just stood up there, a-sailing around as easy and comfortable
|
|
as if he warn't ever drunk in his life--and then he begun to pull off his
|
|
clothes and sling them. He shed them so thick they kind of clogged up
|
|
the air, and altogether he shed seventeen suits. And, then, there he
|
|
was, slim and handsome, and dressed the gaudiest and prettiest you
|
|
ever saw, and he lit into that horse with his whip and made him fairly
|
|
hum--and finally skipped off, and made his bow and danced off to
|
|
the dressing-room, and everybody just a-howling with pleasure and
|
|
astonishment.
|
|
|
|
Then the ringmaster he see how he had been fooled, and he _was_ the
|
|
sickest ringmaster you ever see, I reckon. Why, it was one of his own
|
|
men! He had got up that joke all out of his own head, and never let on
|
|
to nobody. Well, I felt sheepish enough to be took in so, but I wouldn't
|
|
a been in that ringmaster's place, not for a thousand dollars. I don't
|
|
know; there may be bullier circuses than what that one was, but I
|
|
never struck them yet. Anyways, it was plenty good enough for _me_; and
|
|
wherever I run across it, it can have all of _my_ custom every time.
|
|
|
|
Well, that night we had _our_ show; but there warn't only about twelve
|
|
people there--just enough to pay expenses. And they laughed all the
|
|
time, and that made the duke mad; and everybody left, anyway, before
|
|
the show was over, but one boy which was asleep. So the duke said these
|
|
Arkansaw lunkheads couldn't come up to Shakespeare; what they wanted
|
|
was low comedy--and maybe something ruther worse than low comedy, he
|
|
reckoned. He said he could size their style. So next morning he got
|
|
some big sheets of wrapping paper and some black paint, and drawed off
|
|
some handbills, and stuck them up all over the village. The bills said:
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXIII.
|
|
|
|
WELL, all day him and the king was hard at it, rigging up a stage and
|
|
a curtain and a row of candles for footlights; and that night the house
|
|
was jam full of men in no time. When the place couldn't hold no more,
|
|
the duke he quit tending door and went around the back way and come on
|
|
to the stage and stood up before the curtain and made a little speech,
|
|
and praised up this tragedy, and said it was the most thrillingest one
|
|
that ever was; and so he went on a-bragging about the tragedy, and about
|
|
Edmund Kean the Elder, which was to play the main principal part in it;
|
|
and at last when he'd got everybody's expectations up high enough, he
|
|
rolled up the curtain, and the next minute the king come a-prancing
|
|
out on all fours, naked; and he was painted all over,
|
|
ring-streaked-and-striped, all sorts of colors, as splendid as a
|
|
rainbow. And--but never mind the rest of his outfit; it was just wild,
|
|
but it was awful funny. The people most killed themselves laughing; and
|
|
when the king got done capering and capered off behind the scenes, they
|
|
roared and clapped and stormed and haw-hawed till he come back and done
|
|
it over again, and after that they made him do it another time. Well, it
|
|
would make a cow laugh to see the shines that old idiot cut.
|
|
|
|
Then the duke he lets the curtain down, and bows to the people, and says
|
|
the great tragedy will be performed only two nights more, on accounts of
|
|
pressing London engagements, where the seats is all sold already for it
|
|
in Drury Lane; and then he makes them another bow, and says if he has
|
|
succeeded in pleasing them and instructing them, he will be deeply
|
|
obleeged if they will mention it to their friends and get them to come
|
|
and see it.
|
|
|
|
Twenty people sings out:
|
|
|
|
“What, is it over? Is that _all_?”
|
|
|
|
The duke says yes. Then there was a fine time. Everybody sings
|
|
out, “Sold!” and rose up mad, and was a-going for that stage and them
|
|
tragedians. But a big, fine looking man jumps up on a bench and shouts:
|
|
|
|
“Hold on! Just a word, gentlemen.” They stopped to listen. “We are
|
|
sold--mighty badly sold. But we don't want to be the laughing stock of
|
|
this whole town, I reckon, and never hear the last of this thing as long
|
|
as we live. _No_. What we want is to go out of here quiet, and talk
|
|
this show up, and sell the _rest_ of the town! Then we'll all be in the
|
|
same boat. Ain't that sensible?” (“You bet it is!--the jedge is right!”
|
|
everybody sings out.) “All right, then--not a word about any sell. Go
|
|
along home, and advise everybody to come and see the tragedy.”
|
|
|
|
Next day you couldn't hear nothing around that town but how splendid
|
|
that show was. House was jammed again that night, and we sold this
|
|
crowd the same way. When me and the king and the duke got home to the
|
|
raft we all had a supper; and by and by, about midnight, they made Jim
|
|
and me back her out and float her down the middle of the river, and
|
|
fetch her in and hide her about two mile below town.
|
|
|
|
The third night the house was crammed again--and they warn't new-comers
|
|
this time, but people that was at the show the other two nights. I
|
|
stood by the duke at the door, and I see that every man that went in had
|
|
his pockets bulging, or something muffled up under his coat--and I see it
|
|
warn't no perfumery, neither, not by a long sight. I smelt sickly eggs
|
|
by the barrel, and rotten cabbages, and such things; and if I know the
|
|
signs of a dead cat being around, and I bet I do, there was sixty-four
|
|
of them went in. I shoved in there for a minute, but it was too various
|
|
for me; I couldn't stand it. Well, when the place couldn't hold no more
|
|
people the duke he give a fellow a quarter and told him to tend door
|
|
for him a minute, and then he started around for the stage door, I after
|
|
him; but the minute we turned the corner and was in the dark he says:
|
|
|
|
“Walk fast now till you get away from the houses, and then shin for the
|
|
raft like the dickens was after you!”
|
|
|
|
I done it, and he done the same. We struck the raft at the same time,
|
|
and in less than two seconds we was gliding down stream, all dark and
|
|
still, and edging towards the middle of the river, nobody saying a
|
|
word. I reckoned the poor king was in for a gaudy time of it with the
|
|
audience, but nothing of the sort; pretty soon he crawls out from under
|
|
the wigwam, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Well, how'd the old thing pan out this time, duke?” He hadn't been
|
|
up-town at all.
|
|
|
|
We never showed a light till we was about ten mile below the village.
|
|
Then we lit up and had a supper, and the king and the duke fairly
|
|
laughed their bones loose over the way they'd served them people. The
|
|
duke says:
|
|
|
|
“Greenhorns, flatheads! I knew the first house would keep mum and let
|
|
the rest of the town get roped in; and I knew they'd lay for us the
|
|
third night, and consider it was _their_ turn now. Well, it _is_ their
|
|
turn, and I'd give something to know how much they'd take for it. I
|
|
_would_ just like to know how they're putting in their opportunity.
|
|
They can turn it into a picnic if they want to--they brought plenty
|
|
provisions.”
|
|
|
|
Them rapscallions took in four hundred and sixty-five dollars in that
|
|
three nights. I never see money hauled in by the wagon-load like that
|
|
before. By and by, when they was asleep and snoring, Jim says:
|
|
|
|
“Don't it s'prise you de way dem kings carries on, Huck?”
|
|
|
|
“No,” I says, “it don't.”
|
|
|
|
“Why don't it, Huck?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, it don't, because it's in the breed. I reckon they're all
|
|
alike.”
|
|
|
|
“But, Huck, dese kings o' ourn is reglar rapscallions; dat's jist what
|
|
dey is; dey's reglar rapscallions.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, that's what I'm a-saying; all kings is mostly rapscallions, as
|
|
fur as I can make out.”
|
|
|
|
“Is dat so?”
|
|
|
|
“You read about them once--you'll see. Look at Henry the Eight; this 'n
|
|
's a Sunday-school Superintendent to _him_. And look at Charles Second,
|
|
and Louis Fourteen, and Louis Fifteen, and James Second, and Edward
|
|
Second, and Richard Third, and forty more; besides all them Saxon
|
|
heptarchies that used to rip around so in old times and raise Cain. My,
|
|
you ought to seen old Henry the Eight when he was in bloom. He _was_ a
|
|
blossom. He used to marry a new wife every day, and chop off her head
|
|
next morning. And he would do it just as indifferent as if he was
|
|
ordering up eggs. 'Fetch up Nell Gwynn,' he says. They fetch her up.
|
|
Next morning, 'Chop off her head!' And they chop it off. 'Fetch up
|
|
Jane Shore,' he says; and up she comes, Next morning, 'Chop off her
|
|
head'--and they chop it off. 'Ring up Fair Rosamun.' Fair Rosamun
|
|
answers the bell. Next morning, 'Chop off her head.' And he made every
|
|
one of them tell him a tale every night; and he kept that up till he had
|
|
hogged a thousand and one tales that way, and then he put them all in a
|
|
book, and called it Domesday Book--which was a good name and stated the
|
|
case. You don't know kings, Jim, but I know them; and this old rip
|
|
of ourn is one of the cleanest I've struck in history. Well, Henry he
|
|
takes a notion he wants to get up some trouble with this country. How
|
|
does he go at it--give notice?--give the country a show? No. All of a
|
|
sudden he heaves all the tea in Boston Harbor overboard, and whacks
|
|
out a declaration of independence, and dares them to come on. That was
|
|
_his_ style--he never give anybody a chance. He had suspicions of his
|
|
father, the Duke of Wellington. Well, what did he do? Ask him to show
|
|
up? No--drownded him in a butt of mamsey, like a cat. S'pose people
|
|
left money laying around where he was--what did he do? He collared it.
|
|
S'pose he contracted to do a thing, and you paid him, and didn't set
|
|
down there and see that he done it--what did he do? He always done the
|
|
other thing. S'pose he opened his mouth--what then? If he didn't shut it
|
|
up powerful quick he'd lose a lie every time. That's the kind of a bug
|
|
Henry was; and if we'd a had him along 'stead of our kings he'd a fooled
|
|
that town a heap worse than ourn done. I don't say that ourn is lambs,
|
|
because they ain't, when you come right down to the cold facts; but they
|
|
ain't nothing to _that_ old ram, anyway. All I say is, kings is kings,
|
|
and you got to make allowances. Take them all around, they're a mighty
|
|
ornery lot. It's the way they're raised.”
|
|
|
|
“But dis one do _smell_ so like de nation, Huck.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, they all do, Jim. We can't help the way a king smells; history
|
|
don't tell no way.”
|
|
|
|
“Now de duke, he's a tolerble likely man in some ways.”
|
|
|
|
“Yes, a duke's different. But not very different. This one's
|
|
a middling hard lot for a duke. When he's drunk there ain't no
|
|
near-sighted man could tell him from a king.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, anyways, I doan' hanker for no mo' un um, Huck. Dese is all I
|
|
kin stan'.”
|
|
|
|
“It's the way I feel, too, Jim. But we've got them on our hands, and we
|
|
got to remember what they are, and make allowances. Sometimes I wish we
|
|
could hear of a country that's out of kings.”
|
|
|
|
What was the use to tell Jim these warn't real kings and dukes? It
|
|
wouldn't a done no good; and, besides, it was just as I said: you
|
|
couldn't tell them from the real kind.
|
|
|
|
I went to sleep, and Jim didn't call me when it was my turn. He often
|
|
done that. When I waked up just at daybreak he was sitting there with
|
|
his head down betwixt his knees, moaning and mourning to himself. I
|
|
didn't take notice nor let on. I knowed what it was about. He was
|
|
thinking about his wife and his children, away up yonder, and he was low
|
|
and homesick; because he hadn't ever been away from home before in his
|
|
life; and I do believe he cared just as much for his people as white
|
|
folks does for their'n. It don't seem natural, but I reckon it's so.
|
|
He was often moaning and mourning that way nights, when he judged I
|
|
was asleep, and saying, “Po' little 'Lizabeth! po' little Johnny! it's
|
|
mighty hard; I spec' I ain't ever gwyne to see you no mo', no mo'!” He
|
|
was a mighty good nigger, Jim was.
|
|
|
|
But this time I somehow got to talking to him about his wife and young
|
|
ones; and by and by he says:
|
|
|
|
“What makes me feel so bad dis time 'uz bekase I hear sumpn over yonder
|
|
on de bank like a whack, er a slam, while ago, en it mine me er de time
|
|
I treat my little 'Lizabeth so ornery. She warn't on'y 'bout fo' year
|
|
ole, en she tuck de sk'yarlet fever, en had a powful rough spell; but
|
|
she got well, en one day she was a-stannin' aroun', en I says to her, I
|
|
says:
|
|
|
|
“'Shet de do'.'
|
|
|
|
“She never done it; jis' stood dah, kiner smilin' up at me. It make me
|
|
mad; en I says agin, mighty loud, I says:
|
|
|
|
“'Doan' you hear me? Shet de do'!'
|
|
|
|
“She jis stood de same way, kiner smilin' up. I was a-bilin'! I says:
|
|
|
|
“'I lay I _make_ you mine!'
|
|
|
|
“En wid dat I fetch' her a slap side de head dat sont her a-sprawlin'.
|
|
Den I went into de yuther room, en 'uz gone 'bout ten minutes; en when
|
|
I come back dah was dat do' a-stannin' open _yit_, en dat chile stannin'
|
|
mos' right in it, a-lookin' down and mournin', en de tears runnin' down.
|
|
My, but I _wuz_ mad! I was a-gwyne for de chile, but jis' den--it was a
|
|
do' dat open innerds--jis' den, 'long come de wind en slam it to, behine
|
|
de chile, ker-BLAM!--en my lan', de chile never move'! My breff mos'
|
|
hop outer me; en I feel so--so--I doan' know HOW I feel. I crope out,
|
|
all a-tremblin', en crope aroun' en open de do' easy en slow, en poke my
|
|
head in behine de chile, sof' en still, en all uv a sudden I says POW!
|
|
jis' as loud as I could yell. _She never budge!_ Oh, Huck, I bust out
|
|
a-cryin' en grab her up in my arms, en say, 'Oh, de po' little thing!
|
|
De Lord God Amighty fogive po' ole Jim, kaze he never gwyne to fogive
|
|
hisself as long's he live!' Oh, she was plumb deef en dumb, Huck, plumb
|
|
deef en dumb--en I'd ben a-treat'n her so!”
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXIV.
|
|
|
|
NEXT day, towards night, we laid up under a little willow towhead out in
|
|
the middle, where there was a village on each side of the river, and the
|
|
duke and the king begun to lay out a plan for working them towns. Jim
|
|
he spoke to the duke, and said he hoped it wouldn't take but a few
|
|
hours, because it got mighty heavy and tiresome to him when he had to
|
|
lay all day in the wigwam tied with the rope. You see, when we left him
|
|
all alone we had to tie him, because if anybody happened on to him all
|
|
by himself and not tied it wouldn't look much like he was a runaway
|
|
nigger, you know. So the duke said it _was_ kind of hard to have to lay
|
|
roped all day, and he'd cipher out some way to get around it.
|
|
|
|
He was uncommon bright, the duke was, and he soon struck it. He dressed
|
|
Jim up in King Lear's outfit--it was a long curtain-calico gown, and a
|
|
white horse-hair wig and whiskers; and then he took his theater paint
|
|
and painted Jim's face and hands and ears and neck all over a dead,
|
|
dull, solid blue, like a man that's been drownded nine days. Blamed if
|
|
he warn't the horriblest looking outrage I ever see. Then the duke took
|
|
and wrote out a sign on a shingle so:
|
|
|
|
Sick Arab--but harmless when not out of his head.
|
|
|
|
And he nailed that shingle to a lath, and stood the lath up four or five
|
|
foot in front of the wigwam. Jim was satisfied. He said it was a sight
|
|
better than lying tied a couple of years every day, and trembling all
|
|
over every time there was a sound. The duke told him to make himself
|
|
free and easy, and if anybody ever come meddling around, he must hop
|
|
out of the wigwam, and carry on a little, and fetch a howl or two like
|
|
a wild beast, and he reckoned they would light out and leave him alone.
|
|
Which was sound enough judgment; but you take the average man, and he
|
|
wouldn't wait for him to howl. Why, he didn't only look like he was
|
|
dead, he looked considerable more than that.
|
|
|
|
These rapscallions wanted to try the Nonesuch again, because there was
|
|
so much money in it, but they judged it wouldn't be safe, because maybe
|
|
the news might a worked along down by this time. They couldn't hit no
|
|
project that suited exactly; so at last the duke said he reckoned he'd
|
|
lay off and work his brains an hour or two and see if he couldn't put up
|
|
something on the Arkansaw village; and the king he allowed he would drop
|
|
over to t'other village without any plan, but just trust in Providence
|
|
to lead him the profitable way--meaning the devil, I reckon. We had all
|
|
bought store clothes where we stopped last; and now the king put his'n
|
|
on, and he told me to put mine on. I done it, of course. The king's
|
|
duds was all black, and he did look real swell and starchy. I never
|
|
knowed how clothes could change a body before. Why, before, he looked
|
|
like the orneriest old rip that ever was; but now, when he'd take off
|
|
his new white beaver and make a bow and do a smile, he looked that grand
|
|
and good and pious that you'd say he had walked right out of the ark,
|
|
and maybe was old Leviticus himself. Jim cleaned up the canoe, and I
|
|
got my paddle ready. There was a big steamboat laying at the shore away
|
|
up under the point, about three mile above the town--been there a couple
|
|
of hours, taking on freight. Says the king:
|
|
|
|
“Seein' how I'm dressed, I reckon maybe I better arrive down from St.
|
|
Louis or Cincinnati, or some other big place. Go for the steamboat,
|
|
Huckleberry; we'll come down to the village on her.”
|
|
|
|
I didn't have to be ordered twice to go and take a steamboat ride.
|
|
I fetched the shore a half a mile above the village, and then went
|
|
scooting along the bluff bank in the easy water. Pretty soon we come to
|
|
a nice innocent-looking young country jake setting on a log swabbing the
|
|
sweat off of his face, for it was powerful warm weather; and he had a
|
|
couple of big carpet-bags by him.
|
|
|
|
“Run her nose in shore,” says the king. I done it. “Wher' you bound
|
|
for, young man?”
|
|
|
|
“For the steamboat; going to Orleans.”
|
|
|
|
“Git aboard,” says the king. “Hold on a minute, my servant 'll he'p you
|
|
with them bags. Jump out and he'p the gentleman, Adolphus”--meaning me,
|
|
I see.
|
|
|
|
I done so, and then we all three started on again. The young chap was
|
|
mighty thankful; said it was tough work toting his baggage such weather.
|
|
He asked the king where he was going, and the king told him he'd come
|
|
down the river and landed at the other village this morning, and now he
|
|
was going up a few mile to see an old friend on a farm up there. The
|
|
young fellow says:
|
|
|
|
“When I first see you I says to myself, 'It's Mr. Wilks, sure, and he
|
|
come mighty near getting here in time.' But then I says again, 'No, I
|
|
reckon it ain't him, or else he wouldn't be paddling up the river.' You
|
|
_ain't_ him, are you?”
|
|
|
|
“No, my name's Blodgett--Elexander Blodgett--_Reverend_ Elexander
|
|
Blodgett, I s'pose I must say, as I'm one o' the Lord's poor servants.
|
|
But still I'm jist as able to be sorry for Mr. Wilks for not arriving
|
|
in time, all the same, if he's missed anything by it--which I hope he
|
|
hasn't.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, he don't miss any property by it, because he'll get that all
|
|
right; but he's missed seeing his brother Peter die--which he mayn't
|
|
mind, nobody can tell as to that--but his brother would a give anything
|
|
in this world to see _him_ before he died; never talked about nothing
|
|
else all these three weeks; hadn't seen him since they was boys
|
|
together--and hadn't ever seen his brother William at all--that's the deef
|
|
and dumb one--William ain't more than thirty or thirty-five. Peter and
|
|
George were the only ones that come out here; George was the married
|
|
brother; him and his wife both died last year. Harvey and William's the
|
|
only ones that's left now; and, as I was saying, they haven't got here
|
|
in time.”
|
|
|
|
“Did anybody send 'em word?”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, yes; a month or two ago, when Peter was first took; because Peter
|
|
said then that he sorter felt like he warn't going to get well this
|
|
time. You see, he was pretty old, and George's g'yirls was too young to
|
|
be much company for him, except Mary Jane, the red-headed one; and so he
|
|
was kinder lonesome after George and his wife died, and didn't seem
|
|
to care much to live. He most desperately wanted to see Harvey--and
|
|
William, too, for that matter--because he was one of them kind that can't
|
|
bear to make a will. He left a letter behind for Harvey, and said he'd
|
|
told in it where his money was hid, and how he wanted the rest of the
|
|
property divided up so George's g'yirls would be all right--for George
|
|
didn't leave nothing. And that letter was all they could get him to put
|
|
a pen to.”
|
|
|
|
“Why do you reckon Harvey don't come? Wher' does he live?”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, he lives in England--Sheffield--preaches there--hasn't ever been in
|
|
this country. He hasn't had any too much time--and besides he mightn't a
|
|
got the letter at all, you know.”
|
|
|
|
“Too bad, too bad he couldn't a lived to see his brothers, poor soul.
|
|
You going to Orleans, you say?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes, but that ain't only a part of it. I'm going in a ship, next
|
|
Wednesday, for Ryo Janeero, where my uncle lives.”
|
|
|
|
“It's a pretty long journey. But it'll be lovely; wisht I was a-going.
|
|
Is Mary Jane the oldest? How old is the others?”
|
|
|
|
“Mary Jane's nineteen, Susan's fifteen, and Joanna's about
|
|
fourteen--that's the one that gives herself to good works and has a
|
|
hare-lip.”
|
|
|
|
“Poor things! to be left alone in the cold world so.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, they could be worse off. Old Peter had friends, and they
|
|
ain't going to let them come to no harm. There's Hobson, the Babtis'
|
|
preacher; and Deacon Lot Hovey, and Ben Rucker, and Abner Shackleford,
|
|
and Levi Bell, the lawyer; and Dr. Robinson, and their wives, and the
|
|
widow Bartley, and--well, there's a lot of them; but these are the ones
|
|
that Peter was thickest with, and used to write about sometimes, when
|
|
he wrote home; so Harvey 'll know where to look for friends when he gets
|
|
here.”
|
|
|
|
Well, the old man went on asking questions till he just fairly emptied
|
|
that young fellow. Blamed if he didn't inquire about everybody and
|
|
everything in that blessed town, and all about the Wilkses; and about
|
|
Peter's business--which was a tanner; and about George's--which was a
|
|
carpenter; and about Harvey's--which was a dissentering minister; and so
|
|
on, and so on. Then he says:
|
|
|
|
“What did you want to walk all the way up to the steamboat for?”
|
|
|
|
“Because she's a big Orleans boat, and I was afeard she mightn't stop
|
|
there. When they're deep they won't stop for a hail. A Cincinnati boat
|
|
will, but this is a St. Louis one.”
|
|
|
|
“Was Peter Wilks well off?”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, yes, pretty well off. He had houses and land, and it's reckoned he
|
|
left three or four thousand in cash hid up som'ers.”
|
|
|
|
“When did you say he died?”
|
|
|
|
“I didn't say, but it was last night.”
|
|
|
|
“Funeral to-morrow, likely?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes, 'bout the middle of the day.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, it's all terrible sad; but we've all got to go, one time or
|
|
another. So what we want to do is to be prepared; then we're all right.”
|
|
|
|
“Yes, sir, it's the best way. Ma used to always say that.”
|
|
|
|
When we struck the boat she was about done loading, and pretty soon she
|
|
got off. The king never said nothing about going aboard, so I lost
|
|
my ride, after all. When the boat was gone the king made me paddle up
|
|
another mile to a lonesome place, and then he got ashore and says:
|
|
|
|
“Now hustle back, right off, and fetch the duke up here, and the new
|
|
carpet-bags. And if he's gone over to t'other side, go over there and
|
|
git him. And tell him to git himself up regardless. Shove along, now.”
|
|
|
|
I see what _he_ was up to; but I never said nothing, of course. When
|
|
I got back with the duke we hid the canoe, and then they set down on a
|
|
log, and the king told him everything, just like the young fellow had
|
|
said it--every last word of it. And all the time he was a-doing it he
|
|
tried to talk like an Englishman; and he done it pretty well, too, for
|
|
a slouch. I can't imitate him, and so I ain't a-going to try to; but he
|
|
really done it pretty good. Then he says:
|
|
|
|
“How are you on the deef and dumb, Bilgewater?”
|
|
|
|
The duke said, leave him alone for that; said he had played a deef
|
|
and dumb person on the histronic boards. So then they waited for a
|
|
steamboat.
|
|
|
|
About the middle of the afternoon a couple of little boats come along,
|
|
but they didn't come from high enough up the river; but at last there
|
|
was a big one, and they hailed her. She sent out her yawl, and we went
|
|
aboard, and she was from Cincinnati; and when they found we only wanted
|
|
to go four or five mile they was booming mad, and gave us a cussing, and
|
|
said they wouldn't land us. But the king was ca'm. He says:
|
|
|
|
“If gentlemen kin afford to pay a dollar a mile apiece to be took on and
|
|
put off in a yawl, a steamboat kin afford to carry 'em, can't it?”
|
|
|
|
So they softened down and said it was all right; and when we got to the
|
|
village they yawled us ashore. About two dozen men flocked down when
|
|
they see the yawl a-coming, and when the king says:
|
|
|
|
“Kin any of you gentlemen tell me wher' Mr. Peter Wilks lives?” they
|
|
give a glance at one another, and nodded their heads, as much as to say,
|
|
“What d' I tell you?” Then one of them says, kind of soft and gentle:
|
|
|
|
“I'm sorry sir, but the best we can do is to tell you where he _did_
|
|
live yesterday evening.”
|
|
|
|
Sudden as winking the ornery old cretur went an to smash, and fell up
|
|
against the man, and put his chin on his shoulder, and cried down his
|
|
back, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Alas, alas, our poor brother--gone, and we never got to see him; oh,
|
|
it's too, too hard!”
|
|
|
|
Then he turns around, blubbering, and makes a lot of idiotic signs to
|
|
the duke on his hands, and blamed if he didn't drop a carpet-bag and
|
|
bust out a-crying. If they warn't the beatenest lot, them two frauds,
|
|
that ever I struck.
|
|
|
|
Well, the men gathered around and sympathized with them, and said all
|
|
sorts of kind things to them, and carried their carpet-bags up the hill
|
|
for them, and let them lean on them and cry, and told the king all about
|
|
his brother's last moments, and the king he told it all over again on
|
|
his hands to the duke, and both of them took on about that dead tanner
|
|
like they'd lost the twelve disciples. Well, if ever I struck anything
|
|
like it, I'm a nigger. It was enough to make a body ashamed of the human
|
|
race.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXV.
|
|
|
|
THE news was all over town in two minutes, and you could see the people
|
|
tearing down on the run from every which way, some of them putting on
|
|
their coats as they come. Pretty soon we was in the middle of a crowd,
|
|
and the noise of the tramping was like a soldier march. The windows and
|
|
dooryards was full; and every minute somebody would say, over a fence:
|
|
|
|
“Is it _them_?”
|
|
|
|
And somebody trotting along with the gang would answer back and say:
|
|
|
|
“You bet it is.”
|
|
|
|
When we got to the house the street in front of it was packed, and the
|
|
three girls was standing in the door. Mary Jane _was_ red-headed, but
|
|
that don't make no difference, she was most awful beautiful, and her
|
|
face and her eyes was all lit up like glory, she was so glad her uncles
|
|
was come. The king he spread his arms, and Mary Jane she jumped for
|
|
them, and the hare-lip jumped for the duke, and there they had it!
|
|
Everybody most, leastways women, cried for joy to see them meet again
|
|
at last and have such good times.
|
|
|
|
Then the king he hunched the duke private--I see him do it--and then he
|
|
looked around and see the coffin, over in the corner on two chairs; so
|
|
then him and the duke, with a hand across each other's shoulder, and
|
|
t'other hand to their eyes, walked slow and solemn over there, everybody
|
|
dropping back to give them room, and all the talk and noise stopping,
|
|
people saying “Sh!” and all the men taking their hats off and drooping
|
|
their heads, so you could a heard a pin fall. And when they got there
|
|
they bent over and looked in the coffin, and took one sight, and then
|
|
they bust out a-crying so you could a heard them to Orleans, most; and
|
|
then they put their arms around each other's necks, and hung their chins
|
|
over each other's shoulders; and then for three minutes, or maybe four,
|
|
I never see two men leak the way they done. And, mind you, everybody
|
|
was doing the same; and the place was that damp I never see anything
|
|
like it. Then one of them got on one side of the coffin, and t'other on
|
|
t'other side, and they kneeled down and rested their foreheads on the
|
|
coffin, and let on to pray all to themselves. Well, when it come
|
|
to that it worked the crowd like you never see anything like it, and
|
|
everybody broke down and went to sobbing right out loud--the poor girls,
|
|
too; and every woman, nearly, went up to the girls, without saying a
|
|
word, and kissed them, solemn, on the forehead, and then put their hand
|
|
on their head, and looked up towards the sky, with the tears running
|
|
down, and then busted out and went off sobbing and swabbing, and give
|
|
the next woman a show. I never see anything so disgusting.
|
|
|
|
Well, by and by the king he gets up and comes forward a little, and
|
|
works himself up and slobbers out a speech, all full of tears and
|
|
flapdoodle about its being a sore trial for him and his poor brother
|
|
to lose the diseased, and to miss seeing diseased alive after the long
|
|
journey of four thousand mile, but it's a trial that's sweetened and
|
|
sanctified to us by this dear sympathy and these holy tears, and so he
|
|
thanks them out of his heart and out of his brother's heart, because out
|
|
of their mouths they can't, words being too weak and cold, and all that
|
|
kind of rot and slush, till it was just sickening; and then he blubbers
|
|
out a pious goody-goody Amen, and turns himself loose and goes to crying
|
|
fit to bust.
|
|
|
|
And the minute the words were out of his mouth somebody over in the
|
|
crowd struck up the doxolojer, and everybody joined in with all their
|
|
might, and it just warmed you up and made you feel as good as church
|
|
letting out. Music is a good thing; and after all that soul-butter and
|
|
hogwash I never see it freshen up things so, and sound so honest and
|
|
bully.
|
|
|
|
Then the king begins to work his jaw again, and says how him and his
|
|
nieces would be glad if a few of the main principal friends of the
|
|
family would take supper here with them this evening, and help set up
|
|
with the ashes of the diseased; and says if his poor brother laying
|
|
yonder could speak he knows who he would name, for they was names that
|
|
was very dear to him, and mentioned often in his letters; and so he will
|
|
name the same, to wit, as follows, vizz.:--Rev. Mr. Hobson, and Deacon
|
|
Lot Hovey, and Mr. Ben Rucker, and Abner Shackleford, and Levi Bell, and
|
|
Dr. Robinson, and their wives, and the widow Bartley.
|
|
|
|
Rev. Hobson and Dr. Robinson was down to the end of the town a-hunting
|
|
together--that is, I mean the doctor was shipping a sick man to t'other
|
|
world, and the preacher was pinting him right. Lawyer Bell was away up
|
|
to Louisville on business. But the rest was on hand, and so they all
|
|
come and shook hands with the king and thanked him and talked to him;
|
|
and then they shook hands with the duke and didn't say nothing, but just
|
|
kept a-smiling and bobbing their heads like a passel of sapheads whilst
|
|
he made all sorts of signs with his hands and said “Goo-goo--goo-goo-goo”
|
|
all the time, like a baby that can't talk.
|
|
|
|
So the king he blattered along, and managed to inquire about pretty
|
|
much everybody and dog in town, by his name, and mentioned all sorts
|
|
of little things that happened one time or another in the town, or to
|
|
George's family, or to Peter. And he always let on that Peter wrote him
|
|
the things; but that was a lie: he got every blessed one of them out of
|
|
that young flathead that we canoed up to the steamboat.
|
|
|
|
Then Mary Jane she fetched the letter her father left behind, and the
|
|
king he read it out loud and cried over it. It give the dwelling-house
|
|
and three thousand dollars, gold, to the girls; and it give the tanyard
|
|
(which was doing a good business), along with some other houses and
|
|
land (worth about seven thousand), and three thousand dollars in gold
|
|
to Harvey and William, and told where the six thousand cash was hid down
|
|
cellar. So these two frauds said they'd go and fetch it up, and have
|
|
everything square and above-board; and told me to come with a candle.
|
|
We shut the cellar door behind us, and when they found the bag
|
|
they spilt it out on the floor, and it was a lovely sight, all them
|
|
yaller-boys. My, the way the king's eyes did shine! He slaps the duke
|
|
on the shoulder and says:
|
|
|
|
“Oh, _this_ ain't bully nor noth'n! Oh, no, I reckon not! Why,
|
|
_bully_, it beats the Nonesuch, _don't_ it?”
|
|
|
|
The duke allowed it did. They pawed the yaller-boys, and sifted them
|
|
through their fingers and let them jingle down on the floor; and the
|
|
king says:
|
|
|
|
“It ain't no use talkin'; bein' brothers to a rich dead man and
|
|
representatives of furrin heirs that's got left is the line for you and
|
|
me, Bilge. Thish yer comes of trust'n to Providence. It's the best
|
|
way, in the long run. I've tried 'em all, and ther' ain't no better
|
|
way.”
|
|
|
|
Most everybody would a been satisfied with the pile, and took it on
|
|
trust; but no, they must count it. So they counts it, and it comes out
|
|
four hundred and fifteen dollars short. Says the king:
|
|
|
|
“Dern him, I wonder what he done with that four hundred and fifteen
|
|
dollars?”
|
|
|
|
They worried over that awhile, and ransacked all around for it. Then
|
|
the duke says:
|
|
|
|
“Well, he was a pretty sick man, and likely he made a mistake--I reckon
|
|
that's the way of it. The best way's to let it go, and keep still about
|
|
it. We can spare it.”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, shucks, yes, we can _spare_ it. I don't k'yer noth'n 'bout
|
|
that--it's the _count_ I'm thinkin' about. We want to be awful square
|
|
and open and above-board here, you know. We want to lug this h-yer
|
|
money up stairs and count it before everybody--then ther' ain't noth'n
|
|
suspicious. But when the dead man says ther's six thous'n dollars, you
|
|
know, we don't want to--”
|
|
|
|
“Hold on,” says the duke. “Le's make up the deffisit,” and he begun to
|
|
haul out yaller-boys out of his pocket.
|
|
|
|
“It's a most amaz'n' good idea, duke--you _have_ got a rattlin' clever
|
|
head on you,” says the king. “Blest if the old Nonesuch ain't a heppin'
|
|
us out agin,” and _he_ begun to haul out yaller-jackets and stack them
|
|
up.
|
|
|
|
It most busted them, but they made up the six thousand clean and clear.
|
|
|
|
“Say,” says the duke, “I got another idea. Le's go up stairs and count
|
|
this money, and then take and _give it to the girls_.”
|
|
|
|
“Good land, duke, lemme hug you! It's the most dazzling idea 'at ever a
|
|
man struck. You have cert'nly got the most astonishin' head I ever see.
|
|
Oh, this is the boss dodge, ther' ain't no mistake 'bout it. Let 'em
|
|
fetch along their suspicions now if they want to--this 'll lay 'em out.”
|
|
|
|
When we got up-stairs everybody gethered around the table, and the king
|
|
he counted it and stacked it up, three hundred dollars in a pile--twenty
|
|
elegant little piles. Everybody looked hungry at it, and licked their
|
|
chops. Then they raked it into the bag again, and I see the king begin
|
|
to swell himself up for another speech. He says:
|
|
|
|
“Friends all, my poor brother that lays yonder has done generous by
|
|
them that's left behind in the vale of sorrers. He has done generous by
|
|
these yer poor little lambs that he loved and sheltered, and that's left
|
|
fatherless and motherless. Yes, and we that knowed him knows that he
|
|
would a done _more_ generous by 'em if he hadn't ben afeard o' woundin'
|
|
his dear William and me. Now, _wouldn't_ he? Ther' ain't no question
|
|
'bout it in _my_ mind. Well, then, what kind o' brothers would it be
|
|
that 'd stand in his way at sech a time? And what kind o' uncles would
|
|
it be that 'd rob--yes, _rob_--sech poor sweet lambs as these 'at he loved
|
|
so at sech a time? If I know William--and I _think_ I do--he--well, I'll
|
|
jest ask him.” He turns around and begins to make a lot of signs to
|
|
the duke with his hands, and the duke he looks at him stupid and
|
|
leather-headed a while; then all of a sudden he seems to catch his
|
|
meaning, and jumps for the king, goo-gooing with all his might for joy,
|
|
and hugs him about fifteen times before he lets up. Then the king says,
|
|
“I knowed it; I reckon _that 'll_ convince anybody the way _he_ feels
|
|
about it. Here, Mary Jane, Susan, Joanner, take the money--take it
|
|
_all_. It's the gift of him that lays yonder, cold but joyful.”
|
|
|
|
Mary Jane she went for him, Susan and the hare-lip went for the
|
|
duke, and then such another hugging and kissing I never see yet. And
|
|
everybody crowded up with the tears in their eyes, and most shook the
|
|
hands off of them frauds, saying all the time:
|
|
|
|
“You _dear_ good souls!--how _lovely_!--how _could_ you!”
|
|
|
|
Well, then, pretty soon all hands got to talking about the diseased
|
|
again, and how good he was, and what a loss he was, and all that; and
|
|
before long a big iron-jawed man worked himself in there from outside,
|
|
and stood a-listening and looking, and not saying anything; and nobody
|
|
saying anything to him either, because the king was talking and they was
|
|
all busy listening. The king was saying--in the middle of something he'd
|
|
started in on--
|
|
|
|
“--they bein' partickler friends o' the diseased. That's why they're
|
|
invited here this evenin'; but tomorrow we want _all_ to come--everybody;
|
|
for he respected everybody, he liked everybody, and so it's fitten that
|
|
his funeral orgies sh'd be public.”
|
|
|
|
And so he went a-mooning on and on, liking to hear himself talk, and
|
|
every little while he fetched in his funeral orgies again, till the duke
|
|
he couldn't stand it no more; so he writes on a little scrap of paper,
|
|
“_Obsequies_, you old fool,” and folds it up, and goes to goo-gooing and
|
|
reaching it over people's heads to him. The king he reads it and puts
|
|
it in his pocket, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Poor William, afflicted as he is, his _heart's_ aluz right. Asks me
|
|
to invite everybody to come to the funeral--wants me to make 'em all
|
|
welcome. But he needn't a worried--it was jest what I was at.”
|
|
|
|
Then he weaves along again, perfectly ca'm, and goes to dropping in his
|
|
funeral orgies again every now and then, just like he done before. And
|
|
when he done it the third time he says:
|
|
|
|
“I say orgies, not because it's the common term, because it
|
|
ain't--obsequies bein' the common term--but because orgies is the right
|
|
term. Obsequies ain't used in England no more now--it's gone out. We
|
|
say orgies now in England. Orgies is better, because it means the thing
|
|
you're after more exact. It's a word that's made up out'n the Greek
|
|
_orgo_, outside, open, abroad; and the Hebrew _jeesum_, to plant, cover
|
|
up; hence in_ter._ So, you see, funeral orgies is an open er public
|
|
funeral.”
|
|
|
|
He was the _worst_ I ever struck. Well, the iron-jawed man he laughed
|
|
right in his face. Everybody was shocked. Everybody says, “Why,
|
|
_doctor_!” and Abner Shackleford says:
|
|
|
|
“Why, Robinson, hain't you heard the news? This is Harvey Wilks.”
|
|
|
|
The king he smiled eager, and shoved out his flapper, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Is it my poor brother's dear good friend and physician? I--”
|
|
|
|
“Keep your hands off of me!” says the doctor. “_You_ talk like an
|
|
Englishman, _don't_ you? It's the worst imitation I ever heard. _You_
|
|
Peter Wilks's brother! You're a fraud, that's what you are!”
|
|
|
|
Well, how they all took on! They crowded around the doctor and tried to
|
|
quiet him down, and tried to explain to him and tell him how Harvey 'd
|
|
showed in forty ways that he _was_ Harvey, and knowed everybody by name,
|
|
and the names of the very dogs, and begged and _begged_ him not to hurt
|
|
Harvey's feelings and the poor girl's feelings, and all that. But it
|
|
warn't no use; he stormed right along, and said any man that pretended
|
|
to be an Englishman and couldn't imitate the lingo no better than what
|
|
he did was a fraud and a liar. The poor girls was hanging to the king
|
|
and crying; and all of a sudden the doctor ups and turns on _them_. He
|
|
says:
|
|
|
|
“I was your father's friend, and I'm your friend; and I warn you as a
|
|
friend, and an honest one that wants to protect you and keep you out of
|
|
harm and trouble, to turn your backs on that scoundrel and have nothing
|
|
to do with him, the ignorant tramp, with his idiotic Greek and Hebrew,
|
|
as he calls it. He is the thinnest kind of an impostor--has come here
|
|
with a lot of empty names and facts which he picked up somewheres, and
|
|
you take them for _proofs_, and are helped to fool yourselves by these
|
|
foolish friends here, who ought to know better. Mary Jane Wilks, you
|
|
know me for your friend, and for your unselfish friend, too. Now listen
|
|
to me; turn this pitiful rascal out--I _beg_ you to do it. Will you?”
|
|
|
|
Mary Jane straightened herself up, and my, but she was handsome! She
|
|
says:
|
|
|
|
“_Here_ is my answer.” She hove up the bag of money and put it in the
|
|
king's hands, and says, “Take this six thousand dollars, and invest for
|
|
me and my sisters any way you want to, and don't give us no receipt for
|
|
it.”
|
|
|
|
Then she put her arm around the king on one side, and Susan and the
|
|
hare-lip done the same on the other. Everybody clapped their hands and
|
|
stomped on the floor like a perfect storm, whilst the king held up his
|
|
head and smiled proud. The doctor says:
|
|
|
|
“All right; I wash _my_ hands of the matter. But I warn you all that a
|
|
time 's coming when you're going to feel sick whenever you think of this
|
|
day.” And away he went.
|
|
|
|
“All right, doctor,” says the king, kinder mocking him; “we'll try and
|
|
get 'em to send for you;” which made them all laugh, and they said it
|
|
was a prime good hit.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXVI.
|
|
|
|
WELL, when they was all gone the king he asks Mary Jane how they was off
|
|
for spare rooms, and she said she had one spare room, which would do for
|
|
Uncle William, and she'd give her own room to Uncle Harvey, which was
|
|
a little bigger, and she would turn into the room with her sisters and
|
|
sleep on a cot; and up garret was a little cubby, with a pallet in it.
|
|
The king said the cubby would do for his valley--meaning me.
|
|
|
|
So Mary Jane took us up, and she showed them their rooms, which was
|
|
plain but nice. She said she'd have her frocks and a lot of other traps
|
|
took out of her room if they was in Uncle Harvey's way, but he said
|
|
they warn't. The frocks was hung along the wall, and before them was
|
|
a curtain made out of calico that hung down to the floor. There was an
|
|
old hair trunk in one corner, and a guitar-box in another, and all sorts
|
|
of little knickknacks and jimcracks around, like girls brisken up a room
|
|
with. The king said it was all the more homely and more pleasanter for
|
|
these fixings, and so don't disturb them. The duke's room was pretty
|
|
small, but plenty good enough, and so was my cubby.
|
|
|
|
That night they had a big supper, and all them men and women was there,
|
|
and I stood behind the king and the duke's chairs and waited on them,
|
|
and the niggers waited on the rest. Mary Jane she set at the head of
|
|
the table, with Susan alongside of her, and said how bad the biscuits
|
|
was, and how mean the preserves was, and how ornery and tough the fried
|
|
chickens was--and all that kind of rot, the way women always do for to
|
|
force out compliments; and the people all knowed everything was tiptop,
|
|
and said so--said “How _do_ you get biscuits to brown so nice?” and
|
|
“Where, for the land's sake, _did_ you get these amaz'n pickles?” and
|
|
all that kind of humbug talky-talk, just the way people always does at a
|
|
supper, you know.
|
|
|
|
And when it was all done me and the hare-lip had supper in the kitchen
|
|
off of the leavings, whilst the others was helping the niggers clean up
|
|
the things. The hare-lip she got to pumping me about England, and blest
|
|
if I didn't think the ice was getting mighty thin sometimes. She says:
|
|
|
|
“Did you ever see the king?”
|
|
|
|
“Who? William Fourth? Well, I bet I have--he goes to our church.” I
|
|
knowed he was dead years ago, but I never let on. So when I says he
|
|
goes to our church, she says:
|
|
|
|
“What--regular?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes--regular. His pew's right over opposite ourn--on t'other side the
|
|
pulpit.”
|
|
|
|
“I thought he lived in London?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, he does. Where _would_ he live?”
|
|
|
|
“But I thought _you_ lived in Sheffield?”
|
|
|
|
I see I was up a stump. I had to let on to get choked with a chicken
|
|
bone, so as to get time to think how to get down again. Then I says:
|
|
|
|
“I mean he goes to our church regular when he's in Sheffield. That's
|
|
only in the summer time, when he comes there to take the sea baths.”
|
|
|
|
“Why, how you talk--Sheffield ain't on the sea.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, who said it was?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, you did.”
|
|
|
|
“I _didn't_ nuther.”
|
|
|
|
“You did!”
|
|
|
|
“I didn't.”
|
|
|
|
“You did.”
|
|
|
|
“I never said nothing of the kind.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, what _did_ you say, then?”
|
|
|
|
“Said he come to take the sea _baths_--that's what I said.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, then, how's he going to take the sea baths if it ain't on the
|
|
sea?”
|
|
|
|
“Looky here,” I says; “did you ever see any Congress-water?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, did you have to go to Congress to get it?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, no.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, neither does William Fourth have to go to the sea to get a sea
|
|
bath.”
|
|
|
|
“How does he get it, then?”
|
|
|
|
“Gets it the way people down here gets Congress-water--in barrels. There
|
|
in the palace at Sheffield they've got furnaces, and he wants his water
|
|
hot. They can't bile that amount of water away off there at the sea.
|
|
They haven't got no conveniences for it.”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, I see, now. You might a said that in the first place and saved
|
|
time.”
|
|
|
|
When she said that I see I was out of the woods again, and so I was
|
|
comfortable and glad. Next, she says:
|
|
|
|
“Do you go to church, too?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes--regular.”
|
|
|
|
“Where do you set?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, in our pew.”
|
|
|
|
“_Whose_ pew?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, _ourn_--your Uncle Harvey's.”
|
|
|
|
“His'n? What does _he_ want with a pew?”
|
|
|
|
“Wants it to set in. What did you _reckon_ he wanted with it?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, I thought he'd be in the pulpit.”
|
|
|
|
Rot him, I forgot he was a preacher. I see I was up a stump again, so I
|
|
played another chicken bone and got another think. Then I says:
|
|
|
|
“Blame it, do you suppose there ain't but one preacher to a church?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, what do they want with more?”
|
|
|
|
“What!--to preach before a king? I never did see such a girl as you.
|
|
They don't have no less than seventeen.”
|
|
|
|
“Seventeen! My land! Why, I wouldn't set out such a string as that,
|
|
not if I _never_ got to glory. It must take 'em a week.”
|
|
|
|
“Shucks, they don't _all_ of 'em preach the same day--only _one_ of 'em.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, then, what does the rest of 'em do?”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, nothing much. Loll around, pass the plate--and one thing or
|
|
another. But mainly they don't do nothing.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, then, what are they _for_?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, they're for _style_. Don't you know nothing?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, I don't _want_ to know no such foolishness as that. How is
|
|
servants treated in England? Do they treat 'em better 'n we treat our
|
|
niggers?”
|
|
|
|
“_No_! A servant ain't nobody there. They treat them worse than dogs.”
|
|
|
|
“Don't they give 'em holidays, the way we do, Christmas and New Year's
|
|
week, and Fourth of July?”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, just listen! A body could tell _you_ hain't ever been to England
|
|
by that. Why, Hare-l--why, Joanna, they never see a holiday from year's
|
|
end to year's end; never go to the circus, nor theater, nor nigger
|
|
shows, nor nowheres.”
|
|
|
|
“Nor church?”
|
|
|
|
“Nor church.”
|
|
|
|
“But _you_ always went to church.”
|
|
|
|
Well, I was gone up again. I forgot I was the old man's servant. But
|
|
next minute I whirled in on a kind of an explanation how a valley was
|
|
different from a common servant and _had_ to go to church whether he
|
|
wanted to or not, and set with the family, on account of its being the
|
|
law. But I didn't do it pretty good, and when I got done I see she
|
|
warn't satisfied. She says:
|
|
|
|
“Honest injun, now, hain't you been telling me a lot of lies?”
|
|
|
|
“Honest injun,” says I.
|
|
|
|
“None of it at all?”
|
|
|
|
“None of it at all. Not a lie in it,” says I.
|
|
|
|
“Lay your hand on this book and say it.”
|
|
|
|
I see it warn't nothing but a dictionary, so I laid my hand on it and
|
|
said it. So then she looked a little better satisfied, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Well, then, I'll believe some of it; but I hope to gracious if I'll
|
|
believe the rest.”
|
|
|
|
“What is it you won't believe, Joe?” says Mary Jane, stepping in with
|
|
Susan behind her. “It ain't right nor kind for you to talk so to him,
|
|
and him a stranger and so far from his people. How would you like to be
|
|
treated so?”
|
|
|
|
“That's always your way, Maim--always sailing in to help somebody before
|
|
they're hurt. I hain't done nothing to him. He's told some stretchers,
|
|
I reckon, and I said I wouldn't swallow it all; and that's every bit
|
|
and grain I _did_ say. I reckon he can stand a little thing like that,
|
|
can't he?”
|
|
|
|
“I don't care whether 'twas little or whether 'twas big; he's here in
|
|
our house and a stranger, and it wasn't good of you to say it. If you
|
|
was in his place it would make you feel ashamed; and so you oughtn't to
|
|
say a thing to another person that will make _them_ feel ashamed.”
|
|
|
|
“Why, Mam, he said--”
|
|
|
|
“It don't make no difference what he _said_--that ain't the thing. The
|
|
thing is for you to treat him _kind_, and not be saying things to make
|
|
him remember he ain't in his own country and amongst his own folks.”
|
|
|
|
I says to myself, _this_ is a girl that I'm letting that old reptile rob
|
|
her of her money!
|
|
|
|
Then Susan _she_ waltzed in; and if you'll believe me, she did give
|
|
Hare-lip hark from the tomb!
|
|
|
|
Says I to myself, and this is _another_ one that I'm letting him rob her
|
|
of her money!
|
|
|
|
Then Mary Jane she took another inning, and went in sweet and lovely
|
|
again--which was her way; but when she got done there warn't hardly
|
|
anything left o' poor Hare-lip. So she hollered.
|
|
|
|
“All right, then,” says the other girls; “you just ask his pardon.”
|
|
|
|
She done it, too; and she done it beautiful. She done it so beautiful
|
|
it was good to hear; and I wished I could tell her a thousand lies, so
|
|
she could do it again.
|
|
|
|
I says to myself, this is _another_ one that I'm letting him rob her of
|
|
her money. And when she got through they all jest laid theirselves
|
|
out to make me feel at home and know I was amongst friends. I felt so
|
|
ornery and low down and mean that I says to myself, my mind's made up;
|
|
I'll hive that money for them or bust.
|
|
|
|
So then I lit out--for bed, I said, meaning some time or another. When
|
|
I got by myself I went to thinking the thing over. I says to myself,
|
|
shall I go to that doctor, private, and blow on these frauds? No--that
|
|
won't do. He might tell who told him; then the king and the duke would
|
|
make it warm for me. Shall I go, private, and tell Mary Jane? No--I
|
|
dasn't do it. Her face would give them a hint, sure; they've got the
|
|
money, and they'd slide right out and get away with it. If she was to
|
|
fetch in help I'd get mixed up in the business before it was done with,
|
|
I judge. No; there ain't no good way but one. I got to steal that
|
|
money, somehow; and I got to steal it some way that they won't suspicion
|
|
that I done it. They've got a good thing here, and they ain't a-going
|
|
to leave till they've played this family and this town for all they're
|
|
worth, so I'll find a chance time enough. I'll steal it and hide it; and
|
|
by and by, when I'm away down the river, I'll write a letter and tell
|
|
Mary Jane where it's hid. But I better hive it tonight if I can,
|
|
because the doctor maybe hasn't let up as much as he lets on he has; he
|
|
might scare them out of here yet.
|
|
|
|
So, thinks I, I'll go and search them rooms. Upstairs the hall was
|
|
dark, but I found the duke's room, and started to paw around it with
|
|
my hands; but I recollected it wouldn't be much like the king to let
|
|
anybody else take care of that money but his own self; so then I went to
|
|
his room and begun to paw around there. But I see I couldn't do nothing
|
|
without a candle, and I dasn't light one, of course. So I judged I'd
|
|
got to do the other thing--lay for them and eavesdrop. About that time
|
|
I hears their footsteps coming, and was going to skip under the bed; I
|
|
reached for it, but it wasn't where I thought it would be; but I touched
|
|
the curtain that hid Mary Jane's frocks, so I jumped in behind that and
|
|
snuggled in amongst the gowns, and stood there perfectly still.
|
|
|
|
They come in and shut the door; and the first thing the duke done was to
|
|
get down and look under the bed. Then I was glad I hadn't found the bed
|
|
when I wanted it. And yet, you know, it's kind of natural to hide under
|
|
the bed when you are up to anything private. They sets down then, and
|
|
the king says:
|
|
|
|
“Well, what is it? And cut it middlin' short, because it's better for
|
|
us to be down there a-whoopin' up the mournin' than up here givin' 'em a
|
|
chance to talk us over.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, this is it, Capet. I ain't easy; I ain't comfortable. That
|
|
doctor lays on my mind. I wanted to know your plans. I've got a
|
|
notion, and I think it's a sound one.”
|
|
|
|
“What is it, duke?”
|
|
|
|
“That we better glide out of this before three in the morning, and clip
|
|
it down the river with what we've got. Specially, seeing we got it so
|
|
easy--_given_ back to us, flung at our heads, as you may say, when of
|
|
course we allowed to have to steal it back. I'm for knocking off and
|
|
lighting out.”
|
|
|
|
That made me feel pretty bad. About an hour or two ago it would a been
|
|
a little different, but now it made me feel bad and disappointed, The
|
|
king rips out and says:
|
|
|
|
“What! And not sell out the rest o' the property? March off like
|
|
a passel of fools and leave eight or nine thous'n' dollars' worth o'
|
|
property layin' around jest sufferin' to be scooped in?--and all good,
|
|
salable stuff, too.”
|
|
|
|
The duke he grumbled; said the bag of gold was enough, and he didn't
|
|
want to go no deeper--didn't want to rob a lot of orphans of _everything_
|
|
they had.
|
|
|
|
“Why, how you talk!” says the king. “We sha'n't rob 'em of nothing at
|
|
all but jest this money. The people that _buys_ the property is the
|
|
suff'rers; because as soon 's it's found out 'at we didn't own it--which
|
|
won't be long after we've slid--the sale won't be valid, and it 'll all
|
|
go back to the estate. These yer orphans 'll git their house back agin,
|
|
and that's enough for _them_; they're young and spry, and k'n easy
|
|
earn a livin'. _they_ ain't a-goin to suffer. Why, jest think--there's
|
|
thous'n's and thous'n's that ain't nigh so well off. Bless you, _they_
|
|
ain't got noth'n' to complain of.”
|
|
|
|
Well, the king he talked him blind; so at last he give in, and said all
|
|
right, but said he believed it was blamed foolishness to stay, and that
|
|
doctor hanging over them. But the king says:
|
|
|
|
“Cuss the doctor! What do we k'yer for _him_? Hain't we got all the
|
|
fools in town on our side? And ain't that a big enough majority in any
|
|
town?”
|
|
|
|
So they got ready to go down stairs again. The duke says:
|
|
|
|
“I don't think we put that money in a good place.”
|
|
|
|
That cheered me up. I'd begun to think I warn't going to get a hint of
|
|
no kind to help me. The king says:
|
|
|
|
“Why?”
|
|
|
|
“Because Mary Jane 'll be in mourning from this out; and first you know
|
|
the nigger that does up the rooms will get an order to box these duds
|
|
up and put 'em away; and do you reckon a nigger can run across money and
|
|
not borrow some of it?”
|
|
|
|
“Your head's level agin, duke,” says the king; and he comes a-fumbling
|
|
under the curtain two or three foot from where I was. I stuck tight to
|
|
the wall and kept mighty still, though quivery; and I wondered what them
|
|
fellows would say to me if they catched me; and I tried to think what
|
|
I'd better do if they did catch me. But the king he got the bag before
|
|
I could think more than about a half a thought, and he never suspicioned
|
|
I was around. They took and shoved the bag through a rip in the straw
|
|
tick that was under the feather-bed, and crammed it in a foot or two
|
|
amongst the straw and said it was all right now, because a nigger only
|
|
makes up the feather-bed, and don't turn over the straw tick only about
|
|
twice a year, and so it warn't in no danger of getting stole now.
|
|
|
|
But I knowed better. I had it out of there before they was half-way
|
|
down stairs. I groped along up to my cubby, and hid it there till I
|
|
could get a chance to do better. I judged I better hide it outside
|
|
of the house somewheres, because if they missed it they would give the
|
|
house a good ransacking: I knowed that very well. Then I turned in,
|
|
with my clothes all on; but I couldn't a gone to sleep if I'd a wanted
|
|
to, I was in such a sweat to get through with the business. By and by I
|
|
heard the king and the duke come up; so I rolled off my pallet and laid
|
|
with my chin at the top of my ladder, and waited to see if anything was
|
|
going to happen. But nothing did.
|
|
|
|
So I held on till all the late sounds had quit and the early ones hadn't
|
|
begun yet; and then I slipped down the ladder.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXVII.
|
|
|
|
I crept to their doors and listened; they was snoring. So I tiptoed
|
|
along, and got down stairs all right. There warn't a sound anywheres.
|
|
I peeped through a crack of the dining-room door, and see the men that
|
|
was watching the corpse all sound asleep on their chairs. The door
|
|
was open into the parlor, where the corpse was laying, and there was a
|
|
candle in both rooms. I passed along, and the parlor door was open; but
|
|
I see there warn't nobody in there but the remainders of Peter; so I
|
|
shoved on by; but the front door was locked, and the key wasn't there.
|
|
Just then I heard somebody coming down the stairs, back behind me. I
|
|
run in the parlor and took a swift look around, and the only place I
|
|
see to hide the bag was in the coffin. The lid was shoved along about
|
|
a foot, showing the dead man's face down in there, with a wet cloth over
|
|
it, and his shroud on. I tucked the money-bag in under the lid, just
|
|
down beyond where his hands was crossed, which made me creep, they was
|
|
so cold, and then I run back across the room and in behind the door.
|
|
|
|
The person coming was Mary Jane. She went to the coffin, very soft, and
|
|
kneeled down and looked in; then she put up her handkerchief, and I see
|
|
she begun to cry, though I couldn't hear her, and her back was to me. I
|
|
slid out, and as I passed the dining-room I thought I'd make sure them
|
|
watchers hadn't seen me; so I looked through the crack, and everything
|
|
was all right. They hadn't stirred.
|
|
|
|
I slipped up to bed, feeling ruther blue, on accounts of the thing
|
|
playing out that way after I had took so much trouble and run so much
|
|
resk about it. Says I, if it could stay where it is, all right; because
|
|
when we get down the river a hundred mile or two I could write back to
|
|
Mary Jane, and she could dig him up again and get it; but that ain't the
|
|
thing that's going to happen; the thing that's going to happen is, the
|
|
money 'll be found when they come to screw on the lid. Then the king
|
|
'll get it again, and it 'll be a long day before he gives anybody
|
|
another chance to smouch it from him. Of course I _wanted_ to slide
|
|
down and get it out of there, but I dasn't try it. Every minute it was
|
|
getting earlier now, and pretty soon some of them watchers would begin
|
|
to stir, and I might get catched--catched with six thousand dollars in my
|
|
hands that nobody hadn't hired me to take care of. I don't wish to be
|
|
mixed up in no such business as that, I says to myself.
|
|
|
|
When I got down stairs in the morning the parlor was shut up, and the
|
|
watchers was gone. There warn't nobody around but the family and the
|
|
widow Bartley and our tribe. I watched their faces to see if anything
|
|
had been happening, but I couldn't tell.
|
|
|
|
Towards the middle of the day the undertaker come with his man, and they
|
|
set the coffin in the middle of the room on a couple of chairs, and then
|
|
set all our chairs in rows, and borrowed more from the neighbors till
|
|
the hall and the parlor and the dining-room was full. I see the coffin
|
|
lid was the way it was before, but I dasn't go to look in under it, with
|
|
folks around.
|
|
|
|
Then the people begun to flock in, and the beats and the girls took
|
|
seats in the front row at the head of the coffin, and for a half an hour
|
|
the people filed around slow, in single rank, and looked down at the
|
|
dead man's face a minute, and some dropped in a tear, and it was
|
|
all very still and solemn, only the girls and the beats holding
|
|
handkerchiefs to their eyes and keeping their heads bent, and sobbing a
|
|
little. There warn't no other sound but the scraping of the feet on
|
|
the floor and blowing noses--because people always blows them more at a
|
|
funeral than they do at other places except church.
|
|
|
|
When the place was packed full the undertaker he slid around in his
|
|
black gloves with his softy soothering ways, putting on the last
|
|
touches, and getting people and things all ship-shape and comfortable,
|
|
and making no more sound than a cat. He never spoke; he moved people
|
|
around, he squeezed in late ones, he opened up passageways, and done
|
|
it with nods, and signs with his hands. Then he took his place over
|
|
against the wall. He was the softest, glidingest, stealthiest man I ever
|
|
see; and there warn't no more smile to him than there is to a ham.
|
|
|
|
They had borrowed a melodeum--a sick one; and when everything was ready
|
|
a young woman set down and worked it, and it was pretty skreeky and
|
|
colicky, and everybody joined in and sung, and Peter was the only one
|
|
that had a good thing, according to my notion. Then the Reverend Hobson
|
|
opened up, slow and solemn, and begun to talk; and straight off the most
|
|
outrageous row busted out in the cellar a body ever heard; it was only
|
|
one dog, but he made a most powerful racket, and he kept it up right
|
|
along; the parson he had to stand there, over the coffin, and wait--you
|
|
couldn't hear yourself think. It was right down awkward, and nobody
|
|
didn't seem to know what to do. But pretty soon they see that
|
|
long-legged undertaker make a sign to the preacher as much as to say,
|
|
“Don't you worry--just depend on me.” Then he stooped down and begun
|
|
to glide along the wall, just his shoulders showing over the people's
|
|
heads. So he glided along, and the powwow and racket getting more and
|
|
more outrageous all the time; and at last, when he had gone around two
|
|
sides of the room, he disappears down cellar. Then in about two seconds
|
|
we heard a whack, and the dog he finished up with a most amazing howl or
|
|
two, and then everything was dead still, and the parson begun his solemn
|
|
talk where he left off. In a minute or two here comes this undertaker's
|
|
back and shoulders gliding along the wall again; and so he glided and
|
|
glided around three sides of the room, and then rose up, and shaded his
|
|
mouth with his hands, and stretched his neck out towards the preacher,
|
|
over the people's heads, and says, in a kind of a coarse whisper, “_He
|
|
had a rat_!” Then he drooped down and glided along the wall again to
|
|
his place. You could see it was a great satisfaction to the people,
|
|
because naturally they wanted to know. A little thing like that don't
|
|
cost nothing, and it's just the little things that makes a man to be
|
|
looked up to and liked. There warn't no more popular man in town than
|
|
what that undertaker was.
|
|
|
|
Well, the funeral sermon was very good, but pison long and tiresome; and
|
|
then the king he shoved in and got off some of his usual rubbage, and
|
|
at last the job was through, and the undertaker begun to sneak up on the
|
|
coffin with his screw-driver. I was in a sweat then, and watched him
|
|
pretty keen. But he never meddled at all; just slid the lid along as
|
|
soft as mush, and screwed it down tight and fast. So there I was! I
|
|
didn't know whether the money was in there or not. So, says I, s'pose
|
|
somebody has hogged that bag on the sly?--now how do I know whether
|
|
to write to Mary Jane or not? S'pose she dug him up and didn't find
|
|
nothing, what would she think of me? Blame it, I says, I might get
|
|
hunted up and jailed; I'd better lay low and keep dark, and not write at
|
|
all; the thing's awful mixed now; trying to better it, I've worsened it
|
|
a hundred times, and I wish to goodness I'd just let it alone, dad fetch
|
|
the whole business!
|
|
|
|
They buried him, and we come back home, and I went to watching faces
|
|
again--I couldn't help it, and I couldn't rest easy. But nothing come of
|
|
it; the faces didn't tell me nothing.
|
|
|
|
The king he visited around in the evening, and sweetened everybody up,
|
|
and made himself ever so friendly; and he give out the idea that his
|
|
congregation over in England would be in a sweat about him, so he must
|
|
hurry and settle up the estate right away and leave for home. He was
|
|
very sorry he was so pushed, and so was everybody; they wished he could
|
|
stay longer, but they said they could see it couldn't be done. And he
|
|
said of course him and William would take the girls home with them; and
|
|
that pleased everybody too, because then the girls would be well fixed
|
|
and amongst their own relations; and it pleased the girls, too--tickled
|
|
them so they clean forgot they ever had a trouble in the world; and told
|
|
him to sell out as quick as he wanted to, they would be ready. Them
|
|
poor things was that glad and happy it made my heart ache to see them
|
|
getting fooled and lied to so, but I didn't see no safe way for me to
|
|
chip in and change the general tune.
|
|
|
|
Well, blamed if the king didn't bill the house and the niggers and all
|
|
the property for auction straight off--sale two days after the funeral;
|
|
but anybody could buy private beforehand if they wanted to.
|
|
|
|
So the next day after the funeral, along about noon-time, the girls' joy
|
|
got the first jolt. A couple of nigger traders come along, and the king
|
|
sold them the niggers reasonable, for three-day drafts as they called
|
|
it, and away they went, the two sons up the river to Memphis, and their
|
|
mother down the river to Orleans. I thought them poor girls and them
|
|
niggers would break their hearts for grief; they cried around each
|
|
other, and took on so it most made me down sick to see it. The girls
|
|
said they hadn't ever dreamed of seeing the family separated or sold
|
|
away from the town. I can't ever get it out of my memory, the sight of
|
|
them poor miserable girls and niggers hanging around each other's necks
|
|
and crying; and I reckon I couldn't a stood it all, but would a had
|
|
to bust out and tell on our gang if I hadn't knowed the sale warn't no
|
|
account and the niggers would be back home in a week or two.
|
|
|
|
The thing made a big stir in the town, too, and a good many come out
|
|
flatfooted and said it was scandalous to separate the mother and the
|
|
children that way. It injured the frauds some; but the old fool he
|
|
bulled right along, spite of all the duke could say or do, and I tell
|
|
you the duke was powerful uneasy.
|
|
|
|
Next day was auction day. About broad day in the morning the king and
|
|
the duke come up in the garret and woke me up, and I see by their look
|
|
that there was trouble. The king says:
|
|
|
|
“Was you in my room night before last?”
|
|
|
|
“No, your majesty”--which was the way I always called him when nobody but
|
|
our gang warn't around.
|
|
|
|
“Was you in there yisterday er last night?”
|
|
|
|
“No, your majesty.”
|
|
|
|
“Honor bright, now--no lies.”
|
|
|
|
“Honor bright, your majesty, I'm telling you the truth. I hain't been
|
|
a-near your room since Miss Mary Jane took you and the duke and showed
|
|
it to you.”
|
|
|
|
The duke says:
|
|
|
|
“Have you seen anybody else go in there?”
|
|
|
|
“No, your grace, not as I remember, I believe.”
|
|
|
|
“Stop and think.”
|
|
|
|
I studied awhile and see my chance; then I says:
|
|
|
|
“Well, I see the niggers go in there several times.”
|
|
|
|
Both of them gave a little jump, and looked like they hadn't ever
|
|
expected it, and then like they _had_. Then the duke says:
|
|
|
|
“What, all of them?”
|
|
|
|
“No--leastways, not all at once--that is, I don't think I ever see them
|
|
all come _out_ at once but just one time.”
|
|
|
|
“Hello! When was that?”
|
|
|
|
“It was the day we had the funeral. In the morning. It warn't early,
|
|
because I overslept. I was just starting down the ladder, and I see
|
|
them.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, go on, _go_ on! What did they do? How'd they act?”
|
|
|
|
“They didn't do nothing. And they didn't act anyway much, as fur as I
|
|
see. They tiptoed away; so I seen, easy enough, that they'd shoved in
|
|
there to do up your majesty's room, or something, s'posing you was up;
|
|
and found you _warn't_ up, and so they was hoping to slide out of the
|
|
way of trouble without waking you up, if they hadn't already waked you
|
|
up.”
|
|
|
|
“Great guns, _this_ is a go!” says the king; and both of them looked
|
|
pretty sick and tolerable silly. They stood there a-thinking and
|
|
scratching their heads a minute, and the duke he bust into a kind of a
|
|
little raspy chuckle, and says:
|
|
|
|
“It does beat all how neat the niggers played their hand. They let on
|
|
to be _sorry_ they was going out of this region! And I believed they
|
|
_was_ sorry, and so did you, and so did everybody. Don't ever tell _me_
|
|
any more that a nigger ain't got any histrionic talent. Why, the way
|
|
they played that thing it would fool _anybody_. In my opinion, there's
|
|
a fortune in 'em. If I had capital and a theater, I wouldn't want a
|
|
better lay-out than that--and here we've gone and sold 'em for a song.
|
|
Yes, and ain't privileged to sing the song yet. Say, where _is_ that
|
|
song--that draft?”
|
|
|
|
“In the bank for to be collected. Where _would_ it be?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, _that's_ all right then, thank goodness.”
|
|
|
|
Says I, kind of timid-like:
|
|
|
|
“Is something gone wrong?”
|
|
|
|
The king whirls on me and rips out:
|
|
|
|
“None o' your business! You keep your head shet, and mind y'r own
|
|
affairs--if you got any. Long as you're in this town don't you forgit
|
|
_that_--you hear?” Then he says to the duke, “We got to jest swaller it
|
|
and say noth'n': mum's the word for _us_.”
|
|
|
|
As they was starting down the ladder the duke he chuckles again, and
|
|
says:
|
|
|
|
“Quick sales _and_ small profits! It's a good business--yes.”
|
|
|
|
The king snarls around on him and says:
|
|
|
|
“I was trying to do for the best in sellin' 'em out so quick. If the
|
|
profits has turned out to be none, lackin' considable, and none to
|
|
carry, is it my fault any more'n it's yourn?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, _they'd_ be in this house yet and we _wouldn't_ if I could a got
|
|
my advice listened to.”
|
|
|
|
The king sassed back as much as was safe for him, and then swapped
|
|
around and lit into _me_ again. He give me down the banks for not
|
|
coming and _telling_ him I see the niggers come out of his room acting
|
|
that way--said any fool would a _knowed_ something was up. And then
|
|
waltzed in and cussed _himself_ awhile, and said it all come of him not
|
|
laying late and taking his natural rest that morning, and he'd be
|
|
blamed if he'd ever do it again. So they went off a-jawing; and I felt
|
|
dreadful glad I'd worked it all off on to the niggers, and yet hadn't
|
|
done the niggers no harm by it.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXVIII.
|
|
|
|
BY and by it was getting-up time. So I come down the ladder and started
|
|
for down-stairs; but as I come to the girls' room the door was open, and
|
|
I see Mary Jane setting by her old hair trunk, which was open and she'd
|
|
been packing things in it--getting ready to go to England. But she
|
|
had stopped now with a folded gown in her lap, and had her face in her
|
|
hands, crying. I felt awful bad to see it; of course anybody would. I
|
|
went in there and says:
|
|
|
|
“Miss Mary Jane, you can't a-bear to see people in trouble, and I
|
|
can't--most always. Tell me about it.”
|
|
|
|
So she done it. And it was the niggers--I just expected it. She said
|
|
the beautiful trip to England was most about spoiled for her; she didn't
|
|
know _how_ she was ever going to be happy there, knowing the mother and
|
|
the children warn't ever going to see each other no more--and then busted
|
|
out bitterer than ever, and flung up her hands, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Oh, dear, dear, to think they ain't _ever_ going to see each other any
|
|
more!”
|
|
|
|
“But they _will_--and inside of two weeks--and I _know_ it!” says I.
|
|
|
|
Laws, it was out before I could think! And before I could budge she
|
|
throws her arms around my neck and told me to say it _again_, say it
|
|
_again_, say it _again_!
|
|
|
|
I see I had spoke too sudden and said too much, and was in a close
|
|
place. I asked her to let me think a minute; and she set there, very
|
|
impatient and excited and handsome, but looking kind of happy and
|
|
eased-up, like a person that's had a tooth pulled out. So I went to
|
|
studying it out. I says to myself, I reckon a body that ups and tells
|
|
the truth when he is in a tight place is taking considerable many resks,
|
|
though I ain't had no experience, and can't say for certain; but it
|
|
looks so to me, anyway; and yet here's a case where I'm blest if it
|
|
don't look to me like the truth is better and actuly _safer_ than a lie.
|
|
I must lay it by in my mind, and think it over some time or other, it's
|
|
so kind of strange and unregular. I never see nothing like it. Well, I
|
|
says to myself at last, I'm a-going to chance it; I'll up and tell the
|
|
truth this time, though it does seem most like setting down on a kag of
|
|
powder and touching it off just to see where you'll go to. Then I says:
|
|
|
|
“Miss Mary Jane, is there any place out of town a little ways where you
|
|
could go and stay three or four days?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes; Mr. Lothrop's. Why?”
|
|
|
|
“Never mind why yet. If I'll tell you how I know the niggers will see
|
|
each other again inside of two weeks--here in this house--and _prove_ how
|
|
I know it--will you go to Mr. Lothrop's and stay four days?”
|
|
|
|
“Four days!” she says; “I'll stay a year!”
|
|
|
|
“All right,” I says, “I don't want nothing more out of _you_ than just
|
|
your word--I druther have it than another man's kiss-the-Bible.” She
|
|
smiled and reddened up very sweet, and I says, “If you don't mind it,
|
|
I'll shut the door--and bolt it.”
|
|
|
|
Then I come back and set down again, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Don't you holler. Just set still and take it like a man. I got to
|
|
tell the truth, and you want to brace up, Miss Mary, because it's a
|
|
bad kind, and going to be hard to take, but there ain't no help for
|
|
it. These uncles of yourn ain't no uncles at all; they're a couple of
|
|
frauds--regular dead-beats. There, now we're over the worst of it, you
|
|
can stand the rest middling easy.”
|
|
|
|
It jolted her up like everything, of course; but I was over the shoal
|
|
water now, so I went right along, her eyes a-blazing higher and higher
|
|
all the time, and told her every blame thing, from where we first struck
|
|
that young fool going up to the steamboat, clear through to where she
|
|
flung herself on to the king's breast at the front door and he kissed
|
|
her sixteen or seventeen times--and then up she jumps, with her face
|
|
afire like sunset, and says:
|
|
|
|
“The brute! Come, don't waste a minute--not a _second_--we'll have them
|
|
tarred and feathered, and flung in the river!”
|
|
|
|
Says I:
|
|
|
|
“Cert'nly. But do you mean _before_ you go to Mr. Lothrop's, or--”
|
|
|
|
“Oh,” she says, “what am I _thinking_ about!” she says, and set right
|
|
down again. “Don't mind what I said--please don't--you _won't,_ now,
|
|
_will_ you?” Laying her silky hand on mine in that kind of a way that
|
|
I said I would die first. “I never thought, I was so stirred up,” she
|
|
says; “now go on, and I won't do so any more. You tell me what to do,
|
|
and whatever you say I'll do it.”
|
|
|
|
“Well,” I says, “it's a rough gang, them two frauds, and I'm fixed so
|
|
I got to travel with them a while longer, whether I want to or not--I
|
|
druther not tell you why; and if you was to blow on them this town would
|
|
get me out of their claws, and I'd be all right; but there'd be another
|
|
person that you don't know about who'd be in big trouble. Well, we
|
|
got to save _him_, hain't we? Of course. Well, then, we won't blow on
|
|
them.”
|
|
|
|
Saying them words put a good idea in my head. I see how maybe I could
|
|
get me and Jim rid of the frauds; get them jailed here, and then leave.
|
|
But I didn't want to run the raft in the daytime without anybody aboard
|
|
to answer questions but me; so I didn't want the plan to begin working
|
|
till pretty late to-night. I says:
|
|
|
|
“Miss Mary Jane, I'll tell you what we'll do, and you won't have to stay
|
|
at Mr. Lothrop's so long, nuther. How fur is it?”
|
|
|
|
“A little short of four miles--right out in the country, back here.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, that 'll answer. Now you go along out there, and lay low
|
|
till nine or half-past to-night, and then get them to fetch you home
|
|
again--tell them you've thought of something. If you get here before
|
|
eleven put a candle in this window, and if I don't turn up wait _till_
|
|
eleven, and _then_ if I don't turn up it means I'm gone, and out of the
|
|
way, and safe. Then you come out and spread the news around, and get
|
|
these beats jailed.”
|
|
|
|
“Good,” she says, “I'll do it.”
|
|
|
|
“And if it just happens so that I don't get away, but get took up along
|
|
with them, you must up and say I told you the whole thing beforehand,
|
|
and you must stand by me all you can.”
|
|
|
|
“Stand by you! indeed I will. They sha'n't touch a hair of your head!”
|
|
she says, and I see her nostrils spread and her eyes snap when she said
|
|
it, too.
|
|
|
|
“If I get away I sha'n't be here,” I says, “to prove these rapscallions
|
|
ain't your uncles, and I couldn't do it if I _was_ here. I could swear
|
|
they was beats and bummers, that's all, though that's worth something.
|
|
Well, there's others can do that better than what I can, and they're
|
|
people that ain't going to be doubted as quick as I'd be. I'll tell you
|
|
how to find them. Gimme a pencil and a piece of paper. There--'Royal
|
|
Nonesuch, Bricksville.' Put it away, and don't lose it. When the
|
|
court wants to find out something about these two, let them send up to
|
|
Bricksville and say they've got the men that played the Royal Nonesuch,
|
|
and ask for some witnesses--why, you'll have that entire town down here
|
|
before you can hardly wink, Miss Mary. And they'll come a-biling, too.”
|
|
|
|
I judged we had got everything fixed about right now. So I says:
|
|
|
|
“Just let the auction go right along, and don't worry. Nobody don't
|
|
have to pay for the things they buy till a whole day after the auction
|
|
on accounts of the short notice, and they ain't going out of this till
|
|
they get that money; and the way we've fixed it the sale ain't going to
|
|
count, and they ain't going to get no money. It's just like the way
|
|
it was with the niggers--it warn't no sale, and the niggers will be
|
|
back before long. Why, they can't collect the money for the _niggers_
|
|
yet--they're in the worst kind of a fix, Miss Mary.”
|
|
|
|
“Well,” she says, “I'll run down to breakfast now, and then I'll start
|
|
straight for Mr. Lothrop's.”
|
|
|
|
“'Deed, _that_ ain't the ticket, Miss Mary Jane,” I says, “by no manner
|
|
of means; go _before_ breakfast.”
|
|
|
|
“Why?”
|
|
|
|
“What did you reckon I wanted you to go at all for, Miss Mary?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, I never thought--and come to think, I don't know. What was it?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, it's because you ain't one of these leather-face people. I don't
|
|
want no better book than what your face is. A body can set down and
|
|
read it off like coarse print. Do you reckon you can go and face your
|
|
uncles when they come to kiss you good-morning, and never--”
|
|
|
|
“There, there, don't! Yes, I'll go before breakfast--I'll be glad to.
|
|
And leave my sisters with them?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes; never mind about them. They've got to stand it yet a while. They
|
|
might suspicion something if all of you was to go. I don't want you to
|
|
see them, nor your sisters, nor nobody in this town; if a neighbor was
|
|
to ask how is your uncles this morning your face would tell something.
|
|
No, you go right along, Miss Mary Jane, and I'll fix it with all of
|
|
them. I'll tell Miss Susan to give your love to your uncles and say
|
|
you've went away for a few hours for to get a little rest and change, or
|
|
to see a friend, and you'll be back to-night or early in the morning.”
|
|
|
|
“Gone to see a friend is all right, but I won't have my love given to
|
|
them.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, then, it sha'n't be.” It was well enough to tell _her_ so--no
|
|
harm in it. It was only a little thing to do, and no trouble; and it's
|
|
the little things that smooths people's roads the most, down here below;
|
|
it would make Mary Jane comfortable, and it wouldn't cost nothing. Then
|
|
I says: “There's one more thing--that bag of money.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, they've got that; and it makes me feel pretty silly to think
|
|
_how_ they got it.”
|
|
|
|
“No, you're out, there. They hain't got it.”
|
|
|
|
“Why, who's got it?”
|
|
|
|
“I wish I knowed, but I don't. I _had_ it, because I stole it from
|
|
them; and I stole it to give to you; and I know where I hid it, but I'm
|
|
afraid it ain't there no more. I'm awful sorry, Miss Mary Jane, I'm
|
|
just as sorry as I can be; but I done the best I could; I did honest. I
|
|
come nigh getting caught, and I had to shove it into the first place I
|
|
come to, and run--and it warn't a good place.”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, stop blaming yourself--it's too bad to do it, and I won't allow
|
|
it--you couldn't help it; it wasn't your fault. Where did you hide it?”
|
|
|
|
I didn't want to set her to thinking about her troubles again; and I
|
|
couldn't seem to get my mouth to tell her what would make her see that
|
|
corpse laying in the coffin with that bag of money on his stomach. So
|
|
for a minute I didn't say nothing; then I says:
|
|
|
|
“I'd ruther not _tell_ you where I put it, Miss Mary Jane, if you don't
|
|
mind letting me off; but I'll write it for you on a piece of paper, and
|
|
you can read it along the road to Mr. Lothrop's, if you want to. Do you
|
|
reckon that 'll do?”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, yes.”
|
|
|
|
So I wrote: “I put it in the coffin. It was in there when you was
|
|
crying there, away in the night. I was behind the door, and I was
|
|
mighty sorry for you, Miss Mary Jane.”
|
|
|
|
It made my eyes water a little to remember her crying there all by
|
|
herself in the night, and them devils laying there right under her own
|
|
roof, shaming her and robbing her; and when I folded it up and give it
|
|
to her I see the water come into her eyes, too; and she shook me by the
|
|
hand, hard, and says:
|
|
|
|
“_Good_-bye. I'm going to do everything just as you've told me; and if
|
|
I don't ever see you again, I sha'n't ever forget you and I'll think of
|
|
you a many and a many a time, and I'll _pray_ for you, too!”--and she was
|
|
gone.
|
|
|
|
Pray for me! I reckoned if she knowed me she'd take a job that was more
|
|
nearer her size. But I bet she done it, just the same--she was just that
|
|
kind. She had the grit to pray for Judus if she took the notion--there
|
|
warn't no back-down to her, I judge. You may say what you want to, but
|
|
in my opinion she had more sand in her than any girl I ever see; in
|
|
my opinion she was just full of sand. It sounds like flattery, but it
|
|
ain't no flattery. And when it comes to beauty--and goodness, too--she
|
|
lays over them all. I hain't ever seen her since that time that I see
|
|
her go out of that door; no, I hain't ever seen her since, but I reckon
|
|
I've thought of her a many and a many a million times, and of her saying
|
|
she would pray for me; and if ever I'd a thought it would do any good
|
|
for me to pray for _her_, blamed if I wouldn't a done it or bust.
|
|
|
|
Well, Mary Jane she lit out the back way, I reckon; because nobody see
|
|
her go. When I struck Susan and the hare-lip, I says:
|
|
|
|
“What's the name of them people over on t'other side of the river that
|
|
you all goes to see sometimes?”
|
|
|
|
They says:
|
|
|
|
“There's several; but it's the Proctors, mainly.”
|
|
|
|
“That's the name,” I says; “I most forgot it. Well, Miss Mary Jane she
|
|
told me to tell you she's gone over there in a dreadful hurry--one of
|
|
them's sick.”
|
|
|
|
“Which one?”
|
|
|
|
“I don't know; leastways, I kinder forget; but I thinks it's--”
|
|
|
|
“Sakes alive, I hope it ain't _Hanner_?”
|
|
|
|
“I'm sorry to say it,” I says, “but Hanner's the very one.”
|
|
|
|
“My goodness, and she so well only last week! Is she took bad?”
|
|
|
|
“It ain't no name for it. They set up with her all night, Miss Mary
|
|
Jane said, and they don't think she'll last many hours.”
|
|
|
|
“Only think of that, now! What's the matter with her?”
|
|
|
|
I couldn't think of anything reasonable, right off that way, so I says:
|
|
|
|
“Mumps.”
|
|
|
|
“Mumps your granny! They don't set up with people that's got the
|
|
mumps.”
|
|
|
|
“They don't, don't they? You better bet they do with _these_ mumps.
|
|
These mumps is different. It's a new kind, Miss Mary Jane said.”
|
|
|
|
“How's it a new kind?”
|
|
|
|
“Because it's mixed up with other things.”
|
|
|
|
“What other things?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, measles, and whooping-cough, and erysiplas, and consumption, and
|
|
yaller janders, and brain-fever, and I don't know what all.”
|
|
|
|
“My land! And they call it the _mumps_?”
|
|
|
|
“That's what Miss Mary Jane said.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, what in the nation do they call it the _mumps_ for?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, because it _is_ the mumps. That's what it starts with.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, ther' ain't no sense in it. A body might stump his toe, and take
|
|
pison, and fall down the well, and break his neck, and bust his brains
|
|
out, and somebody come along and ask what killed him, and some numskull
|
|
up and say, 'Why, he stumped his _toe_.' Would ther' be any sense
|
|
in that? _No_. And ther' ain't no sense in _this_, nuther. Is it
|
|
ketching?”
|
|
|
|
“Is it _ketching_? Why, how you talk. Is a _harrow_ catching--in the
|
|
dark? If you don't hitch on to one tooth, you're bound to on another,
|
|
ain't you? And you can't get away with that tooth without fetching the
|
|
whole harrow along, can you? Well, these kind of mumps is a kind of a
|
|
harrow, as you may say--and it ain't no slouch of a harrow, nuther, you
|
|
come to get it hitched on good.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, it's awful, I think,” says the hare-lip. “I'll go to Uncle
|
|
Harvey and--”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, yes,” I says, “I _would_. Of _course_ I would. I wouldn't lose no
|
|
time.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, why wouldn't you?”
|
|
|
|
“Just look at it a minute, and maybe you can see. Hain't your uncles
|
|
obleegd to get along home to England as fast as they can? And do you
|
|
reckon they'd be mean enough to go off and leave you to go all that
|
|
journey by yourselves? _you_ know they'll wait for you. So fur, so
|
|
good. Your uncle Harvey's a preacher, ain't he? Very well, then; is a
|
|
_preacher_ going to deceive a steamboat clerk? is he going to deceive
|
|
a _ship clerk?_--so as to get them to let Miss Mary Jane go aboard? Now
|
|
_you_ know he ain't. What _will_ he do, then? Why, he'll say, 'It's a
|
|
great pity, but my church matters has got to get along the best way they
|
|
can; for my niece has been exposed to the dreadful pluribus-unum mumps,
|
|
and so it's my bounden duty to set down here and wait the three months
|
|
it takes to show on her if she's got it.' But never mind, if you think
|
|
it's best to tell your uncle Harvey--”
|
|
|
|
“Shucks, and stay fooling around here when we could all be having good
|
|
times in England whilst we was waiting to find out whether Mary Jane's
|
|
got it or not? Why, you talk like a muggins.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, anyway, maybe you'd better tell some of the neighbors.”
|
|
|
|
“Listen at that, now. You do beat all for natural stupidness. Can't
|
|
you _see_ that _they'd_ go and tell? Ther' ain't no way but just to not
|
|
tell anybody at _all_.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, maybe you're right--yes, I judge you _are_ right.”
|
|
|
|
“But I reckon we ought to tell Uncle Harvey she's gone out a while,
|
|
anyway, so he won't be uneasy about her?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes, Miss Mary Jane she wanted you to do that. She says, 'Tell them to
|
|
give Uncle Harvey and William my love and a kiss, and say I've run over
|
|
the river to see Mr.'--Mr.--what _is_ the name of that rich family your
|
|
uncle Peter used to think so much of?--I mean the one that--”
|
|
|
|
“Why, you must mean the Apthorps, ain't it?”
|
|
|
|
“Of course; bother them kind of names, a body can't ever seem to
|
|
remember them, half the time, somehow. Yes, she said, say she has run
|
|
over for to ask the Apthorps to be sure and come to the auction and buy
|
|
this house, because she allowed her uncle Peter would ruther they had
|
|
it than anybody else; and she's going to stick to them till they say
|
|
they'll come, and then, if she ain't too tired, she's coming home; and
|
|
if she is, she'll be home in the morning anyway. She said, don't say
|
|
nothing about the Proctors, but only about the Apthorps--which 'll be
|
|
perfectly true, because she is going there to speak about their buying
|
|
the house; I know it, because she told me so herself.”
|
|
|
|
“All right,” they said, and cleared out to lay for their uncles, and
|
|
give them the love and the kisses, and tell them the message.
|
|
|
|
Everything was all right now. The girls wouldn't say nothing because
|
|
they wanted to go to England; and the king and the duke would ruther
|
|
Mary Jane was off working for the auction than around in reach of
|
|
Doctor Robinson. I felt very good; I judged I had done it pretty neat--I
|
|
reckoned Tom Sawyer couldn't a done it no neater himself. Of course he
|
|
would a throwed more style into it, but I can't do that very handy, not
|
|
being brung up to it.
|
|
|
|
Well, they held the auction in the public square, along towards the end
|
|
of the afternoon, and it strung along, and strung along, and the old man
|
|
he was on hand and looking his level pisonest, up there longside of the
|
|
auctioneer, and chipping in a little Scripture now and then, or a little
|
|
goody-goody saying of some kind, and the duke he was around goo-gooing
|
|
for sympathy all he knowed how, and just spreading himself generly.
|
|
|
|
But by and by the thing dragged through, and everything was
|
|
sold--everything but a little old trifling lot in the graveyard. So
|
|
they'd got to work that off--I never see such a girafft as the king was
|
|
for wanting to swallow _everything_. Well, whilst they was at it a
|
|
steamboat landed, and in about two minutes up comes a crowd a-whooping
|
|
and yelling and laughing and carrying on, and singing out:
|
|
|
|
“_Here's_ your opposition line! here's your two sets o' heirs to old
|
|
Peter Wilks--and you pays your money and you takes your choice!”
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXIX.
|
|
|
|
THEY was fetching a very nice-looking old gentleman along, and a
|
|
nice-looking younger one, with his right arm in a sling. And, my souls,
|
|
how the people yelled and laughed, and kept it up. But I didn't see no
|
|
joke about it, and I judged it would strain the duke and the king some
|
|
to see any. I reckoned they'd turn pale. But no, nary a pale did
|
|
_they_ turn. The duke he never let on he suspicioned what was up, but
|
|
just went a goo-gooing around, happy and satisfied, like a jug that's
|
|
googling out buttermilk; and as for the king, he just gazed and gazed
|
|
down sorrowful on them new-comers like it give him the stomach-ache in
|
|
his very heart to think there could be such frauds and rascals in the
|
|
world. Oh, he done it admirable. Lots of the principal people
|
|
gethered around the king, to let him see they was on his side. That old
|
|
gentleman that had just come looked all puzzled to death. Pretty
|
|
soon he begun to speak, and I see straight off he pronounced _like_ an
|
|
Englishman--not the king's way, though the king's _was_ pretty good for
|
|
an imitation. I can't give the old gent's words, nor I can't imitate
|
|
him; but he turned around to the crowd, and says, about like this:
|
|
|
|
“This is a surprise to me which I wasn't looking for; and I'll
|
|
acknowledge, candid and frank, I ain't very well fixed to meet it and
|
|
answer it; for my brother and me has had misfortunes; he's broke his
|
|
arm, and our baggage got put off at a town above here last night in the
|
|
night by a mistake. I am Peter Wilks' brother Harvey, and this is his
|
|
brother William, which can't hear nor speak--and can't even make signs to
|
|
amount to much, now't he's only got one hand to work them with. We are
|
|
who we say we are; and in a day or two, when I get the baggage, I can
|
|
prove it. But up till then I won't say nothing more, but go to the hotel
|
|
and wait.”
|
|
|
|
So him and the new dummy started off; and the king he laughs, and
|
|
blethers out:
|
|
|
|
“Broke his arm--_very_ likely, _ain't_ it?--and very convenient, too,
|
|
for a fraud that's got to make signs, and ain't learnt how. Lost
|
|
their baggage! That's _mighty_ good!--and mighty ingenious--under the
|
|
_circumstances_!”
|
|
|
|
So he laughed again; and so did everybody else, except three or four,
|
|
or maybe half a dozen. One of these was that doctor; another one was
|
|
a sharp-looking gentleman, with a carpet-bag of the old-fashioned kind
|
|
made out of carpet-stuff, that had just come off of the steamboat and
|
|
was talking to him in a low voice, and glancing towards the king now and
|
|
then and nodding their heads--it was Levi Bell, the lawyer that was gone
|
|
up to Louisville; and another one was a big rough husky that come along
|
|
and listened to all the old gentleman said, and was listening to the
|
|
king now. And when the king got done this husky up and says:
|
|
|
|
“Say, looky here; if you are Harvey Wilks, when'd you come to this
|
|
town?”
|
|
|
|
“The day before the funeral, friend,” says the king.
|
|
|
|
“But what time o' day?”
|
|
|
|
“In the evenin'--'bout an hour er two before sundown.”
|
|
|
|
“_How'd_ you come?”
|
|
|
|
“I come down on the Susan Powell from Cincinnati.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, then, how'd you come to be up at the Pint in the _mornin_'--in a
|
|
canoe?”
|
|
|
|
“I warn't up at the Pint in the mornin'.”
|
|
|
|
“It's a lie.”
|
|
|
|
Several of them jumped for him and begged him not to talk that way to an
|
|
old man and a preacher.
|
|
|
|
“Preacher be hanged, he's a fraud and a liar. He was up at the Pint
|
|
that mornin'. I live up there, don't I? Well, I was up there, and
|
|
he was up there. I see him there. He come in a canoe, along with Tim
|
|
Collins and a boy.”
|
|
|
|
The doctor he up and says:
|
|
|
|
“Would you know the boy again if you was to see him, Hines?”
|
|
|
|
“I reckon I would, but I don't know. Why, yonder he is, now. I know
|
|
him perfectly easy.”
|
|
|
|
It was me he pointed at. The doctor says:
|
|
|
|
“Neighbors, I don't know whether the new couple is frauds or not; but if
|
|
_these_ two ain't frauds, I am an idiot, that's all. I think it's our
|
|
duty to see that they don't get away from here till we've looked into
|
|
this thing. Come along, Hines; come along, the rest of you. We'll take
|
|
these fellows to the tavern and affront them with t'other couple, and I
|
|
reckon we'll find out _something_ before we get through.”
|
|
|
|
It was nuts for the crowd, though maybe not for the king's friends; so
|
|
we all started. It was about sundown. The doctor he led me along by
|
|
the hand, and was plenty kind enough, but he never let go my hand.
|
|
|
|
We all got in a big room in the hotel, and lit up some candles, and
|
|
fetched in the new couple. First, the doctor says:
|
|
|
|
“I don't wish to be too hard on these two men, but I think they're
|
|
frauds, and they may have complices that we don't know nothing about.
|
|
If they have, won't the complices get away with that bag of gold Peter
|
|
Wilks left? It ain't unlikely. If these men ain't frauds, they won't
|
|
object to sending for that money and letting us keep it till they prove
|
|
they're all right--ain't that so?”
|
|
|
|
Everybody agreed to that. So I judged they had our gang in a pretty
|
|
tight place right at the outstart. But the king he only looked
|
|
sorrowful, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Gentlemen, I wish the money was there, for I ain't got no disposition
|
|
to throw anything in the way of a fair, open, out-and-out investigation
|
|
o' this misable business; but, alas, the money ain't there; you k'n send
|
|
and see, if you want to.”
|
|
|
|
“Where is it, then?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, when my niece give it to me to keep for her I took and hid it
|
|
inside o' the straw tick o' my bed, not wishin' to bank it for the few
|
|
days we'd be here, and considerin' the bed a safe place, we not bein'
|
|
used to niggers, and suppos'n' 'em honest, like servants in England.
|
|
The niggers stole it the very next mornin' after I had went down
|
|
stairs; and when I sold 'em I hadn't missed the money yit, so they got
|
|
clean away with it. My servant here k'n tell you 'bout it, gentlemen.”
|
|
|
|
The doctor and several said “Shucks!” and I see nobody didn't altogether
|
|
believe him. One man asked me if I see the niggers steal it. I said
|
|
no, but I see them sneaking out of the room and hustling away, and I
|
|
never thought nothing, only I reckoned they was afraid they had waked up
|
|
my master and was trying to get away before he made trouble with them.
|
|
That was all they asked me. Then the doctor whirls on me and says:
|
|
|
|
“Are _you_ English, too?”
|
|
|
|
I says yes; and him and some others laughed, and said, “Stuff!”
|
|
|
|
Well, then they sailed in on the general investigation, and there we had
|
|
it, up and down, hour in, hour out, and nobody never said a word about
|
|
supper, nor ever seemed to think about it--and so they kept it up, and
|
|
kept it up; and it _was_ the worst mixed-up thing you ever see. They
|
|
made the king tell his yarn, and they made the old gentleman tell his'n;
|
|
and anybody but a lot of prejudiced chuckleheads would a _seen_ that the
|
|
old gentleman was spinning truth and t'other one lies. And by and by
|
|
they had me up to tell what I knowed. The king he give me a left-handed
|
|
look out of the corner of his eye, and so I knowed enough to talk on the
|
|
right side. I begun to tell about Sheffield, and how we lived there,
|
|
and all about the English Wilkses, and so on; but I didn't get pretty
|
|
fur till the doctor begun to laugh; and Levi Bell, the lawyer, says:
|
|
|
|
“Set down, my boy; I wouldn't strain myself if I was you. I reckon
|
|
you ain't used to lying, it don't seem to come handy; what you want is
|
|
practice. You do it pretty awkward.”
|
|
|
|
I didn't care nothing for the compliment, but I was glad to be let off,
|
|
anyway.
|
|
|
|
The doctor he started to say something, and turns and says:
|
|
|
|
“If you'd been in town at first, Levi Bell--” The king broke in and
|
|
reached out his hand, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Why, is this my poor dead brother's old friend that he's wrote so often
|
|
about?”
|
|
|
|
The lawyer and him shook hands, and the lawyer smiled and looked
|
|
pleased, and they talked right along awhile, and then got to one side
|
|
and talked low; and at last the lawyer speaks up and says:
|
|
|
|
“That 'll fix it. I'll take the order and send it, along with your
|
|
brother's, and then they'll know it's all right.”
|
|
|
|
So they got some paper and a pen, and the king he set down and twisted
|
|
his head to one side, and chawed his tongue, and scrawled off something;
|
|
and then they give the pen to the duke--and then for the first time the
|
|
duke looked sick. But he took the pen and wrote. So then the lawyer
|
|
turns to the new old gentleman and says:
|
|
|
|
“You and your brother please write a line or two and sign your names.”
|
|
|
|
The old gentleman wrote, but nobody couldn't read it. The lawyer looked
|
|
powerful astonished, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Well, it beats _me_”--and snaked a lot of old letters out of his pocket,
|
|
and examined them, and then examined the old man's writing, and then
|
|
_them_ again; and then says: “These old letters is from Harvey Wilks;
|
|
and here's _these_ two handwritings, and anybody can see they didn't
|
|
write them” (the king and the duke looked sold and foolish, I tell
|
|
you, to see how the lawyer had took them in), “and here's _this_ old
|
|
gentleman's hand writing, and anybody can tell, easy enough, _he_ didn't
|
|
write them--fact is, the scratches he makes ain't properly _writing_ at
|
|
all. Now, here's some letters from--”
|
|
|
|
The new old gentleman says:
|
|
|
|
“If you please, let me explain. Nobody can read my hand but my brother
|
|
there--so he copies for me. It's _his_ hand you've got there, not mine.”
|
|
|
|
“_Well_!” says the lawyer, “this _is_ a state of things. I've got some
|
|
of William's letters, too; so if you'll get him to write a line or so we
|
|
can com--”
|
|
|
|
“He _can't_ write with his left hand,” says the old gentleman. “If he
|
|
could use his right hand, you would see that he wrote his own letters
|
|
and mine too. Look at both, please--they're by the same hand.”
|
|
|
|
The lawyer done it, and says:
|
|
|
|
“I believe it's so--and if it ain't so, there's a heap stronger
|
|
resemblance than I'd noticed before, anyway. Well, well, well! I
|
|
thought we was right on the track of a solution, but it's gone to grass,
|
|
partly. But anyway, one thing is proved--_these_ two ain't either of 'em
|
|
Wilkses”--and he wagged his head towards the king and the duke.
|
|
|
|
Well, what do you think? That muleheaded old fool wouldn't give in
|
|
_then_! Indeed he wouldn't. Said it warn't no fair test. Said his
|
|
brother William was the cussedest joker in the world, and hadn't tried
|
|
to write--_he_ see William was going to play one of his jokes the minute
|
|
he put the pen to paper. And so he warmed up and went warbling and
|
|
warbling right along till he was actuly beginning to believe what he was
|
|
saying _himself_; but pretty soon the new gentleman broke in, and says:
|
|
|
|
“I've thought of something. Is there anybody here that helped to lay
|
|
out my br--helped to lay out the late Peter Wilks for burying?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes,” says somebody, “me and Ab Turner done it. We're both here.”
|
|
|
|
Then the old man turns towards the king, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Perhaps this gentleman can tell me what was tattooed on his breast?”
|
|
|
|
Blamed if the king didn't have to brace up mighty quick, or he'd a
|
|
squshed down like a bluff bank that the river has cut under, it took
|
|
him so sudden; and, mind you, it was a thing that was calculated to make
|
|
most _anybody_ sqush to get fetched such a solid one as that without any
|
|
notice, because how was _he_ going to know what was tattooed on the man?
|
|
He whitened a little; he couldn't help it; and it was mighty still in
|
|
there, and everybody bending a little forwards and gazing at him. Says
|
|
I to myself, _now_ he'll throw up the sponge--there ain't no more use.
|
|
Well, did he? A body can't hardly believe it, but he didn't. I reckon
|
|
he thought he'd keep the thing up till he tired them people out, so
|
|
they'd thin out, and him and the duke could break loose and get away.
|
|
Anyway, he set there, and pretty soon he begun to smile, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Mf! It's a _very_ tough question, _ain't_ it! _yes_, sir, I k'n
|
|
tell you what's tattooed on his breast. It's jest a small, thin, blue
|
|
arrow--that's what it is; and if you don't look clost, you can't see it.
|
|
_now_ what do you say--hey?”
|
|
|
|
Well, I never see anything like that old blister for clean out-and-out
|
|
cheek.
|
|
|
|
The new old gentleman turns brisk towards Ab Turner and his pard, and
|
|
his eye lights up like he judged he'd got the king _this_ time, and
|
|
says:
|
|
|
|
“There--you've heard what he said! Was there any such mark on Peter
|
|
Wilks' breast?”
|
|
|
|
Both of them spoke up and says:
|
|
|
|
“We didn't see no such mark.”
|
|
|
|
“Good!” says the old gentleman. “Now, what you _did_ see on his breast
|
|
was a small dim P, and a B (which is an initial he dropped when he was
|
|
young), and a W, with dashes between them, so: P--B--W”--and he marked
|
|
them that way on a piece of paper. “Come, ain't that what you saw?”
|
|
|
|
Both of them spoke up again, and says:
|
|
|
|
“No, we _didn't_. We never seen any marks at all.”
|
|
|
|
Well, everybody _was_ in a state of mind now, and they sings out:
|
|
|
|
“The whole _bilin_' of 'm 's frauds! Le's duck 'em! le's drown 'em!
|
|
le's ride 'em on a rail!” and everybody was whooping at once, and there
|
|
was a rattling powwow. But the lawyer he jumps on the table and yells,
|
|
and says:
|
|
|
|
“Gentlemen--gentle_men!_ Hear me just a word--just a _single_ word--if you
|
|
_please_! There's one way yet--let's go and dig up the corpse and look.”
|
|
|
|
That took them.
|
|
|
|
“Hooray!” they all shouted, and was starting right off; but the lawyer
|
|
and the doctor sung out:
|
|
|
|
“Hold on, hold on! Collar all these four men and the boy, and fetch
|
|
_them_ along, too!”
|
|
|
|
“We'll do it!” they all shouted; “and if we don't find them marks we'll
|
|
lynch the whole gang!”
|
|
|
|
I _was_ scared, now, I tell you. But there warn't no getting away, you
|
|
know. They gripped us all, and marched us right along, straight for the
|
|
graveyard, which was a mile and a half down the river, and the whole
|
|
town at our heels, for we made noise enough, and it was only nine in the
|
|
evening.
|
|
|
|
As we went by our house I wished I hadn't sent Mary Jane out of town;
|
|
because now if I could tip her the wink she'd light out and save me, and
|
|
blow on our dead-beats.
|
|
|
|
Well, we swarmed along down the river road, just carrying on like
|
|
wildcats; and to make it more scary the sky was darking up, and the
|
|
lightning beginning to wink and flitter, and the wind to shiver amongst
|
|
the leaves. This was the most awful trouble and most dangersome I ever
|
|
was in; and I was kinder stunned; everything was going so different from
|
|
what I had allowed for; stead of being fixed so I could take my own time
|
|
if I wanted to, and see all the fun, and have Mary Jane at my back to
|
|
save me and set me free when the close-fit come, here was nothing in the
|
|
world betwixt me and sudden death but just them tattoo-marks. If they
|
|
didn't find them--
|
|
|
|
I couldn't bear to think about it; and yet, somehow, I couldn't think
|
|
about nothing else. It got darker and darker, and it was a beautiful
|
|
time to give the crowd the slip; but that big husky had me by the
|
|
wrist--Hines--and a body might as well try to give Goliar the slip. He
|
|
dragged me right along, he was so excited, and I had to run to keep up.
|
|
|
|
When they got there they swarmed into the graveyard and washed over it
|
|
like an overflow. And when they got to the grave they found they had
|
|
about a hundred times as many shovels as they wanted, but nobody hadn't
|
|
thought to fetch a lantern. But they sailed into digging anyway by the
|
|
flicker of the lightning, and sent a man to the nearest house, a half a
|
|
mile off, to borrow one.
|
|
|
|
So they dug and dug like everything; and it got awful dark, and the rain
|
|
started, and the wind swished and swushed along, and the lightning come
|
|
brisker and brisker, and the thunder boomed; but them people never took
|
|
no notice of it, they was so full of this business; and one minute
|
|
you could see everything and every face in that big crowd, and the
|
|
shovelfuls of dirt sailing up out of the grave, and the next second the
|
|
dark wiped it all out, and you couldn't see nothing at all.
|
|
|
|
At last they got out the coffin and begun to unscrew the lid, and then
|
|
such another crowding and shouldering and shoving as there was, to
|
|
scrouge in and get a sight, you never see; and in the dark, that way, it
|
|
was awful. Hines he hurt my wrist dreadful pulling and tugging so,
|
|
and I reckon he clean forgot I was in the world, he was so excited and
|
|
panting.
|
|
|
|
All of a sudden the lightning let go a perfect sluice of white glare,
|
|
and somebody sings out:
|
|
|
|
“By the living jingo, here's the bag of gold on his breast!”
|
|
|
|
Hines let out a whoop, like everybody else, and dropped my wrist and
|
|
give a big surge to bust his way in and get a look, and the way I lit
|
|
out and shinned for the road in the dark there ain't nobody can tell.
|
|
|
|
I had the road all to myself, and I fairly flew--leastways, I had it all
|
|
to myself except the solid dark, and the now-and-then glares, and the
|
|
buzzing of the rain, and the thrashing of the wind, and the splitting of
|
|
the thunder; and sure as you are born I did clip it along!
|
|
|
|
When I struck the town I see there warn't nobody out in the storm, so
|
|
I never hunted for no back streets, but humped it straight through the
|
|
main one; and when I begun to get towards our house I aimed my eye and
|
|
set it. No light there; the house all dark--which made me feel sorry and
|
|
disappointed, I didn't know why. But at last, just as I was sailing by,
|
|
_flash_ comes the light in Mary Jane's window! and my heart swelled up
|
|
sudden, like to bust; and the same second the house and all was behind
|
|
me in the dark, and wasn't ever going to be before me no more in this
|
|
world. She _was_ the best girl I ever see, and had the most sand.
|
|
|
|
The minute I was far enough above the town to see I could make the
|
|
towhead, I begun to look sharp for a boat to borrow, and the first
|
|
time the lightning showed me one that wasn't chained I snatched it and
|
|
shoved. It was a canoe, and warn't fastened with nothing but a rope.
|
|
The towhead was a rattling big distance off, away out there in the
|
|
middle of the river, but I didn't lose no time; and when I struck the
|
|
raft at last I was so fagged I would a just laid down to blow and gasp
|
|
if I could afforded it. But I didn't. As I sprung aboard I sung out:
|
|
|
|
“Out with you, Jim, and set her loose! Glory be to goodness, we're shut
|
|
of them!”
|
|
|
|
Jim lit out, and was a-coming for me with both arms spread, he was so
|
|
full of joy; but when I glimpsed him in the lightning my heart shot up
|
|
in my mouth and I went overboard backwards; for I forgot he was old King
|
|
Lear and a drownded A-rab all in one, and it most scared the livers and
|
|
lights out of me. But Jim fished me out, and was going to hug me and
|
|
bless me, and so on, he was so glad I was back and we was shut of the
|
|
king and the duke, but I says:
|
|
|
|
“Not now; have it for breakfast, have it for breakfast! Cut loose and
|
|
let her slide!”
|
|
|
|
So in two seconds away we went a-sliding down the river, and it _did_
|
|
seem so good to be free again and all by ourselves on the big river, and
|
|
nobody to bother us. I had to skip around a bit, and jump up and crack
|
|
my heels a few times--I couldn't help it; but about the third crack
|
|
I noticed a sound that I knowed mighty well, and held my breath and
|
|
listened and waited; and sure enough, when the next flash busted out
|
|
over the water, here they come!--and just a-laying to their oars and
|
|
making their skiff hum! It was the king and the duke.
|
|
|
|
So I wilted right down on to the planks then, and give up; and it was
|
|
all I could do to keep from crying.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXX.
|
|
|
|
WHEN they got aboard the king went for me, and shook me by the collar,
|
|
and says:
|
|
|
|
“Tryin' to give us the slip, was ye, you pup! Tired of our company,
|
|
hey?”
|
|
|
|
I says:
|
|
|
|
“No, your majesty, we warn't--_please_ don't, your majesty!”
|
|
|
|
“Quick, then, and tell us what _was_ your idea, or I'll shake the
|
|
insides out o' you!”
|
|
|
|
“Honest, I'll tell you everything just as it happened, your majesty.
|
|
The man that had a-holt of me was very good to me, and kept saying he
|
|
had a boy about as big as me that died last year, and he was sorry
|
|
to see a boy in such a dangerous fix; and when they was all took by
|
|
surprise by finding the gold, and made a rush for the coffin, he lets go
|
|
of me and whispers, 'Heel it now, or they'll hang ye, sure!' and I lit
|
|
out. It didn't seem no good for _me_ to stay--I couldn't do nothing,
|
|
and I didn't want to be hung if I could get away. So I never stopped
|
|
running till I found the canoe; and when I got here I told Jim to hurry,
|
|
or they'd catch me and hang me yet, and said I was afeard you and the
|
|
duke wasn't alive now, and I was awful sorry, and so was Jim, and was
|
|
awful glad when we see you coming; you may ask Jim if I didn't.”
|
|
|
|
Jim said it was so; and the king told him to shut up, and said, “Oh,
|
|
yes, it's _mighty_ likely!” and shook me up again, and said he reckoned
|
|
he'd drownd me. But the duke says:
|
|
|
|
“Leggo the boy, you old idiot! Would _you_ a done any different? Did
|
|
you inquire around for _him_ when you got loose? I don't remember it.”
|
|
|
|
So the king let go of me, and begun to cuss that town and everybody in
|
|
it. But the duke says:
|
|
|
|
“You better a blame' sight give _yourself_ a good cussing, for you're
|
|
the one that's entitled to it most. You hain't done a thing from the
|
|
start that had any sense in it, except coming out so cool and cheeky
|
|
with that imaginary blue-arrow mark. That _was_ bright--it was right
|
|
down bully; and it was the thing that saved us. For if it hadn't been
|
|
for that they'd a jailed us till them Englishmen's baggage come--and
|
|
then--the penitentiary, you bet! But that trick took 'em to the
|
|
graveyard, and the gold done us a still bigger kindness; for if the
|
|
excited fools hadn't let go all holts and made that rush to get a
|
|
look we'd a slept in our cravats to-night--cravats warranted to _wear_,
|
|
too--longer than _we'd_ need 'em.”
|
|
|
|
They was still a minute--thinking; then the king says, kind of
|
|
absent-minded like:
|
|
|
|
“Mf! And we reckoned the _niggers_ stole it!”
|
|
|
|
That made me squirm!
|
|
|
|
“Yes,” says the duke, kinder slow and deliberate and sarcastic, “_we_
|
|
did.”
|
|
|
|
After about a half a minute the king drawls out:
|
|
|
|
“Leastways, I did.”
|
|
|
|
The duke says, the same way:
|
|
|
|
“On the contrary, I did.”
|
|
|
|
The king kind of ruffles up, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Looky here, Bilgewater, what'r you referrin' to?”
|
|
|
|
The duke says, pretty brisk:
|
|
|
|
“When it comes to that, maybe you'll let me ask, what was _you_
|
|
referring to?”
|
|
|
|
“Shucks!” says the king, very sarcastic; “but I don't know--maybe you was
|
|
asleep, and didn't know what you was about.”
|
|
|
|
The duke bristles up now, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Oh, let _up_ on this cussed nonsense; do you take me for a blame' fool?
|
|
Don't you reckon I know who hid that money in that coffin?”
|
|
|
|
“_Yes_, sir! I know you _do_ know, because you done it yourself!”
|
|
|
|
“It's a lie!”--and the duke went for him. The king sings out:
|
|
|
|
“Take y'r hands off!--leggo my throat!--I take it all back!”
|
|
|
|
The duke says:
|
|
|
|
“Well, you just own up, first, that you _did_ hide that money there,
|
|
intending to give me the slip one of these days, and come back and dig
|
|
it up, and have it all to yourself.”
|
|
|
|
“Wait jest a minute, duke--answer me this one question, honest and fair;
|
|
if you didn't put the money there, say it, and I'll b'lieve you, and
|
|
take back everything I said.”
|
|
|
|
“You old scoundrel, I didn't, and you know I didn't. There, now!”
|
|
|
|
“Well, then, I b'lieve you. But answer me only jest this one more--now
|
|
_don't_ git mad; didn't you have it in your mind to hook the money and
|
|
hide it?”
|
|
|
|
The duke never said nothing for a little bit; then he says:
|
|
|
|
“Well, I don't care if I _did_, I didn't _do_ it, anyway. But you not
|
|
only had it in mind to do it, but you _done_ it.”
|
|
|
|
“I wisht I never die if I done it, duke, and that's honest. I won't say
|
|
I warn't goin' to do it, because I _was_; but you--I mean somebody--got in
|
|
ahead o' me.”
|
|
|
|
“It's a lie! You done it, and you got to _say_ you done it, or--”
|
|
|
|
The king began to gurgle, and then he gasps out:
|
|
|
|
“'Nough!--I _own up!_”
|
|
|
|
I was very glad to hear him say that; it made me feel much more easier
|
|
than what I was feeling before. So the duke took his hands off and
|
|
says:
|
|
|
|
“If you ever deny it again I'll drown you. It's _well_ for you to set
|
|
there and blubber like a baby--it's fitten for you, after the way
|
|
you've acted. I never see such an old ostrich for wanting to gobble
|
|
everything--and I a-trusting you all the time, like you was my own
|
|
father. You ought to been ashamed of yourself to stand by and hear it
|
|
saddled on to a lot of poor niggers, and you never say a word for 'em.
|
|
It makes me feel ridiculous to think I was soft enough to _believe_
|
|
that rubbage. Cuss you, I can see now why you was so anxious to make
|
|
up the deffisit--you wanted to get what money I'd got out of the Nonesuch
|
|
and one thing or another, and scoop it _all_!”
|
|
|
|
The king says, timid, and still a-snuffling:
|
|
|
|
“Why, duke, it was you that said make up the deffisit; it warn't me.”
|
|
|
|
“Dry up! I don't want to hear no more out of you!” says the duke. “And
|
|
_now_ you see what you GOT by it. They've got all their own money back,
|
|
and all of _ourn_ but a shekel or two _besides_. G'long to bed, and
|
|
don't you deffersit _me_ no more deffersits, long 's _you_ live!”
|
|
|
|
So the king sneaked into the wigwam and took to his bottle for comfort,
|
|
and before long the duke tackled HIS bottle; and so in about a half an
|
|
hour they was as thick as thieves again, and the tighter they got the
|
|
lovinger they got, and went off a-snoring in each other's arms. They
|
|
both got powerful mellow, but I noticed the king didn't get mellow
|
|
enough to forget to remember to not deny about hiding the money-bag
|
|
again. That made me feel easy and satisfied. Of course when they got
|
|
to snoring we had a long gabble, and I told Jim everything.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXI.
|
|
|
|
WE dasn't stop again at any town for days and days; kept right along
|
|
down the river. We was down south in the warm weather now, and a mighty
|
|
long ways from home. We begun to come to trees with Spanish moss on
|
|
them, hanging down from the limbs like long, gray beards. It was the
|
|
first I ever see it growing, and it made the woods look solemn and
|
|
dismal. So now the frauds reckoned they was out of danger, and they
|
|
begun to work the villages again.
|
|
|
|
First they done a lecture on temperance; but they didn't make enough
|
|
for them both to get drunk on. Then in another village they started
|
|
a dancing-school; but they didn't know no more how to dance than a
|
|
kangaroo does; so the first prance they made the general public jumped
|
|
in and pranced them out of town. Another time they tried to go at
|
|
yellocution; but they didn't yellocute long till the audience got up and
|
|
give them a solid good cussing, and made them skip out. They tackled
|
|
missionarying, and mesmerizing, and doctoring, and telling fortunes, and
|
|
a little of everything; but they couldn't seem to have no luck. So at
|
|
last they got just about dead broke, and laid around the raft as she
|
|
floated along, thinking and thinking, and never saying nothing, by the
|
|
half a day at a time, and dreadful blue and desperate.
|
|
|
|
And at last they took a change and begun to lay their heads together in
|
|
the wigwam and talk low and confidential two or three hours at a time.
|
|
Jim and me got uneasy. We didn't like the look of it. We judged they
|
|
was studying up some kind of worse deviltry than ever. We turned it
|
|
over and over, and at last we made up our minds they was going to break
|
|
into somebody's house or store, or was going into the counterfeit-money
|
|
business, or something. So then we was pretty scared, and made up an
|
|
agreement that we wouldn't have nothing in the world to do with such
|
|
actions, and if we ever got the least show we would give them the cold
|
|
shake and clear out and leave them behind. Well, early one morning we
|
|
hid the raft in a good, safe place about two mile below a little bit of
|
|
a shabby village named Pikesville, and the king he went ashore and told
|
|
us all to stay hid whilst he went up to town and smelt around to see
|
|
if anybody had got any wind of the Royal Nonesuch there yet. (“House to
|
|
rob, you _mean_,” says I to myself; “and when you get through robbing it
|
|
you'll come back here and wonder what has become of me and Jim and the
|
|
raft--and you'll have to take it out in wondering.”) And he said if he
|
|
warn't back by midday the duke and me would know it was all right, and
|
|
we was to come along.
|
|
|
|
So we stayed where we was. The duke he fretted and sweated around, and
|
|
was in a mighty sour way. He scolded us for everything, and we couldn't
|
|
seem to do nothing right; he found fault with every little thing.
|
|
Something was a-brewing, sure. I was good and glad when midday come
|
|
and no king; we could have a change, anyway--and maybe a chance for _the_
|
|
change on top of it. So me and the duke went up to the village, and
|
|
hunted around there for the king, and by and by we found him in the
|
|
back room of a little low doggery, very tight, and a lot of loafers
|
|
bullyragging him for sport, and he a-cussing and a-threatening with all
|
|
his might, and so tight he couldn't walk, and couldn't do nothing to
|
|
them. The duke he begun to abuse him for an old fool, and the king
|
|
begun to sass back, and the minute they was fairly at it I lit out and
|
|
shook the reefs out of my hind legs, and spun down the river road like
|
|
a deer, for I see our chance; and I made up my mind that it would be a
|
|
long day before they ever see me and Jim again. I got down there all
|
|
out of breath but loaded up with joy, and sung out:
|
|
|
|
“Set her loose, Jim! we're all right now!”
|
|
|
|
But there warn't no answer, and nobody come out of the wigwam. Jim was
|
|
gone! I set up a shout--and then another--and then another one; and run
|
|
this way and that in the woods, whooping and screeching; but it warn't
|
|
no use--old Jim was gone. Then I set down and cried; I couldn't help
|
|
it. But I couldn't set still long. Pretty soon I went out on the road,
|
|
trying to think what I better do, and I run across a boy walking, and
|
|
asked him if he'd seen a strange nigger dressed so and so, and he says:
|
|
|
|
“Yes.”
|
|
|
|
“Whereabouts?” says I.
|
|
|
|
“Down to Silas Phelps' place, two mile below here. He's a runaway
|
|
nigger, and they've got him. Was you looking for him?”
|
|
|
|
“You bet I ain't! I run across him in the woods about an hour or two
|
|
ago, and he said if I hollered he'd cut my livers out--and told me to lay
|
|
down and stay where I was; and I done it. Been there ever since; afeard
|
|
to come out.”
|
|
|
|
“Well,” he says, “you needn't be afeard no more, becuz they've got him.
|
|
He run off f'm down South, som'ers.”
|
|
|
|
“It's a good job they got him.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, I _reckon_! There's two hunderd dollars reward on him. It's
|
|
like picking up money out'n the road.”
|
|
|
|
“Yes, it is--and I could a had it if I'd been big enough; I see him
|
|
_first_. Who nailed him?”
|
|
|
|
“It was an old fellow--a stranger--and he sold out his chance in him for
|
|
forty dollars, becuz he's got to go up the river and can't wait. Think
|
|
o' that, now! You bet _I'd_ wait, if it was seven year.”
|
|
|
|
“That's me, every time,” says I. “But maybe his chance ain't worth
|
|
no more than that, if he'll sell it so cheap. Maybe there's something
|
|
ain't straight about it.”
|
|
|
|
“But it _is_, though--straight as a string. I see the handbill myself.
|
|
It tells all about him, to a dot--paints him like a picture, and tells
|
|
the plantation he's frum, below Newr_leans_. No-sirree-_bob_, they
|
|
ain't no trouble 'bout _that_ speculation, you bet you. Say, gimme a
|
|
chaw tobacker, won't ye?”
|
|
|
|
I didn't have none, so he left. I went to the raft, and set down in the
|
|
wigwam to think. But I couldn't come to nothing. I thought till I wore
|
|
my head sore, but I couldn't see no way out of the trouble. After all
|
|
this long journey, and after all we'd done for them scoundrels, here it
|
|
was all come to nothing, everything all busted up and ruined, because
|
|
they could have the heart to serve Jim such a trick as that, and make
|
|
him a slave again all his life, and amongst strangers, too, for forty
|
|
dirty dollars.
|
|
|
|
Once I said to myself it would be a thousand times better for Jim to
|
|
be a slave at home where his family was, as long as he'd _got_ to be a
|
|
slave, and so I'd better write a letter to Tom Sawyer and tell him to
|
|
tell Miss Watson where he was. But I soon give up that notion for two
|
|
things: she'd be mad and disgusted at his rascality and ungratefulness
|
|
for leaving her, and so she'd sell him straight down the river again;
|
|
and if she didn't, everybody naturally despises an ungrateful nigger,
|
|
and they'd make Jim feel it all the time, and so he'd feel ornery and
|
|
disgraced. And then think of _me_! It would get all around that Huck
|
|
Finn helped a nigger to get his freedom; and if I was ever to see
|
|
anybody from that town again I'd be ready to get down and lick his boots
|
|
for shame. That's just the way: a person does a low-down thing, and
|
|
then he don't want to take no consequences of it. Thinks as long as he
|
|
can hide it, it ain't no disgrace. That was my fix exactly. The more I
|
|
studied about this the more my conscience went to grinding me, and the
|
|
more wicked and low-down and ornery I got to feeling. And at last, when
|
|
it hit me all of a sudden that here was the plain hand of Providence
|
|
slapping me in the face and letting me know my wickedness was being
|
|
watched all the time from up there in heaven, whilst I was stealing a
|
|
poor old woman's nigger that hadn't ever done me no harm, and now was
|
|
showing me there's One that's always on the lookout, and ain't a-going
|
|
to allow no such miserable doings to go only just so fur and no further,
|
|
I most dropped in my tracks I was so scared. Well, I tried the best I
|
|
could to kinder soften it up somehow for myself by saying I was brung
|
|
up wicked, and so I warn't so much to blame; but something inside of me
|
|
kept saying, “There was the Sunday-school, you could a gone to it; and
|
|
if you'd a done it they'd a learnt you there that people that acts as
|
|
I'd been acting about that nigger goes to everlasting fire.”
|
|
|
|
It made me shiver. And I about made up my mind to pray, and see if I
|
|
couldn't try to quit being the kind of a boy I was and be better. So
|
|
I kneeled down. But the words wouldn't come. Why wouldn't they? It
|
|
warn't no use to try and hide it from Him. Nor from _me_, neither. I
|
|
knowed very well why they wouldn't come. It was because my heart warn't
|
|
right; it was because I warn't square; it was because I was playing
|
|
double. I was letting _on_ to give up sin, but away inside of me I was
|
|
holding on to the biggest one of all. I was trying to make my mouth
|
|
_say_ I would do the right thing and the clean thing, and go and write
|
|
to that nigger's owner and tell where he was; but deep down in me I
|
|
knowed it was a lie, and He knowed it. You can't pray a lie--I found
|
|
that out.
|
|
|
|
So I was full of trouble, full as I could be; and didn't know what to
|
|
do. At last I had an idea; and I says, I'll go and write the letter--and
|
|
then see if I can pray. Why, it was astonishing, the way I felt as
|
|
light as a feather right straight off, and my troubles all gone. So I
|
|
got a piece of paper and a pencil, all glad and excited, and set down
|
|
and wrote:
|
|
|
|
Miss Watson, your runaway nigger Jim is down here two mile below
|
|
Pikesville, and Mr. Phelps has got him and he will give him up for the
|
|
reward if you send.
|
|
|
|
_Huck Finn._
|
|
|
|
I felt good and all washed clean of sin for the first time I had ever
|
|
felt so in my life, and I knowed I could pray now. But I didn't do it
|
|
straight off, but laid the paper down and set there thinking--thinking
|
|
how good it was all this happened so, and how near I come to being lost
|
|
and going to hell. And went on thinking. And got to thinking over our
|
|
trip down the river; and I see Jim before me all the time: in the day
|
|
and in the night-time, sometimes moonlight, sometimes storms, and we
|
|
a-floating along, talking and singing and laughing. But somehow I
|
|
couldn't seem to strike no places to harden me against him, but only the
|
|
other kind. I'd see him standing my watch on top of his'n, 'stead of
|
|
calling me, so I could go on sleeping; and see him how glad he was when
|
|
I come back out of the fog; and when I come to him again in the swamp,
|
|
up there where the feud was; and such-like times; and would always call
|
|
me honey, and pet me and do everything he could think of for me, and how
|
|
good he always was; and at last I struck the time I saved him by telling
|
|
the men we had small-pox aboard, and he was so grateful, and said I was
|
|
the best friend old Jim ever had in the world, and the _only_ one he's
|
|
got now; and then I happened to look around and see that paper.
|
|
|
|
It was a close place. I took it up, and held it in my hand. I was
|
|
a-trembling, because I'd got to decide, forever, betwixt two things, and
|
|
I knowed it. I studied a minute, sort of holding my breath, and then
|
|
says to myself:
|
|
|
|
“All right, then, I'll _go_ to hell”--and tore it up.
|
|
|
|
It was awful thoughts and awful words, but they was said. And I let
|
|
them stay said; and never thought no more about reforming. I shoved the
|
|
whole thing out of my head, and said I would take up wickedness again,
|
|
which was in my line, being brung up to it, and the other warn't. And
|
|
for a starter I would go to work and steal Jim out of slavery again;
|
|
and if I could think up anything worse, I would do that, too; because as
|
|
long as I was in, and in for good, I might as well go the whole hog.
|
|
|
|
Then I set to thinking over how to get at it, and turned over some
|
|
considerable many ways in my mind; and at last fixed up a plan that
|
|
suited me. So then I took the bearings of a woody island that was down
|
|
the river a piece, and as soon as it was fairly dark I crept out with my
|
|
raft and went for it, and hid it there, and then turned in. I slept the
|
|
night through, and got up before it was light, and had my breakfast,
|
|
and put on my store clothes, and tied up some others and one thing or
|
|
another in a bundle, and took the canoe and cleared for shore. I landed
|
|
below where I judged was Phelps's place, and hid my bundle in the woods,
|
|
and then filled up the canoe with water, and loaded rocks into her and
|
|
sunk her where I could find her again when I wanted her, about a quarter
|
|
of a mile below a little steam sawmill that was on the bank.
|
|
|
|
Then I struck up the road, and when I passed the mill I see a sign on
|
|
it, “Phelps's Sawmill,” and when I come to the farm-houses, two or
|
|
three hundred yards further along, I kept my eyes peeled, but didn't
|
|
see nobody around, though it was good daylight now. But I didn't mind,
|
|
because I didn't want to see nobody just yet--I only wanted to get the
|
|
lay of the land. According to my plan, I was going to turn up there from
|
|
the village, not from below. So I just took a look, and shoved along,
|
|
straight for town. Well, the very first man I see when I got there was
|
|
the duke. He was sticking up a bill for the Royal Nonesuch--three-night
|
|
performance--like that other time. They had the cheek, them frauds! I
|
|
was right on him before I could shirk. He looked astonished, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Hel-_lo_! Where'd _you_ come from?” Then he says, kind of glad and
|
|
eager, “Where's the raft?--got her in a good place?”
|
|
|
|
I says:
|
|
|
|
“Why, that's just what I was going to ask your grace.”
|
|
|
|
Then he didn't look so joyful, and says:
|
|
|
|
“What was your idea for asking _me_?” he says.
|
|
|
|
“Well,” I says, “when I see the king in that doggery yesterday I says
|
|
to myself, we can't get him home for hours, till he's soberer; so I went
|
|
a-loafing around town to put in the time and wait. A man up and offered
|
|
me ten cents to help him pull a skiff over the river and back to fetch
|
|
a sheep, and so I went along; but when we was dragging him to the boat,
|
|
and the man left me a-holt of the rope and went behind him to shove him
|
|
along, he was too strong for me and jerked loose and run, and we after
|
|
him. We didn't have no dog, and so we had to chase him all over the
|
|
country till we tired him out. We never got him till dark; then we
|
|
fetched him over, and I started down for the raft. When I got there and
|
|
see it was gone, I says to myself, 'They've got into trouble and had to
|
|
leave; and they've took my nigger, which is the only nigger I've got in
|
|
the world, and now I'm in a strange country, and ain't got no property
|
|
no more, nor nothing, and no way to make my living;' so I set down and
|
|
cried. I slept in the woods all night. But what _did_ become of the
|
|
raft, then?--and Jim--poor Jim!”
|
|
|
|
“Blamed if I know--that is, what's become of the raft. That old fool had
|
|
made a trade and got forty dollars, and when we found him in the doggery
|
|
the loafers had matched half-dollars with him and got every cent but
|
|
what he'd spent for whisky; and when I got him home late last night and
|
|
found the raft gone, we said, 'That little rascal has stole our raft and
|
|
shook us, and run off down the river.'”
|
|
|
|
“I wouldn't shake my _nigger_, would I?--the only nigger I had in the
|
|
world, and the only property.”
|
|
|
|
“We never thought of that. Fact is, I reckon we'd come to consider him
|
|
_our_ nigger; yes, we did consider him so--goodness knows we had trouble
|
|
enough for him. So when we see the raft was gone and we flat broke,
|
|
there warn't anything for it but to try the Royal Nonesuch another
|
|
shake. And I've pegged along ever since, dry as a powder-horn. Where's
|
|
that ten cents? Give it here.”
|
|
|
|
I had considerable money, so I give him ten cents, but begged him to
|
|
spend it for something to eat, and give me some, because it was all the
|
|
money I had, and I hadn't had nothing to eat since yesterday. He never
|
|
said nothing. The next minute he whirls on me and says:
|
|
|
|
“Do you reckon that nigger would blow on us? We'd skin him if he done
|
|
that!”
|
|
|
|
“How can he blow? Hain't he run off?”
|
|
|
|
“No! That old fool sold him, and never divided with me, and the money's
|
|
gone.”
|
|
|
|
“_Sold_ him?” I says, and begun to cry; “why, he was _my_ nigger, and
|
|
that was my money. Where is he?--I want my nigger.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, you can't _get_ your nigger, that's all--so dry up your
|
|
blubbering. Looky here--do you think _you'd_ venture to blow on us?
|
|
Blamed if I think I'd trust you. Why, if you _was_ to blow on us--”
|
|
|
|
He stopped, but I never see the duke look so ugly out of his eyes
|
|
before. I went on a-whimpering, and says:
|
|
|
|
“I don't want to blow on nobody; and I ain't got no time to blow, nohow.
|
|
I got to turn out and find my nigger.”
|
|
|
|
He looked kinder bothered, and stood there with his bills fluttering on
|
|
his arm, thinking, and wrinkling up his forehead. At last he says:
|
|
|
|
“I'll tell you something. We got to be here three days. If you'll
|
|
promise you won't blow, and won't let the nigger blow, I'll tell you
|
|
where to find him.”
|
|
|
|
So I promised, and he says:
|
|
|
|
“A farmer by the name of Silas Ph--” and then he stopped. You see, he
|
|
started to tell me the truth; but when he stopped that way, and begun to
|
|
study and think again, I reckoned he was changing his mind. And so he
|
|
was. He wouldn't trust me; he wanted to make sure of having me out of
|
|
the way the whole three days. So pretty soon he says:
|
|
|
|
“The man that bought him is named Abram Foster--Abram G. Foster--and he
|
|
lives forty mile back here in the country, on the road to Lafayette.”
|
|
|
|
“All right,” I says, “I can walk it in three days. And I'll start this
|
|
very afternoon.”
|
|
|
|
“No you wont, you'll start _now_; and don't you lose any time about it,
|
|
neither, nor do any gabbling by the way. Just keep a tight tongue in
|
|
your head and move right along, and then you won't get into trouble with
|
|
_us_, d'ye hear?”
|
|
|
|
That was the order I wanted, and that was the one I played for. I
|
|
wanted to be left free to work my plans.
|
|
|
|
“So clear out,” he says; “and you can tell Mr. Foster whatever you want
|
|
to. Maybe you can get him to believe that Jim _is_ your nigger--some
|
|
idiots don't require documents--leastways I've heard there's such down
|
|
South here. And when you tell him the handbill and the reward's bogus,
|
|
maybe he'll believe you when you explain to him what the idea was for
|
|
getting 'em out. Go 'long now, and tell him anything you want to; but
|
|
mind you don't work your jaw any _between_ here and there.”
|
|
|
|
So I left, and struck for the back country. I didn't look around, but I
|
|
kinder felt like he was watching me. But I knowed I could tire him out
|
|
at that. I went straight out in the country as much as a mile before
|
|
I stopped; then I doubled back through the woods towards Phelps'. I
|
|
reckoned I better start in on my plan straight off without fooling
|
|
around, because I wanted to stop Jim's mouth till these fellows could
|
|
get away. I didn't want no trouble with their kind. I'd seen all I
|
|
wanted to of them, and wanted to get entirely shut of them.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXII.
|
|
|
|
WHEN I got there it was all still and Sunday-like, and hot and sunshiny;
|
|
the hands was gone to the fields; and there was them kind of faint
|
|
dronings of bugs and flies in the air that makes it seem so lonesome and
|
|
like everybody's dead and gone; and if a breeze fans along and quivers
|
|
the leaves it makes you feel mournful, because you feel like it's
|
|
spirits whispering--spirits that's been dead ever so many years--and you
|
|
always think they're talking about _you_. As a general thing it makes a
|
|
body wish _he_ was dead, too, and done with it all.
|
|
|
|
Phelps' was one of these little one-horse cotton plantations, and they
|
|
all look alike. A rail fence round a two-acre yard; a stile made out
|
|
of logs sawed off and up-ended in steps, like barrels of a different
|
|
length, to climb over the fence with, and for the women to stand on when
|
|
they are going to jump on to a horse; some sickly grass-patches in the
|
|
big yard, but mostly it was bare and smooth, like an old hat with the
|
|
nap rubbed off; big double log-house for the white folks--hewed logs,
|
|
with the chinks stopped up with mud or mortar, and these mud-stripes
|
|
been whitewashed some time or another; round-log kitchen, with a big
|
|
broad, open but roofed passage joining it to the house; log smoke-house
|
|
back of the kitchen; three little log nigger-cabins in a row t'other
|
|
side the smoke-house; one little hut all by itself away down against
|
|
the back fence, and some outbuildings down a piece the other side;
|
|
ash-hopper and big kettle to bile soap in by the little hut; bench by
|
|
the kitchen door, with bucket of water and a gourd; hound asleep there
|
|
in the sun; more hounds asleep round about; about three shade trees away
|
|
off in a corner; some currant bushes and gooseberry bushes in one place
|
|
by the fence; outside of the fence a garden and a watermelon patch; then
|
|
the cotton fields begins, and after the fields the woods.
|
|
|
|
I went around and clumb over the back stile by the ash-hopper, and
|
|
started for the kitchen. When I got a little ways I heard the dim hum
|
|
of a spinning-wheel wailing along up and sinking along down again;
|
|
and then I knowed for certain I wished I was dead--for that _is_ the
|
|
lonesomest sound in the whole world.
|
|
|
|
I went right along, not fixing up any particular plan, but just trusting
|
|
to Providence to put the right words in my mouth when the time come; for
|
|
I'd noticed that Providence always did put the right words in my mouth
|
|
if I left it alone.
|
|
|
|
When I got half-way, first one hound and then another got up and went
|
|
for me, and of course I stopped and faced them, and kept still. And
|
|
such another powwow as they made! In a quarter of a minute I was a kind
|
|
of a hub of a wheel, as you may say--spokes made out of dogs--circle of
|
|
fifteen of them packed together around me, with their necks and noses
|
|
stretched up towards me, a-barking and howling; and more a-coming; you
|
|
could see them sailing over fences and around corners from everywheres.
|
|
|
|
A nigger woman come tearing out of the kitchen with a rolling-pin in her
|
|
hand, singing out, “Begone _you_ Tige! you Spot! begone sah!” and she
|
|
fetched first one and then another of them a clip and sent them howling,
|
|
and then the rest followed; and the next second half of them come back,
|
|
wagging their tails around me, and making friends with me. There ain't
|
|
no harm in a hound, nohow.
|
|
|
|
And behind the woman comes a little nigger girl and two little nigger
|
|
boys without anything on but tow-linen shirts, and they hung on to their
|
|
mother's gown, and peeped out from behind her at me, bashful, the way
|
|
they always do. And here comes the white woman running from the house,
|
|
about forty-five or fifty year old, bareheaded, and her spinning-stick
|
|
in her hand; and behind her comes her little white children, acting the
|
|
same way the little niggers was doing. She was smiling all over so she
|
|
could hardly stand--and says:
|
|
|
|
“It's _you_, at last!--_ain't_ it?”
|
|
|
|
I out with a “Yes'm” before I thought.
|
|
|
|
She grabbed me and hugged me tight; and then gripped me by both hands
|
|
and shook and shook; and the tears come in her eyes, and run down over;
|
|
and she couldn't seem to hug and shake enough, and kept saying, “You
|
|
don't look as much like your mother as I reckoned you would; but law
|
|
sakes, I don't care for that, I'm so glad to see you! Dear, dear, it
|
|
does seem like I could eat you up! Children, it's your cousin Tom!--tell
|
|
him howdy.”
|
|
|
|
But they ducked their heads, and put their fingers in their mouths, and
|
|
hid behind her. So she run on:
|
|
|
|
“Lize, hurry up and get him a hot breakfast right away--or did you get
|
|
your breakfast on the boat?”
|
|
|
|
I said I had got it on the boat. So then she started for the house,
|
|
leading me by the hand, and the children tagging after. When we got
|
|
there she set me down in a split-bottomed chair, and set herself down on
|
|
a little low stool in front of me, holding both of my hands, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Now I can have a _good_ look at you; and, laws-a-me, I've been hungry
|
|
for it a many and a many a time, all these long years, and it's come
|
|
at last! We been expecting you a couple of days and more. What kep'
|
|
you?--boat get aground?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes'm--she--”
|
|
|
|
“Don't say yes'm--say Aunt Sally. Where'd she get aground?”
|
|
|
|
I didn't rightly know what to say, because I didn't know whether the
|
|
boat would be coming up the river or down. But I go a good deal on
|
|
instinct; and my instinct said she would be coming up--from down towards
|
|
Orleans. That didn't help me much, though; for I didn't know the names
|
|
of bars down that way. I see I'd got to invent a bar, or forget the
|
|
name of the one we got aground on--or--Now I struck an idea, and fetched
|
|
it out:
|
|
|
|
“It warn't the grounding--that didn't keep us back but a little. We
|
|
blowed out a cylinder-head.”
|
|
|
|
“Good gracious! anybody hurt?”
|
|
|
|
“No'm. Killed a nigger.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, it's lucky; because sometimes people do get hurt. Two years ago
|
|
last Christmas your uncle Silas was coming up from Newrleans on the old
|
|
Lally Rook, and she blowed out a cylinder-head and crippled a man. And
|
|
I think he died afterwards. He was a Baptist. Your uncle Silas knowed
|
|
a family in Baton Rouge that knowed his people very well. Yes, I
|
|
remember now, he _did_ die. Mortification set in, and they had to
|
|
amputate him. But it didn't save him. Yes, it was mortification--that
|
|
was it. He turned blue all over, and died in the hope of a glorious
|
|
resurrection. They say he was a sight to look at. Your uncle's been up
|
|
to the town every day to fetch you. And he's gone again, not more'n an
|
|
hour ago; he'll be back any minute now. You must a met him on the road,
|
|
didn't you?--oldish man, with a--”
|
|
|
|
“No, I didn't see nobody, Aunt Sally. The boat landed just at daylight,
|
|
and I left my baggage on the wharf-boat and went looking around the town
|
|
and out a piece in the country, to put in the time and not get here too
|
|
soon; and so I come down the back way.”
|
|
|
|
“Who'd you give the baggage to?”
|
|
|
|
“Nobody.”
|
|
|
|
“Why, child, it 'll be stole!”
|
|
|
|
“Not where I hid it I reckon it won't,” I says.
|
|
|
|
“How'd you get your breakfast so early on the boat?”
|
|
|
|
It was kinder thin ice, but I says:
|
|
|
|
“The captain see me standing around, and told me I better have something
|
|
to eat before I went ashore; so he took me in the texas to the officers'
|
|
lunch, and give me all I wanted.”
|
|
|
|
I was getting so uneasy I couldn't listen good. I had my mind on the
|
|
children all the time; I wanted to get them out to one side and pump
|
|
them a little, and find out who I was. But I couldn't get no show, Mrs.
|
|
Phelps kept it up and run on so. Pretty soon she made the cold chills
|
|
streak all down my back, because she says:
|
|
|
|
“But here we're a-running on this way, and you hain't told me a word
|
|
about Sis, nor any of them. Now I'll rest my works a little, and you
|
|
start up yourn; just tell me _everything_--tell me all about 'm all every
|
|
one of 'm; and how they are, and what they're doing, and what they told
|
|
you to tell me; and every last thing you can think of.”
|
|
|
|
Well, I see I was up a stump--and up it good. Providence had stood by
|
|
me this fur all right, but I was hard and tight aground now. I see it
|
|
warn't a bit of use to try to go ahead--I'd got to throw up my hand. So
|
|
I says to myself, here's another place where I got to resk the truth.
|
|
I opened my mouth to begin; but she grabbed me and hustled me in behind
|
|
the bed, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Here he comes! Stick your head down lower--there, that'll do; you can't
|
|
be seen now. Don't you let on you're here. I'll play a joke on him.
|
|
Children, don't you say a word.”
|
|
|
|
I see I was in a fix now. But it warn't no use to worry; there warn't
|
|
nothing to do but just hold still, and try and be ready to stand from
|
|
under when the lightning struck.
|
|
|
|
I had just one little glimpse of the old gentleman when he come in; then
|
|
the bed hid him. Mrs. Phelps she jumps for him, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Has he come?”
|
|
|
|
“No,” says her husband.
|
|
|
|
“Good-_ness_ gracious!” she says, “what in the warld can have become of
|
|
him?”
|
|
|
|
“I can't imagine,” says the old gentleman; “and I must say it makes me
|
|
dreadful uneasy.”
|
|
|
|
“Uneasy!” she says; “I'm ready to go distracted! He _must_ a come; and
|
|
you've missed him along the road. I _know_ it's so--something tells me
|
|
so.”
|
|
|
|
“Why, Sally, I _couldn't_ miss him along the road--_you_ know that.”
|
|
|
|
“But oh, dear, dear, what _will_ Sis say! He must a come! You must a
|
|
missed him. He--”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, don't distress me any more'n I'm already distressed. I don't know
|
|
what in the world to make of it. I'm at my wit's end, and I don't mind
|
|
acknowledging 't I'm right down scared. But there's no hope that he's
|
|
come; for he _couldn't_ come and me miss him. Sally, it's terrible--just
|
|
terrible--something's happened to the boat, sure!”
|
|
|
|
“Why, Silas! Look yonder!--up the road!--ain't that somebody coming?”
|
|
|
|
He sprung to the window at the head of the bed, and that give Mrs.
|
|
Phelps the chance she wanted. She stooped down quick at the foot of the
|
|
bed and give me a pull, and out I come; and when he turned back from the
|
|
window there she stood, a-beaming and a-smiling like a house afire, and
|
|
I standing pretty meek and sweaty alongside. The old gentleman stared,
|
|
and says:
|
|
|
|
“Why, who's that?”
|
|
|
|
“Who do you reckon 't is?”
|
|
|
|
“I hain't no idea. Who _is_ it?”
|
|
|
|
“It's _Tom Sawyer!_”
|
|
|
|
By jings, I most slumped through the floor! But there warn't no time to
|
|
swap knives; the old man grabbed me by the hand and shook, and kept on
|
|
shaking; and all the time how the woman did dance around and laugh and
|
|
cry; and then how they both did fire off questions about Sid, and Mary,
|
|
and the rest of the tribe.
|
|
|
|
But if they was joyful, it warn't nothing to what I was; for it was like
|
|
being born again, I was so glad to find out who I was. Well, they froze
|
|
to me for two hours; and at last, when my chin was so tired it couldn't
|
|
hardly go any more, I had told them more about my family--I mean the
|
|
Sawyer family--than ever happened to any six Sawyer families. And I
|
|
explained all about how we blowed out a cylinder-head at the mouth of
|
|
White River, and it took us three days to fix it. Which was all right,
|
|
and worked first-rate; because _they_ didn't know but what it would take
|
|
three days to fix it. If I'd a called it a bolthead it would a done
|
|
just as well.
|
|
|
|
Now I was feeling pretty comfortable all down one side, and pretty
|
|
uncomfortable all up the other. Being Tom Sawyer was easy and
|
|
comfortable, and it stayed easy and comfortable till by and by I hear a
|
|
steamboat coughing along down the river. Then I says to myself, s'pose
|
|
Tom Sawyer comes down on that boat? And s'pose he steps in here any
|
|
minute, and sings out my name before I can throw him a wink to keep
|
|
quiet?
|
|
|
|
Well, I couldn't _have_ it that way; it wouldn't do at all. I must go
|
|
up the road and waylay him. So I told the folks I reckoned I would go
|
|
up to the town and fetch down my baggage. The old gentleman was for
|
|
going along with me, but I said no, I could drive the horse myself, and
|
|
I druther he wouldn't take no trouble about me.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXIII.
|
|
|
|
SO I started for town in the wagon, and when I was half-way I see a
|
|
wagon coming, and sure enough it was Tom Sawyer, and I stopped and
|
|
waited till he come along. I says “Hold on!” and it stopped alongside,
|
|
and his mouth opened up like a trunk, and stayed so; and he swallowed
|
|
two or three times like a person that's got a dry throat, and then says:
|
|
|
|
“I hain't ever done you no harm. You know that. So, then, what you
|
|
want to come back and ha'nt _me_ for?”
|
|
|
|
I says:
|
|
|
|
“I hain't come back--I hain't been _gone_.”
|
|
|
|
When he heard my voice it righted him up some, but he warn't quite
|
|
satisfied yet. He says:
|
|
|
|
“Don't you play nothing on me, because I wouldn't on you. Honest injun
|
|
now, you ain't a ghost?”
|
|
|
|
“Honest injun, I ain't,” I says.
|
|
|
|
“Well--I--I--well, that ought to settle it, of course; but I can't somehow
|
|
seem to understand it no way. Looky here, warn't you ever murdered _at
|
|
all?_”
|
|
|
|
“No. I warn't ever murdered at all--I played it on them. You come in
|
|
here and feel of me if you don't believe me.”
|
|
|
|
So he done it; and it satisfied him; and he was that glad to see me
|
|
again he didn't know what to do. And he wanted to know all about it
|
|
right off, because it was a grand adventure, and mysterious, and so it
|
|
hit him where he lived. But I said, leave it alone till by and by; and
|
|
told his driver to wait, and we drove off a little piece, and I told
|
|
him the kind of a fix I was in, and what did he reckon we better do? He
|
|
said, let him alone a minute, and don't disturb him. So he thought and
|
|
thought, and pretty soon he says:
|
|
|
|
“It's all right; I've got it. Take my trunk in your wagon, and let on
|
|
it's your'n; and you turn back and fool along slow, so as to get to the
|
|
house about the time you ought to; and I'll go towards town a piece, and
|
|
take a fresh start, and get there a quarter or a half an hour after you;
|
|
and you needn't let on to know me at first.”
|
|
|
|
I says:
|
|
|
|
“All right; but wait a minute. There's one more thing--a thing that
|
|
_nobody_ don't know but me. And that is, there's a nigger here that
|
|
I'm a-trying to steal out of slavery, and his name is _Jim_--old Miss
|
|
Watson's Jim.”
|
|
|
|
He says:
|
|
|
|
“What! Why, Jim is--”
|
|
|
|
He stopped and went to studying. I says:
|
|
|
|
“I know what you'll say. You'll say it's dirty, low-down business; but
|
|
what if it is? I'm low down; and I'm a-going to steal him, and I want
|
|
you keep mum and not let on. Will you?”
|
|
|
|
His eye lit up, and he says:
|
|
|
|
“I'll _help_ you steal him!”
|
|
|
|
Well, I let go all holts then, like I was shot. It was the most
|
|
astonishing speech I ever heard--and I'm bound to say Tom Sawyer fell
|
|
considerable in my estimation. Only I couldn't believe it. Tom Sawyer
|
|
a _nigger-stealer!_
|
|
|
|
“Oh, shucks!” I says; “you're joking.”
|
|
|
|
“I ain't joking, either.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, then,” I says, “joking or no joking, if you hear anything said
|
|
about a runaway nigger, don't forget to remember that _you_ don't know
|
|
nothing about him, and I don't know nothing about him.”
|
|
|
|
Then we took the trunk and put it in my wagon, and he drove off his
|
|
way and I drove mine. But of course I forgot all about driving slow on
|
|
accounts of being glad and full of thinking; so I got home a heap too
|
|
quick for that length of a trip. The old gentleman was at the door, and
|
|
he says:
|
|
|
|
“Why, this is wonderful! Whoever would a thought it was in that mare
|
|
to do it? I wish we'd a timed her. And she hain't sweated a hair--not
|
|
a hair. It's wonderful. Why, I wouldn't take a hundred dollars for that
|
|
horse now--I wouldn't, honest; and yet I'd a sold her for fifteen before,
|
|
and thought 'twas all she was worth.”
|
|
|
|
That's all he said. He was the innocentest, best old soul I ever see.
|
|
But it warn't surprising; because he warn't only just a farmer, he was
|
|
a preacher, too, and had a little one-horse log church down back of the
|
|
plantation, which he built it himself at his own expense, for a church
|
|
and schoolhouse, and never charged nothing for his preaching, and it was
|
|
worth it, too. There was plenty other farmer-preachers like that, and
|
|
done the same way, down South.
|
|
|
|
In about half an hour Tom's wagon drove up to the front stile, and Aunt
|
|
Sally she see it through the window, because it was only about fifty
|
|
yards, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Why, there's somebody come! I wonder who 'tis? Why, I do believe it's
|
|
a stranger. Jimmy” (that's one of the children) “run and tell Lize to
|
|
put on another plate for dinner.”
|
|
|
|
Everybody made a rush for the front door, because, of course, a stranger
|
|
don't come _every_ year, and so he lays over the yaller-fever, for
|
|
interest, when he does come. Tom was over the stile and starting for
|
|
the house; the wagon was spinning up the road for the village, and we
|
|
was all bunched in the front door. Tom had his store clothes on, and an
|
|
audience--and that was always nuts for Tom Sawyer. In them circumstances
|
|
it warn't no trouble to him to throw in an amount of style that was
|
|
suitable. He warn't a boy to meeky along up that yard like a sheep; no,
|
|
he come ca'm and important, like the ram. When he got a-front of us he
|
|
lifts his hat ever so gracious and dainty, like it was the lid of a box
|
|
that had butterflies asleep in it and he didn't want to disturb them,
|
|
and says:
|
|
|
|
“Mr. Archibald Nichols, I presume?”
|
|
|
|
“No, my boy,” says the old gentleman, “I'm sorry to say 't your driver
|
|
has deceived you; Nichols's place is down a matter of three mile more.
|
|
Come in, come in.”
|
|
|
|
Tom he took a look back over his shoulder, and says, “Too late--he's out
|
|
of sight.”
|
|
|
|
“Yes, he's gone, my son, and you must come in and eat your dinner with
|
|
us; and then we'll hitch up and take you down to Nichols's.”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, I _can't_ make you so much trouble; I couldn't think of it. I'll
|
|
walk--I don't mind the distance.”
|
|
|
|
“But we won't _let_ you walk--it wouldn't be Southern hospitality to do
|
|
it. Come right in.”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, _do_,” says Aunt Sally; “it ain't a bit of trouble to us, not a
|
|
bit in the world. You must stay. It's a long, dusty three mile, and
|
|
we can't let you walk. And, besides, I've already told 'em to put on
|
|
another plate when I see you coming; so you mustn't disappoint us. Come
|
|
right in and make yourself at home.”
|
|
|
|
So Tom he thanked them very hearty and handsome, and let himself be
|
|
persuaded, and come in; and when he was in he said he was a stranger
|
|
from Hicksville, Ohio, and his name was William Thompson--and he made
|
|
another bow.
|
|
|
|
Well, he run on, and on, and on, making up stuff about Hicksville and
|
|
everybody in it he could invent, and I getting a little nervious, and
|
|
wondering how this was going to help me out of my scrape; and at last,
|
|
still talking along, he reached over and kissed Aunt Sally right on the
|
|
mouth, and then settled back again in his chair comfortable, and was
|
|
going on talking; but she jumped up and wiped it off with the back of
|
|
her hand, and says:
|
|
|
|
“You owdacious puppy!”
|
|
|
|
He looked kind of hurt, and says:
|
|
|
|
“I'm surprised at you, m'am.”
|
|
|
|
“You're s'rp--Why, what do you reckon I am? I've a good notion to take
|
|
and--Say, what do you mean by kissing me?”
|
|
|
|
He looked kind of humble, and says:
|
|
|
|
“I didn't mean nothing, m'am. I didn't mean no harm. I--I--thought you'd
|
|
like it.”
|
|
|
|
“Why, you born fool!” She took up the spinning stick, and it looked
|
|
like it was all she could do to keep from giving him a crack with it.
|
|
“What made you think I'd like it?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, I don't know. Only, they--they--told me you would.”
|
|
|
|
“_They_ told you I would. Whoever told you's _another_ lunatic. I
|
|
never heard the beat of it. Who's _they_?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, everybody. They all said so, m'am.”
|
|
|
|
It was all she could do to hold in; and her eyes snapped, and her
|
|
fingers worked like she wanted to scratch him; and she says:
|
|
|
|
“Who's 'everybody'? Out with their names, or ther'll be an idiot
|
|
short.”
|
|
|
|
He got up and looked distressed, and fumbled his hat, and says:
|
|
|
|
“I'm sorry, and I warn't expecting it. They told me to. They all told
|
|
me to. They all said, kiss her; and said she'd like it. They all said
|
|
it--every one of them. But I'm sorry, m'am, and I won't do it no more--I
|
|
won't, honest.”
|
|
|
|
“You won't, won't you? Well, I sh'd _reckon_ you won't!”
|
|
|
|
“No'm, I'm honest about it; I won't ever do it again--till you ask me.”
|
|
|
|
“Till I _ask_ you! Well, I never see the beat of it in my born days!
|
|
I lay you'll be the Methusalem-numskull of creation before ever I ask
|
|
you--or the likes of you.”
|
|
|
|
“Well,” he says, “it does surprise me so. I can't make it out, somehow.
|
|
They said you would, and I thought you would. But--” He stopped and
|
|
looked around slow, like he wished he could run across a friendly eye
|
|
somewheres, and fetched up on the old gentleman's, and says, “Didn't
|
|
_you_ think she'd like me to kiss her, sir?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, no; I--I--well, no, I b'lieve I didn't.”
|
|
|
|
Then he looks on around the same way to me, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Tom, didn't _you_ think Aunt Sally 'd open out her arms and say, 'Sid
|
|
Sawyer--'”
|
|
|
|
“My land!” she says, breaking in and jumping for him, “you impudent
|
|
young rascal, to fool a body so--” and was going to hug him, but he
|
|
fended her off, and says:
|
|
|
|
“No, not till you've asked me first.”
|
|
|
|
So she didn't lose no time, but asked him; and hugged him and kissed
|
|
him over and over again, and then turned him over to the old man, and he
|
|
took what was left. And after they got a little quiet again she says:
|
|
|
|
“Why, dear me, I never see such a surprise. We warn't looking for _you_
|
|
at all, but only Tom. Sis never wrote to me about anybody coming but
|
|
him.”
|
|
|
|
“It's because it warn't _intended_ for any of us to come but Tom,” he
|
|
says; “but I begged and begged, and at the last minute she let me
|
|
come, too; so, coming down the river, me and Tom thought it would be a
|
|
first-rate surprise for him to come here to the house first, and for me
|
|
to by and by tag along and drop in, and let on to be a stranger. But it
|
|
was a mistake, Aunt Sally. This ain't no healthy place for a stranger
|
|
to come.”
|
|
|
|
“No--not impudent whelps, Sid. You ought to had your jaws boxed; I
|
|
hain't been so put out since I don't know when. But I don't care, I
|
|
don't mind the terms--I'd be willing to stand a thousand such jokes to
|
|
have you here. Well, to think of that performance! I don't deny it, I
|
|
was most putrified with astonishment when you give me that smack.”
|
|
|
|
We had dinner out in that broad open passage betwixt the house and
|
|
the kitchen; and there was things enough on that table for seven
|
|
families--and all hot, too; none of your flabby, tough meat that's laid
|
|
in a cupboard in a damp cellar all night and tastes like a hunk of
|
|
old cold cannibal in the morning. Uncle Silas he asked a pretty long
|
|
blessing over it, but it was worth it; and it didn't cool it a bit,
|
|
neither, the way I've seen them kind of interruptions do lots of times.
|
|
There was a considerable good deal of talk all the afternoon, and me
|
|
and Tom was on the lookout all the time; but it warn't no use, they
|
|
didn't happen to say nothing about any runaway nigger, and we was afraid
|
|
to try to work up to it. But at supper, at night, one of the little
|
|
boys says:
|
|
|
|
“Pa, mayn't Tom and Sid and me go to the show?”
|
|
|
|
“No,” says the old man, “I reckon there ain't going to be any; and you
|
|
couldn't go if there was; because the runaway nigger told Burton and
|
|
me all about that scandalous show, and Burton said he would tell the
|
|
people; so I reckon they've drove the owdacious loafers out of town
|
|
before this time.”
|
|
|
|
So there it was!--but I couldn't help it. Tom and me was to sleep in the
|
|
same room and bed; so, being tired, we bid good-night and went up to
|
|
bed right after supper, and clumb out of the window and down the
|
|
lightning-rod, and shoved for the town; for I didn't believe anybody was
|
|
going to give the king and the duke a hint, and so if I didn't hurry up
|
|
and give them one they'd get into trouble sure.
|
|
|
|
On the road Tom he told me all about how it was reckoned I was murdered,
|
|
and how pap disappeared pretty soon, and didn't come back no more, and
|
|
what a stir there was when Jim run away; and I told Tom all about our
|
|
Royal Nonesuch rapscallions, and as much of the raft voyage as I had
|
|
time to; and as we struck into the town and up through the the middle of
|
|
it--it was as much as half-after eight, then--here comes a raging rush of
|
|
people with torches, and an awful whooping and yelling, and banging tin
|
|
pans and blowing horns; and we jumped to one side to let them go by;
|
|
and as they went by I see they had the king and the duke astraddle of a
|
|
rail--that is, I knowed it _was_ the king and the duke, though they was
|
|
all over tar and feathers, and didn't look like nothing in the
|
|
world that was human--just looked like a couple of monstrous big
|
|
soldier-plumes. Well, it made me sick to see it; and I was sorry for
|
|
them poor pitiful rascals, it seemed like I couldn't ever feel any
|
|
hardness against them any more in the world. It was a dreadful thing to
|
|
see. Human beings _can_ be awful cruel to one another.
|
|
|
|
We see we was too late--couldn't do no good. We asked some stragglers
|
|
about it, and they said everybody went to the show looking very
|
|
innocent; and laid low and kept dark till the poor old king was in the
|
|
middle of his cavortings on the stage; then somebody give a signal, and
|
|
the house rose up and went for them.
|
|
|
|
So we poked along back home, and I warn't feeling so brash as I was
|
|
before, but kind of ornery, and humble, and to blame, somehow--though
|
|
I hadn't done nothing. But that's always the way; it don't make no
|
|
difference whether you do right or wrong, a person's conscience ain't
|
|
got no sense, and just goes for him anyway. If I had a yaller dog that
|
|
didn't know no more than a person's conscience does I would pison him.
|
|
It takes up more room than all the rest of a person's insides, and yet
|
|
ain't no good, nohow. Tom Sawyer he says the same.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXIV.
|
|
|
|
WE stopped talking, and got to thinking. By and by Tom says:
|
|
|
|
“Looky here, Huck, what fools we are to not think of it before! I bet I
|
|
know where Jim is.”
|
|
|
|
“No! Where?”
|
|
|
|
“In that hut down by the ash-hopper. Why, looky here. When we was at
|
|
dinner, didn't you see a nigger man go in there with some vittles?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes.”
|
|
|
|
“What did you think the vittles was for?”
|
|
|
|
“For a dog.”
|
|
|
|
“So 'd I. Well, it wasn't for a dog.”
|
|
|
|
“Why?”
|
|
|
|
“Because part of it was watermelon.”
|
|
|
|
“So it was--I noticed it. Well, it does beat all that I never thought
|
|
about a dog not eating watermelon. It shows how a body can see and
|
|
don't see at the same time.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, the nigger unlocked the padlock when he went in, and he locked it
|
|
again when he came out. He fetched uncle a key about the time we got up
|
|
from table--same key, I bet. Watermelon shows man, lock shows prisoner;
|
|
and it ain't likely there's two prisoners on such a little plantation,
|
|
and where the people's all so kind and good. Jim's the prisoner. All
|
|
right--I'm glad we found it out detective fashion; I wouldn't give shucks
|
|
for any other way. Now you work your mind, and study out a plan to
|
|
steal Jim, and I will study out one, too; and we'll take the one we like
|
|
the best.”
|
|
|
|
What a head for just a boy to have! If I had Tom Sawyer's head I
|
|
wouldn't trade it off to be a duke, nor mate of a steamboat, nor clown
|
|
in a circus, nor nothing I can think of. I went to thinking out a plan,
|
|
but only just to be doing something; I knowed very well where the right
|
|
plan was going to come from. Pretty soon Tom says:
|
|
|
|
“Ready?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes,” I says.
|
|
|
|
“All right--bring it out.”
|
|
|
|
“My plan is this,” I says. “We can easy find out if it's Jim in there.
|
|
Then get up my canoe to-morrow night, and fetch my raft over from the
|
|
island. Then the first dark night that comes steal the key out of the
|
|
old man's britches after he goes to bed, and shove off down the river
|
|
on the raft with Jim, hiding daytimes and running nights, the way me and
|
|
Jim used to do before. Wouldn't that plan work?”
|
|
|
|
“_Work_? Why, cert'nly it would work, like rats a-fighting. But it's
|
|
too blame' simple; there ain't nothing _to_ it. What's the good of a
|
|
plan that ain't no more trouble than that? It's as mild as goose-milk.
|
|
Why, Huck, it wouldn't make no more talk than breaking into a soap
|
|
factory.”
|
|
|
|
I never said nothing, because I warn't expecting nothing different; but
|
|
I knowed mighty well that whenever he got _his_ plan ready it wouldn't
|
|
have none of them objections to it.
|
|
|
|
And it didn't. He told me what it was, and I see in a minute it was
|
|
worth fifteen of mine for style, and would make Jim just as free a man
|
|
as mine would, and maybe get us all killed besides. So I was satisfied,
|
|
and said we would waltz in on it. I needn't tell what it was here,
|
|
because I knowed it wouldn't stay the way, it was. I knowed he would be
|
|
changing it around every which way as we went along, and heaving in new
|
|
bullinesses wherever he got a chance. And that is what he done.
|
|
|
|
Well, one thing was dead sure, and that was that Tom Sawyer was in
|
|
earnest, and was actuly going to help steal that nigger out of slavery.
|
|
That was the thing that was too many for me. Here was a boy that was
|
|
respectable and well brung up; and had a character to lose; and folks at
|
|
home that had characters; and he was bright and not leather-headed; and
|
|
knowing and not ignorant; and not mean, but kind; and yet here he was,
|
|
without any more pride, or rightness, or feeling, than to stoop to
|
|
this business, and make himself a shame, and his family a shame,
|
|
before everybody. I _couldn't_ understand it no way at all. It was
|
|
outrageous, and I knowed I ought to just up and tell him so; and so be
|
|
his true friend, and let him quit the thing right where he was and save
|
|
himself. And I _did_ start to tell him; but he shut me up, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Don't you reckon I know what I'm about? Don't I generly know what I'm
|
|
about?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes.”
|
|
|
|
“Didn't I _say_ I was going to help steal the nigger?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes.”
|
|
|
|
“_Well_, then.”
|
|
|
|
That's all he said, and that's all I said. It warn't no use to say any
|
|
more; because when he said he'd do a thing, he always done it. But I
|
|
couldn't make out how he was willing to go into this thing; so I just
|
|
let it go, and never bothered no more about it. If he was bound to have
|
|
it so, I couldn't help it.
|
|
|
|
When we got home the house was all dark and still; so we went on down to
|
|
the hut by the ash-hopper for to examine it. We went through the yard
|
|
so as to see what the hounds would do. They knowed us, and didn't make
|
|
no more noise than country dogs is always doing when anything comes by
|
|
in the night. When we got to the cabin we took a look at the front and
|
|
the two sides; and on the side I warn't acquainted with--which was the
|
|
north side--we found a square window-hole, up tolerable high, with just
|
|
one stout board nailed across it. I says:
|
|
|
|
“Here's the ticket. This hole's big enough for Jim to get through if we
|
|
wrench off the board.”
|
|
|
|
Tom says:
|
|
|
|
“It's as simple as tit-tat-toe, three-in-a-row, and as easy as
|
|
playing hooky. I should _hope_ we can find a way that's a little more
|
|
complicated than _that_, Huck Finn.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, then,” I says, “how 'll it do to saw him out, the way I done
|
|
before I was murdered that time?”
|
|
|
|
“That's more _like_,” he says. “It's real mysterious, and troublesome,
|
|
and good,” he says; “but I bet we can find a way that's twice as long.
|
|
There ain't no hurry; le's keep on looking around.”
|
|
|
|
Betwixt the hut and the fence, on the back side, was a lean-to that
|
|
joined the hut at the eaves, and was made out of plank. It was as long
|
|
as the hut, but narrow--only about six foot wide. The door to it was at
|
|
the south end, and was padlocked. Tom he went to the soap-kettle and
|
|
searched around, and fetched back the iron thing they lift the lid with;
|
|
so he took it and prized out one of the staples. The chain fell down,
|
|
and we opened the door and went in, and shut it, and struck a match,
|
|
and see the shed was only built against a cabin and hadn't no connection
|
|
with it; and there warn't no floor to the shed, nor nothing in it but
|
|
some old rusty played-out hoes and spades and picks and a crippled plow.
|
|
The match went out, and so did we, and shoved in the staple again, and
|
|
the door was locked as good as ever. Tom was joyful. He says;
|
|
|
|
“Now we're all right. We'll _dig_ him out. It 'll take about a week!”
|
|
|
|
Then we started for the house, and I went in the back door--you only have
|
|
to pull a buckskin latch-string, they don't fasten the doors--but that
|
|
warn't romantical enough for Tom Sawyer; no way would do him but he must
|
|
climb up the lightning-rod. But after he got up half way about three
|
|
times, and missed fire and fell every time, and the last time most
|
|
busted his brains out, he thought he'd got to give it up; but after he
|
|
was rested he allowed he would give her one more turn for luck, and this
|
|
time he made the trip.
|
|
|
|
In the morning we was up at break of day, and down to the nigger cabins
|
|
to pet the dogs and make friends with the nigger that fed Jim--if it
|
|
_was_ Jim that was being fed. The niggers was just getting through
|
|
breakfast and starting for the fields; and Jim's nigger was piling up
|
|
a tin pan with bread and meat and things; and whilst the others was
|
|
leaving, the key come from the house.
|
|
|
|
This nigger had a good-natured, chuckle-headed face, and his wool was
|
|
all tied up in little bunches with thread. That was to keep witches
|
|
off. He said the witches was pestering him awful these nights, and
|
|
making him see all kinds of strange things, and hear all kinds of
|
|
strange words and noises, and he didn't believe he was ever witched so
|
|
long before in his life. He got so worked up, and got to running on so
|
|
about his troubles, he forgot all about what he'd been a-going to do.
|
|
So Tom says:
|
|
|
|
“What's the vittles for? Going to feed the dogs?”
|
|
|
|
The nigger kind of smiled around gradually over his face, like when you
|
|
heave a brickbat in a mud-puddle, and he says:
|
|
|
|
“Yes, Mars Sid, A dog. Cur'us dog, too. Does you want to go en look at
|
|
'im?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes.”
|
|
|
|
I hunched Tom, and whispers:
|
|
|
|
“You going, right here in the daybreak? _that_ warn't the plan.”
|
|
|
|
“No, it warn't; but it's the plan _now_.”
|
|
|
|
So, drat him, we went along, but I didn't like it much. When we got in
|
|
we couldn't hardly see anything, it was so dark; but Jim was there, sure
|
|
enough, and could see us; and he sings out:
|
|
|
|
“Why, _Huck_! En good _lan_'! ain' dat Misto Tom?”
|
|
|
|
I just knowed how it would be; I just expected it. I didn't know
|
|
nothing to do; and if I had I couldn't a done it, because that nigger
|
|
busted in and says:
|
|
|
|
“Why, de gracious sakes! do he know you genlmen?”
|
|
|
|
We could see pretty well now. Tom he looked at the nigger, steady and
|
|
kind of wondering, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Does _who_ know us?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, dis-yer runaway nigger.”
|
|
|
|
“I don't reckon he does; but what put that into your head?”
|
|
|
|
“What _put_ it dar? Didn' he jis' dis minute sing out like he knowed
|
|
you?”
|
|
|
|
Tom says, in a puzzled-up kind of way:
|
|
|
|
“Well, that's mighty curious. _Who_ sung out? _when_ did he sing out?
|
|
_what_ did he sing out?” And turns to me, perfectly ca'm, and says,
|
|
“Did _you_ hear anybody sing out?”
|
|
|
|
Of course there warn't nothing to be said but the one thing; so I says:
|
|
|
|
“No; I ain't heard nobody say nothing.”
|
|
|
|
Then he turns to Jim, and looks him over like he never see him before,
|
|
and says:
|
|
|
|
“Did you sing out?”
|
|
|
|
“No, sah,” says Jim; “I hain't said nothing, sah.”
|
|
|
|
“Not a word?”
|
|
|
|
“No, sah, I hain't said a word.”
|
|
|
|
“Did you ever see us before?”
|
|
|
|
“No, sah; not as I knows on.”
|
|
|
|
So Tom turns to the nigger, which was looking wild and distressed, and
|
|
says, kind of severe:
|
|
|
|
“What do you reckon's the matter with you, anyway? What made you think
|
|
somebody sung out?”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, it's de dad-blame' witches, sah, en I wisht I was dead, I do.
|
|
Dey's awluz at it, sah, en dey do mos' kill me, dey sk'yers me so.
|
|
Please to don't tell nobody 'bout it sah, er ole Mars Silas he'll scole
|
|
me; 'kase he say dey _ain't_ no witches. I jis' wish to goodness he was
|
|
heah now--_den_ what would he say! I jis' bet he couldn' fine no way to
|
|
git aroun' it _dis_ time. But it's awluz jis' so; people dat's _sot_,
|
|
stays sot; dey won't look into noth'n'en fine it out f'r deyselves, en
|
|
when _you_ fine it out en tell um 'bout it, dey doan' b'lieve you.”
|
|
|
|
Tom give him a dime, and said we wouldn't tell nobody; and told him to
|
|
buy some more thread to tie up his wool with; and then looks at Jim, and
|
|
says:
|
|
|
|
“I wonder if Uncle Silas is going to hang this nigger. If I was to
|
|
catch a nigger that was ungrateful enough to run away, I wouldn't give
|
|
him up, I'd hang him.” And whilst the nigger stepped to the door to
|
|
look at the dime and bite it to see if it was good, he whispers to Jim
|
|
and says:
|
|
|
|
“Don't ever let on to know us. And if you hear any digging going on
|
|
nights, it's us; we're going to set you free.”
|
|
|
|
Jim only had time to grab us by the hand and squeeze it; then the nigger
|
|
come back, and we said we'd come again some time if the nigger wanted
|
|
us to; and he said he would, more particular if it was dark, because the
|
|
witches went for him mostly in the dark, and it was good to have folks
|
|
around then.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXV.
|
|
|
|
IT would be most an hour yet till breakfast, so we left and struck down
|
|
into the woods; because Tom said we got to have _some_ light to see how
|
|
to dig by, and a lantern makes too much, and might get us into trouble;
|
|
what we must have was a lot of them rotten chunks that's called
|
|
fox-fire, and just makes a soft kind of a glow when you lay them in a
|
|
dark place. We fetched an armful and hid it in the weeds, and set down
|
|
to rest, and Tom says, kind of dissatisfied:
|
|
|
|
“Blame it, this whole thing is just as easy and awkward as it can be.
|
|
And so it makes it so rotten difficult to get up a difficult plan.
|
|
There ain't no watchman to be drugged--now there _ought_ to be a
|
|
watchman. There ain't even a dog to give a sleeping-mixture to. And
|
|
there's Jim chained by one leg, with a ten-foot chain, to the leg of his
|
|
bed: why, all you got to do is to lift up the bedstead and slip off
|
|
the chain. And Uncle Silas he trusts everybody; sends the key to the
|
|
punkin-headed nigger, and don't send nobody to watch the nigger. Jim
|
|
could a got out of that window-hole before this, only there wouldn't be
|
|
no use trying to travel with a ten-foot chain on his leg. Why, drat it,
|
|
Huck, it's the stupidest arrangement I ever see. You got to invent _all_
|
|
the difficulties. Well, we can't help it; we got to do the best we can
|
|
with the materials we've got. Anyhow, there's one thing--there's more
|
|
honor in getting him out through a lot of difficulties and dangers,
|
|
where there warn't one of them furnished to you by the people who it was
|
|
their duty to furnish them, and you had to contrive them all out of your
|
|
own head. Now look at just that one thing of the lantern. When you
|
|
come down to the cold facts, we simply got to _let on_ that a lantern's
|
|
resky. Why, we could work with a torchlight procession if we wanted to,
|
|
I believe. Now, whilst I think of it, we got to hunt up something to
|
|
make a saw out of the first chance we get.”
|
|
|
|
“What do we want of a saw?”
|
|
|
|
“What do we _want_ of it? Hain't we got to saw the leg of Jim's bed
|
|
off, so as to get the chain loose?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, you just said a body could lift up the bedstead and slip the chain
|
|
off.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, if that ain't just like you, Huck Finn. You _can_ get up the
|
|
infant-schooliest ways of going at a thing. Why, hain't you ever read
|
|
any books at all?--Baron Trenck, nor Casanova, nor Benvenuto Chelleeny,
|
|
nor Henri IV., nor none of them heroes? Who ever heard of getting a
|
|
prisoner loose in such an old-maidy way as that? No; the way all the
|
|
best authorities does is to saw the bed-leg in two, and leave it just
|
|
so, and swallow the sawdust, so it can't be found, and put some dirt and
|
|
grease around the sawed place so the very keenest seneskal can't see
|
|
no sign of it's being sawed, and thinks the bed-leg is perfectly sound.
|
|
Then, the night you're ready, fetch the leg a kick, down she goes; slip
|
|
off your chain, and there you are. Nothing to do but hitch your
|
|
rope ladder to the battlements, shin down it, break your leg in the
|
|
moat--because a rope ladder is nineteen foot too short, you know--and
|
|
there's your horses and your trusty vassles, and they scoop you up and
|
|
fling you across a saddle, and away you go to your native Langudoc, or
|
|
Navarre, or wherever it is. It's gaudy, Huck. I wish there was a moat
|
|
to this cabin. If we get time, the night of the escape, we'll dig one.”
|
|
|
|
I says:
|
|
|
|
“What do we want of a moat when we're going to snake him out from under
|
|
the cabin?”
|
|
|
|
But he never heard me. He had forgot me and everything else. He had
|
|
his chin in his hand, thinking. Pretty soon he sighs and shakes his
|
|
head; then sighs again, and says:
|
|
|
|
“No, it wouldn't do--there ain't necessity enough for it.”
|
|
|
|
“For what?” I says.
|
|
|
|
“Why, to saw Jim's leg off,” he says.
|
|
|
|
“Good land!” I says; “why, there ain't _no_ necessity for it. And what
|
|
would you want to saw his leg off for, anyway?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, some of the best authorities has done it. They couldn't get the
|
|
chain off, so they just cut their hand off and shoved. And a leg would
|
|
be better still. But we got to let that go. There ain't necessity
|
|
enough in this case; and, besides, Jim's a nigger, and wouldn't
|
|
understand the reasons for it, and how it's the custom in Europe; so
|
|
we'll let it go. But there's one thing--he can have a rope ladder; we
|
|
can tear up our sheets and make him a rope ladder easy enough. And we
|
|
can send it to him in a pie; it's mostly done that way. And I've et
|
|
worse pies.”
|
|
|
|
“Why, Tom Sawyer, how you talk,” I says; “Jim ain't got no use for a
|
|
rope ladder.”
|
|
|
|
“He _has_ got use for it. How _you_ talk, you better say; you don't
|
|
know nothing about it. He's _got_ to have a rope ladder; they all do.”
|
|
|
|
“What in the nation can he _do_ with it?”
|
|
|
|
“_Do_ with it? He can hide it in his bed, can't he?” That's what they
|
|
all do; and _he's_ got to, too. Huck, you don't ever seem to want to do
|
|
anything that's regular; you want to be starting something fresh all the
|
|
time. S'pose he _don't_ do nothing with it? ain't it there in his bed,
|
|
for a clew, after he's gone? and don't you reckon they'll want clews?
|
|
Of course they will. And you wouldn't leave them any? That would be a
|
|
_pretty_ howdy-do, _wouldn't_ it! I never heard of such a thing.”
|
|
|
|
“Well,” I says, “if it's in the regulations, and he's got to have
|
|
it, all right, let him have it; because I don't wish to go back on no
|
|
regulations; but there's one thing, Tom Sawyer--if we go to tearing up
|
|
our sheets to make Jim a rope ladder, we're going to get into trouble
|
|
with Aunt Sally, just as sure as you're born. Now, the way I look at
|
|
it, a hickry-bark ladder don't cost nothing, and don't waste nothing,
|
|
and is just as good to load up a pie with, and hide in a straw tick,
|
|
as any rag ladder you can start; and as for Jim, he ain't had no
|
|
experience, and so he don't care what kind of a--”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, shucks, Huck Finn, if I was as ignorant as you I'd keep
|
|
still--that's what I'D do. Who ever heard of a state prisoner escaping
|
|
by a hickry-bark ladder? Why, it's perfectly ridiculous.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, all right, Tom, fix it your own way; but if you'll take my
|
|
advice, you'll let me borrow a sheet off of the clothesline.”
|
|
|
|
He said that would do. And that gave him another idea, and he says:
|
|
|
|
“Borrow a shirt, too.”
|
|
|
|
“What do we want of a shirt, Tom?”
|
|
|
|
“Want it for Jim to keep a journal on.”
|
|
|
|
“Journal your granny--_Jim_ can't write.”
|
|
|
|
“S'pose he _can't_ write--he can make marks on the shirt, can't he, if
|
|
we make him a pen out of an old pewter spoon or a piece of an old iron
|
|
barrel-hoop?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, Tom, we can pull a feather out of a goose and make him a better
|
|
one; and quicker, too.”
|
|
|
|
“_Prisoners_ don't have geese running around the donjon-keep to pull
|
|
pens out of, you muggins. They _always_ make their pens out of the
|
|
hardest, toughest, troublesomest piece of old brass candlestick or
|
|
something like that they can get their hands on; and it takes them weeks
|
|
and weeks and months and months to file it out, too, because they've got
|
|
to do it by rubbing it on the wall. _They_ wouldn't use a goose-quill
|
|
if they had it. It ain't regular.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, then, what'll we make him the ink out of?”
|
|
|
|
“Many makes it out of iron-rust and tears; but that's the common sort
|
|
and women; the best authorities uses their own blood. Jim can do that;
|
|
and when he wants to send any little common ordinary mysterious message
|
|
to let the world know where he's captivated, he can write it on the
|
|
bottom of a tin plate with a fork and throw it out of the window. The
|
|
Iron Mask always done that, and it's a blame' good way, too.”
|
|
|
|
“Jim ain't got no tin plates. They feed him in a pan.”
|
|
|
|
“That ain't nothing; we can get him some.”
|
|
|
|
“Can't nobody _read_ his plates.”
|
|
|
|
“That ain't got anything to _do_ with it, Huck Finn. All _he's_ got to
|
|
do is to write on the plate and throw it out. You don't _have_ to be
|
|
able to read it. Why, half the time you can't read anything a prisoner
|
|
writes on a tin plate, or anywhere else.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, then, what's the sense in wasting the plates?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, blame it all, it ain't the _prisoner's_ plates.”
|
|
|
|
“But it's _somebody's_ plates, ain't it?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, spos'n it is? What does the _prisoner_ care whose--”
|
|
|
|
He broke off there, because we heard the breakfast-horn blowing. So we
|
|
cleared out for the house.
|
|
|
|
Along during the morning I borrowed a sheet and a white shirt off of the
|
|
clothes-line; and I found an old sack and put them in it, and we went
|
|
down and got the fox-fire, and put that in too. I called it borrowing,
|
|
because that was what pap always called it; but Tom said it warn't
|
|
borrowing, it was stealing. He said we was representing prisoners; and
|
|
prisoners don't care how they get a thing so they get it, and nobody
|
|
don't blame them for it, either. It ain't no crime in a prisoner to
|
|
steal the thing he needs to get away with, Tom said; it's his right; and
|
|
so, as long as we was representing a prisoner, we had a perfect right to
|
|
steal anything on this place we had the least use for to get ourselves
|
|
out of prison with. He said if we warn't prisoners it would be a very
|
|
different thing, and nobody but a mean, ornery person would steal when
|
|
he warn't a prisoner. So we allowed we would steal everything there was
|
|
that come handy. And yet he made a mighty fuss, one day, after that,
|
|
when I stole a watermelon out of the nigger-patch and eat it; and he
|
|
made me go and give the niggers a dime without telling them what it
|
|
was for. Tom said that what he meant was, we could steal anything we
|
|
_needed_. Well, I says, I needed the watermelon. But he said I didn't
|
|
need it to get out of prison with; there's where the difference was.
|
|
He said if I'd a wanted it to hide a knife in, and smuggle it to Jim
|
|
to kill the seneskal with, it would a been all right. So I let it go at
|
|
that, though I couldn't see no advantage in my representing a prisoner
|
|
if I got to set down and chaw over a lot of gold-leaf distinctions like
|
|
that every time I see a chance to hog a watermelon.
|
|
|
|
Well, as I was saying, we waited that morning till everybody was settled
|
|
down to business, and nobody in sight around the yard; then Tom he
|
|
carried the sack into the lean-to whilst I stood off a piece to keep
|
|
watch. By and by he come out, and we went and set down on the woodpile
|
|
to talk. He says:
|
|
|
|
“Everything's all right now except tools; and that's easy fixed.”
|
|
|
|
“Tools?” I says.
|
|
|
|
“Yes.”
|
|
|
|
“Tools for what?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, to dig with. We ain't a-going to _gnaw_ him out, are we?”
|
|
|
|
“Ain't them old crippled picks and things in there good enough to dig a
|
|
nigger out with?” I says.
|
|
|
|
He turns on me, looking pitying enough to make a body cry, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Huck Finn, did you _ever_ hear of a prisoner having picks and shovels,
|
|
and all the modern conveniences in his wardrobe to dig himself out with?
|
|
Now I want to ask you--if you got any reasonableness in you at all--what
|
|
kind of a show would _that_ give him to be a hero? Why, they might as
|
|
well lend him the key and done with it. Picks and shovels--why, they
|
|
wouldn't furnish 'em to a king.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, then,” I says, “if we don't want the picks and shovels, what do
|
|
we want?”
|
|
|
|
“A couple of case-knives.”
|
|
|
|
“To dig the foundations out from under that cabin with?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes.”
|
|
|
|
“Confound it, it's foolish, Tom.”
|
|
|
|
“It don't make no difference how foolish it is, it's the _right_ way--and
|
|
it's the regular way. And there ain't no _other_ way, that ever I heard
|
|
of, and I've read all the books that gives any information about these
|
|
things. They always dig out with a case-knife--and not through dirt, mind
|
|
you; generly it's through solid rock. And it takes them weeks and weeks
|
|
and weeks, and for ever and ever. Why, look at one of them prisoners in
|
|
the bottom dungeon of the Castle Deef, in the harbor of Marseilles, that
|
|
dug himself out that way; how long was _he_ at it, you reckon?”
|
|
|
|
“I don't know.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, guess.”
|
|
|
|
“I don't know. A month and a half.”
|
|
|
|
“_Thirty-seven year_--and he come out in China. _That's_ the kind. I
|
|
wish the bottom of _this_ fortress was solid rock.”
|
|
|
|
“_Jim_ don't know nobody in China.”
|
|
|
|
“What's _that_ got to do with it? Neither did that other fellow. But
|
|
you're always a-wandering off on a side issue. Why can't you stick to
|
|
the main point?”
|
|
|
|
“All right--I don't care where he comes out, so he _comes_ out; and Jim
|
|
don't, either, I reckon. But there's one thing, anyway--Jim's too old to
|
|
be dug out with a case-knife. He won't last.”
|
|
|
|
“Yes he will _last_, too. You don't reckon it's going to take
|
|
thirty-seven years to dig out through a _dirt_ foundation, do you?”
|
|
|
|
“How long will it take, Tom?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, we can't resk being as long as we ought to, because it mayn't
|
|
take very long for Uncle Silas to hear from down there by New Orleans.
|
|
He'll hear Jim ain't from there. Then his next move will be to
|
|
advertise Jim, or something like that. So we can't resk being as long
|
|
digging him out as we ought to. By rights I reckon we ought to be
|
|
a couple of years; but we can't. Things being so uncertain, what I
|
|
recommend is this: that we really dig right in, as quick as we can;
|
|
and after that, we can _let on_, to ourselves, that we was at it
|
|
thirty-seven years. Then we can snatch him out and rush him away the
|
|
first time there's an alarm. Yes, I reckon that 'll be the best way.”
|
|
|
|
“Now, there's _sense_ in that,” I says. “Letting on don't cost nothing;
|
|
letting on ain't no trouble; and if it's any object, I don't mind
|
|
letting on we was at it a hundred and fifty year. It wouldn't strain
|
|
me none, after I got my hand in. So I'll mosey along now, and smouch a
|
|
couple of case-knives.”
|
|
|
|
“Smouch three,” he says; “we want one to make a saw out of.”
|
|
|
|
“Tom, if it ain't unregular and irreligious to sejest it,” I says,
|
|
“there's an old rusty saw-blade around yonder sticking under the
|
|
weather-boarding behind the smoke-house.”
|
|
|
|
He looked kind of weary and discouraged-like, and says:
|
|
|
|
“It ain't no use to try to learn you nothing, Huck. Run along and
|
|
smouch the knives--three of them.” So I done it.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXVI.
|
|
|
|
AS soon as we reckoned everybody was asleep that night we went down the
|
|
lightning-rod, and shut ourselves up in the lean-to, and got out our
|
|
pile of fox-fire, and went to work. We cleared everything out of the
|
|
way, about four or five foot along the middle of the bottom log. Tom
|
|
said he was right behind Jim's bed now, and we'd dig in under it, and
|
|
when we got through there couldn't nobody in the cabin ever know there
|
|
was any hole there, because Jim's counter-pin hung down most to the
|
|
ground, and you'd have to raise it up and look under to see the hole.
|
|
So we dug and dug with the case-knives till most midnight; and then
|
|
we was dog-tired, and our hands was blistered, and yet you couldn't see
|
|
we'd done anything hardly. At last I says:
|
|
|
|
“This ain't no thirty-seven year job; this is a thirty-eight year job,
|
|
Tom Sawyer.”
|
|
|
|
He never said nothing. But he sighed, and pretty soon he stopped
|
|
digging, and then for a good little while I knowed that he was thinking.
|
|
Then he says:
|
|
|
|
“It ain't no use, Huck, it ain't a-going to work. If we was prisoners
|
|
it would, because then we'd have as many years as we wanted, and no
|
|
hurry; and we wouldn't get but a few minutes to dig, every day, while
|
|
they was changing watches, and so our hands wouldn't get blistered, and
|
|
we could keep it up right along, year in and year out, and do it right,
|
|
and the way it ought to be done. But _we_ can't fool along; we got to
|
|
rush; we ain't got no time to spare. If we was to put in another
|
|
night this way we'd have to knock off for a week to let our hands get
|
|
well--couldn't touch a case-knife with them sooner.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, then, what we going to do, Tom?”
|
|
|
|
“I'll tell you. It ain't right, and it ain't moral, and I wouldn't like
|
|
it to get out; but there ain't only just the one way: we got to dig him
|
|
out with the picks, and _let on_ it's case-knives.”
|
|
|
|
“_Now_ you're _talking_!” I says; “your head gets leveler and leveler
|
|
all the time, Tom Sawyer,” I says. “Picks is the thing, moral or no
|
|
moral; and as for me, I don't care shucks for the morality of it, nohow.
|
|
When I start in to steal a nigger, or a watermelon, or a Sunday-school
|
|
book, I ain't no ways particular how it's done so it's done. What I
|
|
want is my nigger; or what I want is my watermelon; or what I want is my
|
|
Sunday-school book; and if a pick's the handiest thing, that's the thing
|
|
I'm a-going to dig that nigger or that watermelon or that Sunday-school
|
|
book out with; and I don't give a dead rat what the authorities thinks
|
|
about it nuther.”
|
|
|
|
“Well,” he says, “there's excuse for picks and letting-on in a case like
|
|
this; if it warn't so, I wouldn't approve of it, nor I wouldn't stand by
|
|
and see the rules broke--because right is right, and wrong is wrong,
|
|
and a body ain't got no business doing wrong when he ain't ignorant and
|
|
knows better. It might answer for _you_ to dig Jim out with a pick,
|
|
_without_ any letting on, because you don't know no better; but it
|
|
wouldn't for me, because I do know better. Gimme a case-knife.”
|
|
|
|
He had his own by him, but I handed him mine. He flung it down, and
|
|
says:
|
|
|
|
“Gimme a _case-knife_.”
|
|
|
|
I didn't know just what to do--but then I thought. I scratched around
|
|
amongst the old tools, and got a pickaxe and give it to him, and he took
|
|
it and went to work, and never said a word.
|
|
|
|
He was always just that particular. Full of principle.
|
|
|
|
So then I got a shovel, and then we picked and shoveled, turn about,
|
|
and made the fur fly. We stuck to it about a half an hour, which was as
|
|
long as we could stand up; but we had a good deal of a hole to show for
|
|
it. When I got up stairs I looked out at the window and see Tom doing
|
|
his level best with the lightning-rod, but he couldn't come it, his
|
|
hands was so sore. At last he says:
|
|
|
|
“It ain't no use, it can't be done. What you reckon I better do? Can't
|
|
you think of no way?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes,” I says, “but I reckon it ain't regular. Come up the stairs, and
|
|
let on it's a lightning-rod.”
|
|
|
|
So he done it.
|
|
|
|
Next day Tom stole a pewter spoon and a brass candlestick in the house,
|
|
for to make some pens for Jim out of, and six tallow candles; and I
|
|
hung around the nigger cabins and laid for a chance, and stole three tin
|
|
plates. Tom says it wasn't enough; but I said nobody wouldn't ever see
|
|
the plates that Jim throwed out, because they'd fall in the dog-fennel
|
|
and jimpson weeds under the window-hole--then we could tote them back and
|
|
he could use them over again. So Tom was satisfied. Then he says:
|
|
|
|
“Now, the thing to study out is, how to get the things to Jim.”
|
|
|
|
“Take them in through the hole,” I says, “when we get it done.”
|
|
|
|
He only just looked scornful, and said something about nobody ever heard
|
|
of such an idiotic idea, and then he went to studying. By and by he
|
|
said he had ciphered out two or three ways, but there warn't no need to
|
|
decide on any of them yet. Said we'd got to post Jim first.
|
|
|
|
That night we went down the lightning-rod a little after ten, and took
|
|
one of the candles along, and listened under the window-hole, and heard
|
|
Jim snoring; so we pitched it in, and it didn't wake him. Then we
|
|
whirled in with the pick and shovel, and in about two hours and a half
|
|
the job was done. We crept in under Jim's bed and into the cabin, and
|
|
pawed around and found the candle and lit it, and stood over Jim awhile,
|
|
and found him looking hearty and healthy, and then we woke him up gentle
|
|
and gradual. He was so glad to see us he most cried; and called us
|
|
honey, and all the pet names he could think of; and was for having us
|
|
hunt up a cold-chisel to cut the chain off of his leg with right away,
|
|
and clearing out without losing any time. But Tom he showed him how
|
|
unregular it would be, and set down and told him all about our plans,
|
|
and how we could alter them in a minute any time there was an alarm; and
|
|
not to be the least afraid, because we would see he got away, _sure_.
|
|
So Jim he said it was all right, and we set there and talked over old
|
|
times awhile, and then Tom asked a lot of questions, and when Jim told
|
|
him Uncle Silas come in every day or two to pray with him, and Aunt
|
|
Sally come in to see if he was comfortable and had plenty to eat, and
|
|
both of them was kind as they could be, Tom says:
|
|
|
|
“_Now_ I know how to fix it. We'll send you some things by them.”
|
|
|
|
I said, “Don't do nothing of the kind; it's one of the most jackass
|
|
ideas I ever struck;” but he never paid no attention to me; went right
|
|
on. It was his way when he'd got his plans set.
|
|
|
|
So he told Jim how we'd have to smuggle in the rope-ladder pie and other
|
|
large things by Nat, the nigger that fed him, and he must be on the
|
|
lookout, and not be surprised, and not let Nat see him open them; and
|
|
we would put small things in uncle's coat-pockets and he must steal them
|
|
out; and we would tie things to aunt's apron-strings or put them in her
|
|
apron-pocket, if we got a chance; and told him what they would be and
|
|
what they was for. And told him how to keep a journal on the shirt with
|
|
his blood, and all that. He told him everything. Jim he couldn't see
|
|
no sense in the most of it, but he allowed we was white folks and knowed
|
|
better than him; so he was satisfied, and said he would do it all just
|
|
as Tom said.
|
|
|
|
Jim had plenty corn-cob pipes and tobacco; so we had a right down good
|
|
sociable time; then we crawled out through the hole, and so home to
|
|
bed, with hands that looked like they'd been chawed. Tom was in high
|
|
spirits. He said it was the best fun he ever had in his life, and the
|
|
most intellectural; and said if he only could see his way to it we would
|
|
keep it up all the rest of our lives and leave Jim to our children to
|
|
get out; for he believed Jim would come to like it better and better the
|
|
more he got used to it. He said that in that way it could be strung out
|
|
to as much as eighty year, and would be the best time on record. And he
|
|
said it would make us all celebrated that had a hand in it.
|
|
|
|
In the morning we went out to the woodpile and chopped up the brass
|
|
candlestick into handy sizes, and Tom put them and the pewter spoon in
|
|
his pocket. Then we went to the nigger cabins, and while I got Nat's
|
|
notice off, Tom shoved a piece of candlestick into the middle of a
|
|
corn-pone that was in Jim's pan, and we went along with Nat to see how
|
|
it would work, and it just worked noble; when Jim bit into it it most
|
|
mashed all his teeth out; and there warn't ever anything could a worked
|
|
better. Tom said so himself. Jim he never let on but what it was only
|
|
just a piece of rock or something like that that's always getting into
|
|
bread, you know; but after that he never bit into nothing but what he
|
|
jabbed his fork into it in three or four places first.
|
|
|
|
And whilst we was a-standing there in the dimmish light, here comes a
|
|
couple of the hounds bulging in from under Jim's bed; and they kept on
|
|
piling in till there was eleven of them, and there warn't hardly room
|
|
in there to get your breath. By jings, we forgot to fasten that lean-to
|
|
door! The nigger Nat he only just hollered “Witches” once, and keeled
|
|
over on to the floor amongst the dogs, and begun to groan like he was
|
|
dying. Tom jerked the door open and flung out a slab of Jim's meat,
|
|
and the dogs went for it, and in two seconds he was out himself and back
|
|
again and shut the door, and I knowed he'd fixed the other door too.
|
|
Then he went to work on the nigger, coaxing him and petting him, and
|
|
asking him if he'd been imagining he saw something again. He raised up,
|
|
and blinked his eyes around, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Mars Sid, you'll say I's a fool, but if I didn't b'lieve I see most a
|
|
million dogs, er devils, er some'n, I wisht I may die right heah in dese
|
|
tracks. I did, mos' sholy. Mars Sid, I _felt_ um--I _felt_ um, sah; dey
|
|
was all over me. Dad fetch it, I jis' wisht I could git my han's on one
|
|
er dem witches jis' wunst--on'y jis' wunst--it's all I'd ast. But mos'ly
|
|
I wisht dey'd lemme 'lone, I does.”
|
|
|
|
Tom says:
|
|
|
|
“Well, I tell you what I think. What makes them come here just at this
|
|
runaway nigger's breakfast-time? It's because they're hungry; that's
|
|
the reason. You make them a witch pie; that's the thing for _you_ to
|
|
do.”
|
|
|
|
“But my lan', Mars Sid, how's I gwyne to make 'm a witch pie? I doan'
|
|
know how to make it. I hain't ever hearn er sich a thing b'fo'.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, then, I'll have to make it myself.”
|
|
|
|
“Will you do it, honey?--will you? I'll wusshup de groun' und' yo' foot,
|
|
I will!”
|
|
|
|
“All right, I'll do it, seeing it's you, and you've been good to us and
|
|
showed us the runaway nigger. But you got to be mighty careful. When
|
|
we come around, you turn your back; and then whatever we've put in the
|
|
pan, don't you let on you see it at all. And don't you look when Jim
|
|
unloads the pan--something might happen, I don't know what. And above
|
|
all, don't you _handle_ the witch-things.”
|
|
|
|
“_Hannel 'M_, Mars Sid? What _is_ you a-talkin' 'bout? I wouldn'
|
|
lay de weight er my finger on um, not f'r ten hund'd thous'n billion
|
|
dollars, I wouldn't.”
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXVII.
|
|
|
|
THAT was all fixed. So then we went away and went to the rubbage-pile
|
|
in the back yard, where they keep the old boots, and rags, and pieces
|
|
of bottles, and wore-out tin things, and all such truck, and scratched
|
|
around and found an old tin washpan, and stopped up the holes as well as
|
|
we could, to bake the pie in, and took it down cellar and stole it full
|
|
of flour and started for breakfast, and found a couple of shingle-nails
|
|
that Tom said would be handy for a prisoner to scrabble his name and
|
|
sorrows on the dungeon walls with, and dropped one of them in Aunt
|
|
Sally's apron-pocket which was hanging on a chair, and t'other we stuck
|
|
in the band of Uncle Silas's hat, which was on the bureau, because we
|
|
heard the children say their pa and ma was going to the runaway nigger's
|
|
house this morning, and then went to breakfast, and Tom dropped the
|
|
pewter spoon in Uncle Silas's coat-pocket, and Aunt Sally wasn't come
|
|
yet, so we had to wait a little while.
|
|
|
|
And when she come she was hot and red and cross, and couldn't hardly
|
|
wait for the blessing; and then she went to sluicing out coffee with one
|
|
hand and cracking the handiest child's head with her thimble with the
|
|
other, and says:
|
|
|
|
“I've hunted high and I've hunted low, and it does beat all what _has_
|
|
become of your other shirt.”
|
|
|
|
My heart fell down amongst my lungs and livers and things, and a hard
|
|
piece of corn-crust started down my throat after it and got met on the
|
|
road with a cough, and was shot across the table, and took one of the
|
|
children in the eye and curled him up like a fishing-worm, and let a cry
|
|
out of him the size of a warwhoop, and Tom he turned kinder blue around
|
|
the gills, and it all amounted to a considerable state of things for
|
|
about a quarter of a minute or as much as that, and I would a sold out
|
|
for half price if there was a bidder. But after that we was all right
|
|
again--it was the sudden surprise of it that knocked us so kind of cold.
|
|
Uncle Silas he says:
|
|
|
|
“It's most uncommon curious, I can't understand it. I know perfectly
|
|
well I took it _off_, because--”
|
|
|
|
“Because you hain't got but one _on_. Just _listen_ at the man! I know
|
|
you took it off, and know it by a better way than your wool-gethering
|
|
memory, too, because it was on the clo's-line yesterday--I see it there
|
|
myself. But it's gone, that's the long and the short of it, and you'll
|
|
just have to change to a red flann'l one till I can get time to make a
|
|
new one. And it 'll be the third I've made in two years. It just keeps
|
|
a body on the jump to keep you in shirts; and whatever you do manage to
|
|
_do_ with 'm all is more'n I can make out. A body 'd think you _would_
|
|
learn to take some sort of care of 'em at your time of life.”
|
|
|
|
“I know it, Sally, and I do try all I can. But it oughtn't to be
|
|
altogether my fault, because, you know, I don't see them nor have
|
|
nothing to do with them except when they're on me; and I don't believe
|
|
I've ever lost one of them _off_ of me.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, it ain't _your_ fault if you haven't, Silas; you'd a done it
|
|
if you could, I reckon. And the shirt ain't all that's gone, nuther.
|
|
Ther's a spoon gone; and _that_ ain't all. There was ten, and now
|
|
ther's only nine. The calf got the shirt, I reckon, but the calf never
|
|
took the spoon, _that's_ certain.”
|
|
|
|
“Why, what else is gone, Sally?”
|
|
|
|
“Ther's six _candles_ gone--that's what. The rats could a got the
|
|
candles, and I reckon they did; I wonder they don't walk off with the
|
|
whole place, the way you're always going to stop their holes and don't
|
|
do it; and if they warn't fools they'd sleep in your hair, Silas--_you'd_
|
|
never find it out; but you can't lay the _spoon_ on the rats, and that I
|
|
know.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, Sally, I'm in fault, and I acknowledge it; I've been remiss; but
|
|
I won't let to-morrow go by without stopping up them holes.”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, I wouldn't hurry; next year 'll do. Matilda Angelina Araminta
|
|
_Phelps!_”
|
|
|
|
Whack comes the thimble, and the child snatches her claws out of the
|
|
sugar-bowl without fooling around any. Just then the nigger woman steps
|
|
on to the passage, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Missus, dey's a sheet gone.”
|
|
|
|
“A _sheet_ gone! Well, for the land's sake!”
|
|
|
|
“I'll stop up them holes to-day,” says Uncle Silas, looking sorrowful.
|
|
|
|
“Oh, _do_ shet up!--s'pose the rats took the _sheet_? _where's_ it gone,
|
|
Lize?”
|
|
|
|
“Clah to goodness I hain't no notion, Miss' Sally. She wuz on de
|
|
clo'sline yistiddy, but she done gone: she ain' dah no mo' now.”
|
|
|
|
“I reckon the world _is_ coming to an end. I _never_ see the beat of it
|
|
in all my born days. A shirt, and a sheet, and a spoon, and six can--”
|
|
|
|
“Missus,” comes a young yaller wench, “dey's a brass cannelstick
|
|
miss'n.”
|
|
|
|
“Cler out from here, you hussy, er I'll take a skillet to ye!”
|
|
|
|
Well, she was just a-biling. I begun to lay for a chance; I reckoned
|
|
I would sneak out and go for the woods till the weather moderated. She
|
|
kept a-raging right along, running her insurrection all by herself, and
|
|
everybody else mighty meek and quiet; and at last Uncle Silas, looking
|
|
kind of foolish, fishes up that spoon out of his pocket. She stopped,
|
|
with her mouth open and her hands up; and as for me, I wished I was in
|
|
Jeruslem or somewheres. But not long, because she says:
|
|
|
|
“It's _just_ as I expected. So you had it in your pocket all the time;
|
|
and like as not you've got the other things there, too. How'd it get
|
|
there?”
|
|
|
|
“I reely don't know, Sally,” he says, kind of apologizing, “or you know
|
|
I would tell. I was a-studying over my text in Acts Seventeen before
|
|
breakfast, and I reckon I put it in there, not noticing, meaning to put
|
|
my Testament in, and it must be so, because my Testament ain't in; but
|
|
I'll go and see; and if the Testament is where I had it, I'll know I
|
|
didn't put it in, and that will show that I laid the Testament down and
|
|
took up the spoon, and--”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, for the land's sake! Give a body a rest! Go 'long now, the whole
|
|
kit and biling of ye; and don't come nigh me again till I've got back my
|
|
peace of mind.”
|
|
|
|
I'D a heard her if she'd a said it to herself, let alone speaking it
|
|
out; and I'd a got up and obeyed her if I'd a been dead. As we was
|
|
passing through the setting-room the old man he took up his hat, and the
|
|
shingle-nail fell out on the floor, and he just merely picked it up and
|
|
laid it on the mantel-shelf, and never said nothing, and went out. Tom
|
|
see him do it, and remembered about the spoon, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Well, it ain't no use to send things by _him_ no more, he ain't
|
|
reliable.” Then he says: “But he done us a good turn with the spoon,
|
|
anyway, without knowing it, and so we'll go and do him one without _him_
|
|
knowing it--stop up his rat-holes.”
|
|
|
|
There was a noble good lot of them down cellar, and it took us a whole
|
|
hour, but we done the job tight and good and shipshape. Then we heard
|
|
steps on the stairs, and blowed out our light and hid; and here comes
|
|
the old man, with a candle in one hand and a bundle of stuff in t'other,
|
|
looking as absent-minded as year before last. He went a mooning around,
|
|
first to one rat-hole and then another, till he'd been to them all.
|
|
Then he stood about five minutes, picking tallow-drip off of his candle
|
|
and thinking. Then he turns off slow and dreamy towards the stairs,
|
|
saying:
|
|
|
|
“Well, for the life of me I can't remember when I done it. I could
|
|
show her now that I warn't to blame on account of the rats. But never
|
|
mind--let it go. I reckon it wouldn't do no good.”
|
|
|
|
And so he went on a-mumbling up stairs, and then we left. He was a
|
|
mighty nice old man. And always is.
|
|
|
|
Tom was a good deal bothered about what to do for a spoon, but he said
|
|
we'd got to have it; so he took a think. When he had ciphered it out
|
|
he told me how we was to do; then we went and waited around the
|
|
spoon-basket till we see Aunt Sally coming, and then Tom went to
|
|
counting the spoons and laying them out to one side, and I slid one of
|
|
them up my sleeve, and Tom says:
|
|
|
|
“Why, Aunt Sally, there ain't but nine spoons _yet_.”
|
|
|
|
She says:
|
|
|
|
“Go 'long to your play, and don't bother me. I know better, I counted
|
|
'm myself.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, I've counted them twice, Aunty, and I can't make but nine.”
|
|
|
|
She looked out of all patience, but of course she come to count--anybody
|
|
would.
|
|
|
|
“I declare to gracious ther' _ain't_ but nine!” she says. “Why, what in
|
|
the world--plague _take_ the things, I'll count 'm again.”
|
|
|
|
So I slipped back the one I had, and when she got done counting, she
|
|
says:
|
|
|
|
“Hang the troublesome rubbage, ther's _ten_ now!” and she looked huffy
|
|
and bothered both. But Tom says:
|
|
|
|
“Why, Aunty, I don't think there's ten.”
|
|
|
|
“You numskull, didn't you see me _count 'm?_”
|
|
|
|
“I know, but--”
|
|
|
|
“Well, I'll count 'm _again_.”
|
|
|
|
So I smouched one, and they come out nine, same as the other time.
|
|
Well, she _was_ in a tearing way--just a-trembling all over, she was so
|
|
mad. But she counted and counted till she got that addled she'd start
|
|
to count in the basket for a spoon sometimes; and so, three times they
|
|
come out right, and three times they come out wrong. Then she grabbed
|
|
up the basket and slammed it across the house and knocked the cat
|
|
galley-west; and she said cle'r out and let her have some peace, and if
|
|
we come bothering around her again betwixt that and dinner she'd skin
|
|
us. So we had the odd spoon, and dropped it in her apron-pocket whilst
|
|
she was a-giving us our sailing orders, and Jim got it all right, along
|
|
with her shingle nail, before noon. We was very well satisfied with
|
|
this business, and Tom allowed it was worth twice the trouble it took,
|
|
because he said _now_ she couldn't ever count them spoons twice alike
|
|
again to save her life; and wouldn't believe she'd counted them right if
|
|
she _did_; and said that after she'd about counted her head off for the
|
|
next three days he judged she'd give it up and offer to kill anybody
|
|
that wanted her to ever count them any more.
|
|
|
|
So we put the sheet back on the line that night, and stole one out of
|
|
her closet; and kept on putting it back and stealing it again for a
|
|
couple of days till she didn't know how many sheets she had any more,
|
|
and she didn't _care_, and warn't a-going to bullyrag the rest of her
|
|
soul out about it, and wouldn't count them again not to save her life;
|
|
she druther die first.
|
|
|
|
So we was all right now, as to the shirt and the sheet and the spoon
|
|
and the candles, by the help of the calf and the rats and the mixed-up
|
|
counting; and as to the candlestick, it warn't no consequence, it would
|
|
blow over by and by.
|
|
|
|
But that pie was a job; we had no end of trouble with that pie. We
|
|
fixed it up away down in the woods, and cooked it there; and we got it
|
|
done at last, and very satisfactory, too; but not all in one day; and we
|
|
had to use up three wash-pans full of flour before we got through, and
|
|
we got burnt pretty much all over, in places, and eyes put out with
|
|
the smoke; because, you see, we didn't want nothing but a crust, and we
|
|
couldn't prop it up right, and she would always cave in. But of course
|
|
we thought of the right way at last--which was to cook the ladder, too,
|
|
in the pie. So then we laid in with Jim the second night, and tore
|
|
up the sheet all in little strings and twisted them together, and long
|
|
before daylight we had a lovely rope that you could a hung a person
|
|
with. We let on it took nine months to make it.
|
|
|
|
And in the forenoon we took it down to the woods, but it wouldn't go
|
|
into the pie. Being made of a whole sheet, that way, there was rope
|
|
enough for forty pies if we'd a wanted them, and plenty left over
|
|
for soup, or sausage, or anything you choose. We could a had a whole
|
|
dinner.
|
|
|
|
But we didn't need it. All we needed was just enough for the pie, and
|
|
so we throwed the rest away. We didn't cook none of the pies in the
|
|
wash-pan--afraid the solder would melt; but Uncle Silas he had a noble
|
|
brass warming-pan which he thought considerable of, because it belonged
|
|
to one of his ancesters with a long wooden handle that come over from
|
|
England with William the Conqueror in the Mayflower or one of them early
|
|
ships and was hid away up garret with a lot of other old pots and things
|
|
that was valuable, not on account of being any account, because they
|
|
warn't, but on account of them being relicts, you know, and we snaked
|
|
her out, private, and took her down there, but she failed on the first
|
|
pies, because we didn't know how, but she come up smiling on the last
|
|
one. We took and lined her with dough, and set her in the coals, and
|
|
loaded her up with rag rope, and put on a dough roof, and shut down the
|
|
lid, and put hot embers on top, and stood off five foot, with the long
|
|
handle, cool and comfortable, and in fifteen minutes she turned out a
|
|
pie that was a satisfaction to look at. But the person that et it would
|
|
want to fetch a couple of kags of toothpicks along, for if that rope
|
|
ladder wouldn't cramp him down to business I don't know nothing what I'm
|
|
talking about, and lay him in enough stomach-ache to last him till next
|
|
time, too.
|
|
|
|
Nat didn't look when we put the witch pie in Jim's pan; and we put the
|
|
three tin plates in the bottom of the pan under the vittles; and so Jim
|
|
got everything all right, and as soon as he was by himself he busted
|
|
into the pie and hid the rope ladder inside of his straw tick,
|
|
and scratched some marks on a tin plate and throwed it out of the
|
|
window-hole.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXVIII.
|
|
|
|
MAKING them pens was a distressid tough job, and so was the saw; and Jim
|
|
allowed the inscription was going to be the toughest of all. That's the
|
|
one which the prisoner has to scrabble on the wall. But he had to have
|
|
it; Tom said he'd _got_ to; there warn't no case of a state prisoner not
|
|
scrabbling his inscription to leave behind, and his coat of arms.
|
|
|
|
“Look at Lady Jane Grey,” he says; “look at Gilford Dudley; look at old
|
|
Northumberland! Why, Huck, s'pose it _is_ considerble trouble?--what
|
|
you going to do?--how you going to get around it? Jim's _got_ to do his
|
|
inscription and coat of arms. They all do.”
|
|
|
|
Jim says:
|
|
|
|
“Why, Mars Tom, I hain't got no coat o' arm; I hain't got nuffn but dish
|
|
yer ole shirt, en you knows I got to keep de journal on dat.”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, you don't understand, Jim; a coat of arms is very different.”
|
|
|
|
“Well,” I says, “Jim's right, anyway, when he says he ain't got no coat
|
|
of arms, because he hain't.”
|
|
|
|
“I reckon I knowed that,” Tom says, “but you bet he'll have one before
|
|
he goes out of this--because he's going out _right_, and there ain't
|
|
going to be no flaws in his record.”
|
|
|
|
So whilst me and Jim filed away at the pens on a brickbat apiece, Jim
|
|
a-making his'n out of the brass and I making mine out of the spoon,
|
|
Tom set to work to think out the coat of arms. By and by he said he'd
|
|
struck so many good ones he didn't hardly know which to take, but there
|
|
was one which he reckoned he'd decide on. He says:
|
|
|
|
“On the scutcheon we'll have a bend _or_ in the dexter base, a saltire
|
|
_murrey_ in the fess, with a dog, couchant, for common charge, and under
|
|
his foot a chain embattled, for slavery, with a chevron _vert_ in a
|
|
chief engrailed, and three invected lines on a field _azure_, with the
|
|
nombril points rampant on a dancette indented; crest, a runaway nigger,
|
|
_sable_, with his bundle over his shoulder on a bar sinister; and a
|
|
couple of gules for supporters, which is you and me; motto, _Maggiore
|
|
Fretta, Minore Otto._ Got it out of a book--means the more haste the
|
|
less speed.”
|
|
|
|
“Geewhillikins,” I says, “but what does the rest of it mean?”
|
|
|
|
“We ain't got no time to bother over that,” he says; “we got to dig in
|
|
like all git-out.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, anyway,” I says, “what's _some_ of it? What's a fess?”
|
|
|
|
“A fess--a fess is--_you_ don't need to know what a fess is. I'll show
|
|
him how to make it when he gets to it.”
|
|
|
|
“Shucks, Tom,” I says, “I think you might tell a person. What's a bar
|
|
sinister?”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, I don't know. But he's got to have it. All the nobility does.”
|
|
|
|
That was just his way. If it didn't suit him to explain a thing to you,
|
|
he wouldn't do it. You might pump at him a week, it wouldn't make no
|
|
difference.
|
|
|
|
He'd got all that coat of arms business fixed, so now he started in to
|
|
finish up the rest of that part of the work, which was to plan out a
|
|
mournful inscription--said Jim got to have one, like they all done. He
|
|
made up a lot, and wrote them out on a paper, and read them off, so:
|
|
|
|
1. Here a captive heart busted. 2. Here a poor prisoner, forsook by
|
|
the world and friends, fretted his sorrowful life. 3. Here a lonely
|
|
heart broke, and a worn spirit went to its rest, after thirty-seven
|
|
years of solitary captivity. 4. Here, homeless and friendless, after
|
|
thirty-seven years of bitter captivity, perished a noble stranger,
|
|
natural son of Louis XIV.
|
|
|
|
Tom's voice trembled whilst he was reading them, and he most broke down.
|
|
When he got done he couldn't no way make up his mind which one for Jim
|
|
to scrabble on to the wall, they was all so good; but at last he allowed
|
|
he would let him scrabble them all on. Jim said it would take him a
|
|
year to scrabble such a lot of truck on to the logs with a nail, and he
|
|
didn't know how to make letters, besides; but Tom said he would block
|
|
them out for him, and then he wouldn't have nothing to do but just
|
|
follow the lines. Then pretty soon he says:
|
|
|
|
“Come to think, the logs ain't a-going to do; they don't have log walls
|
|
in a dungeon: we got to dig the inscriptions into a rock. We'll fetch
|
|
a rock.”
|
|
|
|
Jim said the rock was worse than the logs; he said it would take him
|
|
such a pison long time to dig them into a rock he wouldn't ever get out.
|
|
But Tom said he would let me help him do it. Then he took a look to
|
|
see how me and Jim was getting along with the pens. It was most pesky
|
|
tedious hard work and slow, and didn't give my hands no show to get
|
|
well of the sores, and we didn't seem to make no headway, hardly; so Tom
|
|
says:
|
|
|
|
“I know how to fix it. We got to have a rock for the coat of arms and
|
|
mournful inscriptions, and we can kill two birds with that same rock.
|
|
There's a gaudy big grindstone down at the mill, and we'll smouch it,
|
|
and carve the things on it, and file out the pens and the saw on it,
|
|
too.”
|
|
|
|
It warn't no slouch of an idea; and it warn't no slouch of a grindstone
|
|
nuther; but we allowed we'd tackle it. It warn't quite midnight yet,
|
|
so we cleared out for the mill, leaving Jim at work. We smouched the
|
|
grindstone, and set out to roll her home, but it was a most nation tough
|
|
job. Sometimes, do what we could, we couldn't keep her from falling
|
|
over, and she come mighty near mashing us every time. Tom said she was
|
|
going to get one of us, sure, before we got through. We got her half
|
|
way; and then we was plumb played out, and most drownded with sweat. We
|
|
see it warn't no use; we got to go and fetch Jim. So he raised up his
|
|
bed and slid the chain off of the bed-leg, and wrapt it round and round
|
|
his neck, and we crawled out through our hole and down there, and Jim
|
|
and me laid into that grindstone and walked her along like nothing; and
|
|
Tom superintended. He could out-superintend any boy I ever see. He
|
|
knowed how to do everything.
|
|
|
|
Our hole was pretty big, but it warn't big enough to get the grindstone
|
|
through; but Jim he took the pick and soon made it big enough. Then Tom
|
|
marked out them things on it with the nail, and set Jim to work on them,
|
|
with the nail for a chisel and an iron bolt from the rubbage in the
|
|
lean-to for a hammer, and told him to work till the rest of his candle
|
|
quit on him, and then he could go to bed, and hide the grindstone under
|
|
his straw tick and sleep on it. Then we helped him fix his chain back
|
|
on the bed-leg, and was ready for bed ourselves. But Tom thought of
|
|
something, and says:
|
|
|
|
“You got any spiders in here, Jim?”
|
|
|
|
“No, sah, thanks to goodness I hain't, Mars Tom.”
|
|
|
|
“All right, we'll get you some.”
|
|
|
|
“But bless you, honey, I doan' _want_ none. I's afeard un um. I jis'
|
|
's soon have rattlesnakes aroun'.”
|
|
|
|
Tom thought a minute or two, and says:
|
|
|
|
“It's a good idea. And I reckon it's been done. It _must_ a been done;
|
|
it stands to reason. Yes, it's a prime good idea. Where could you keep
|
|
it?”
|
|
|
|
“Keep what, Mars Tom?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, a rattlesnake.”
|
|
|
|
“De goodness gracious alive, Mars Tom! Why, if dey was a rattlesnake to
|
|
come in heah I'd take en bust right out thoo dat log wall, I would, wid
|
|
my head.”
|
|
|
|
“Why, Jim, you wouldn't be afraid of it after a little. You could tame
|
|
it.”
|
|
|
|
“_Tame_ it!”
|
|
|
|
“Yes--easy enough. Every animal is grateful for kindness and petting,
|
|
and they wouldn't _think_ of hurting a person that pets them. Any book
|
|
will tell you that. You try--that's all I ask; just try for two or three
|
|
days. Why, you can get him so, in a little while, that he'll love you;
|
|
and sleep with you; and won't stay away from you a minute; and will let
|
|
you wrap him round your neck and put his head in your mouth.”
|
|
|
|
“_Please_, Mars Tom--_doan_' talk so! I can't _stan_' it! He'd _let_
|
|
me shove his head in my mouf--fer a favor, hain't it? I lay he'd wait a
|
|
pow'ful long time 'fo' I _ast_ him. En mo' en dat, I doan' _want_ him
|
|
to sleep wid me.”
|
|
|
|
“Jim, don't act so foolish. A prisoner's _got_ to have some kind of a
|
|
dumb pet, and if a rattlesnake hain't ever been tried, why, there's more
|
|
glory to be gained in your being the first to ever try it than any other
|
|
way you could ever think of to save your life.”
|
|
|
|
“Why, Mars Tom, I doan' _want_ no sich glory. Snake take 'n bite
|
|
Jim's chin off, den _whah_ is de glory? No, sah, I doan' want no sich
|
|
doin's.”
|
|
|
|
“Blame it, can't you _try_? I only _want_ you to try--you needn't keep
|
|
it up if it don't work.”
|
|
|
|
“But de trouble all _done_ ef de snake bite me while I's a tryin' him.
|
|
Mars Tom, I's willin' to tackle mos' anything 'at ain't onreasonable,
|
|
but ef you en Huck fetches a rattlesnake in heah for me to tame, I's
|
|
gwyne to _leave_, dat's _shore_.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, then, let it go, let it go, if you're so bull-headed about it.
|
|
We can get you some garter-snakes, and you can tie some buttons on
|
|
their tails, and let on they're rattlesnakes, and I reckon that 'll have
|
|
to do.”
|
|
|
|
“I k'n stan' _dem_, Mars Tom, but blame' 'f I couldn' get along widout
|
|
um, I tell you dat. I never knowed b'fo' 't was so much bother and
|
|
trouble to be a prisoner.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, it _always_ is when it's done right. You got any rats around
|
|
here?”
|
|
|
|
“No, sah, I hain't seed none.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, we'll get you some rats.”
|
|
|
|
“Why, Mars Tom, I doan' _want_ no rats. Dey's de dadblamedest creturs
|
|
to 'sturb a body, en rustle roun' over 'im, en bite his feet, when he's
|
|
tryin' to sleep, I ever see. No, sah, gimme g'yarter-snakes, 'f I's
|
|
got to have 'm, but doan' gimme no rats; I hain' got no use f'r um,
|
|
skasely.”
|
|
|
|
“But, Jim, you _got_ to have 'em--they all do. So don't make no more
|
|
fuss about it. Prisoners ain't ever without rats. There ain't no
|
|
instance of it. And they train them, and pet them, and learn them
|
|
tricks, and they get to be as sociable as flies. But you got to play
|
|
music to them. You got anything to play music on?”
|
|
|
|
“I ain' got nuffn but a coase comb en a piece o' paper, en a juice-harp;
|
|
but I reck'n dey wouldn' take no stock in a juice-harp.”
|
|
|
|
“Yes they would _they_ don't care what kind of music 'tis. A
|
|
jews-harp's plenty good enough for a rat. All animals like music--in a
|
|
prison they dote on it. Specially, painful music; and you can't get no
|
|
other kind out of a jews-harp. It always interests them; they come out
|
|
to see what's the matter with you. Yes, you're all right; you're fixed
|
|
very well. You want to set on your bed nights before you go to sleep,
|
|
and early in the mornings, and play your jews-harp; play 'The Last Link
|
|
is Broken'--that's the thing that 'll scoop a rat quicker 'n anything
|
|
else; and when you've played about two minutes you'll see all the rats,
|
|
and the snakes, and spiders, and things begin to feel worried about you,
|
|
and come. And they'll just fairly swarm over you, and have a noble good
|
|
time.”
|
|
|
|
“Yes, _dey_ will, I reck'n, Mars Tom, but what kine er time is _Jim_
|
|
havin'? Blest if I kin see de pint. But I'll do it ef I got to. I
|
|
reck'n I better keep de animals satisfied, en not have no trouble in de
|
|
house.”
|
|
|
|
Tom waited to think it over, and see if there wasn't nothing else; and
|
|
pretty soon he says:
|
|
|
|
“Oh, there's one thing I forgot. Could you raise a flower here, do you
|
|
reckon?”
|
|
|
|
“I doan know but maybe I could, Mars Tom; but it's tolable dark in heah,
|
|
en I ain' got no use f'r no flower, nohow, en she'd be a pow'ful sight
|
|
o' trouble.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, you try it, anyway. Some other prisoners has done it.”
|
|
|
|
“One er dem big cat-tail-lookin' mullen-stalks would grow in heah, Mars
|
|
Tom, I reck'n, but she wouldn't be wuth half de trouble she'd coss.”
|
|
|
|
“Don't you believe it. We'll fetch you a little one and you plant it in
|
|
the corner over there, and raise it. And don't call it mullen, call it
|
|
Pitchiola--that's its right name when it's in a prison. And you want to
|
|
water it with your tears.”
|
|
|
|
“Why, I got plenty spring water, Mars Tom.”
|
|
|
|
“You don't _want_ spring water; you want to water it with your tears.
|
|
It's the way they always do.”
|
|
|
|
“Why, Mars Tom, I lay I kin raise one er dem mullen-stalks twyste wid
|
|
spring water whiles another man's a _start'n_ one wid tears.”
|
|
|
|
“That ain't the idea. You _got_ to do it with tears.”
|
|
|
|
“She'll die on my han's, Mars Tom, she sholy will; kase I doan' skasely
|
|
ever cry.”
|
|
|
|
So Tom was stumped. But he studied it over, and then said Jim would
|
|
have to worry along the best he could with an onion. He promised
|
|
he would go to the nigger cabins and drop one, private, in Jim's
|
|
coffee-pot, in the morning. Jim said he would “jis' 's soon have
|
|
tobacker in his coffee;” and found so much fault with it, and with the
|
|
work and bother of raising the mullen, and jews-harping the rats, and
|
|
petting and flattering up the snakes and spiders and things, on top of
|
|
all the other work he had to do on pens, and inscriptions, and journals,
|
|
and things, which made it more trouble and worry and responsibility to
|
|
be a prisoner than anything he ever undertook, that Tom most lost all
|
|
patience with him; and said he was just loadened down with more gaudier
|
|
chances than a prisoner ever had in the world to make a name for
|
|
himself, and yet he didn't know enough to appreciate them, and they was
|
|
just about wasted on him. So Jim he was sorry, and said he wouldn't
|
|
behave so no more, and then me and Tom shoved for bed.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XXXIX.
|
|
|
|
IN the morning we went up to the village and bought a wire rat-trap and
|
|
fetched it down, and unstopped the best rat-hole, and in about an hour
|
|
we had fifteen of the bulliest kind of ones; and then we took it and put
|
|
it in a safe place under Aunt Sally's bed. But while we was gone for
|
|
spiders little Thomas Franklin Benjamin Jefferson Elexander Phelps found
|
|
it there, and opened the door of it to see if the rats would come out,
|
|
and they did; and Aunt Sally she come in, and when we got back she was
|
|
a-standing on top of the bed raising Cain, and the rats was doing what
|
|
they could to keep off the dull times for her. So she took and dusted
|
|
us both with the hickry, and we was as much as two hours catching
|
|
another fifteen or sixteen, drat that meddlesome cub, and they warn't
|
|
the likeliest, nuther, because the first haul was the pick of the flock.
|
|
I never see a likelier lot of rats than what that first haul was.
|
|
|
|
We got a splendid stock of sorted spiders, and bugs, and frogs, and
|
|
caterpillars, and one thing or another; and we like to got a hornet's
|
|
nest, but we didn't. The family was at home. We didn't give it right
|
|
up, but stayed with them as long as we could; because we allowed we'd
|
|
tire them out or they'd got to tire us out, and they done it. Then we
|
|
got allycumpain and rubbed on the places, and was pretty near all right
|
|
again, but couldn't set down convenient. And so we went for the snakes,
|
|
and grabbed a couple of dozen garters and house-snakes, and put them in
|
|
a bag, and put it in our room, and by that time it was supper-time, and
|
|
a rattling good honest day's work: and hungry?--oh, no, I reckon not!
|
|
And there warn't a blessed snake up there when we went back--we didn't
|
|
half tie the sack, and they worked out somehow, and left. But it didn't
|
|
matter much, because they was still on the premises somewheres. So
|
|
we judged we could get some of them again. No, there warn't no real
|
|
scarcity of snakes about the house for a considerable spell. You'd see
|
|
them dripping from the rafters and places every now and then; and they
|
|
generly landed in your plate, or down the back of your neck, and most
|
|
of the time where you didn't want them. Well, they was handsome and
|
|
striped, and there warn't no harm in a million of them; but that never
|
|
made no difference to Aunt Sally; she despised snakes, be the breed what
|
|
they might, and she couldn't stand them no way you could fix it; and
|
|
every time one of them flopped down on her, it didn't make no difference
|
|
what she was doing, she would just lay that work down and light out. I
|
|
never see such a woman. And you could hear her whoop to Jericho. You
|
|
couldn't get her to take a-holt of one of them with the tongs. And if
|
|
she turned over and found one in bed she would scramble out and lift a
|
|
howl that you would think the house was afire. She disturbed the old
|
|
man so that he said he could most wish there hadn't ever been no snakes
|
|
created. Why, after every last snake had been gone clear out of the
|
|
house for as much as a week Aunt Sally warn't over it yet; she warn't
|
|
near over it; when she was setting thinking about something you could
|
|
touch her on the back of her neck with a feather and she would jump
|
|
right out of her stockings. It was very curious. But Tom said all
|
|
women was just so. He said they was made that way for some reason or
|
|
other.
|
|
|
|
We got a licking every time one of our snakes come in her way, and she
|
|
allowed these lickings warn't nothing to what she would do if we ever
|
|
loaded up the place again with them. I didn't mind the lickings,
|
|
because they didn't amount to nothing; but I minded the trouble we
|
|
had to lay in another lot. But we got them laid in, and all the other
|
|
things; and you never see a cabin as blithesome as Jim's was when they'd
|
|
all swarm out for music and go for him. Jim didn't like the spiders,
|
|
and the spiders didn't like Jim; and so they'd lay for him, and make it
|
|
mighty warm for him. And he said that between the rats and the snakes
|
|
and the grindstone there warn't no room in bed for him, skasely; and
|
|
when there was, a body couldn't sleep, it was so lively, and it was
|
|
always lively, he said, because _they_ never all slept at one time, but
|
|
took turn about, so when the snakes was asleep the rats was on deck, and
|
|
when the rats turned in the snakes come on watch, so he always had one
|
|
gang under him, in his way, and t'other gang having a circus over him,
|
|
and if he got up to hunt a new place the spiders would take a chance at
|
|
him as he crossed over. He said if he ever got out this time he wouldn't
|
|
ever be a prisoner again, not for a salary.
|
|
|
|
Well, by the end of three weeks everything was in pretty good shape.
|
|
The shirt was sent in early, in a pie, and every time a rat bit Jim he
|
|
would get up and write a little in his journal whilst the ink was fresh;
|
|
the pens was made, the inscriptions and so on was all carved on the
|
|
grindstone; the bed-leg was sawed in two, and we had et up the sawdust,
|
|
and it give us a most amazing stomach-ache. We reckoned we was all
|
|
going to die, but didn't. It was the most undigestible sawdust I ever
|
|
see; and Tom said the same.
|
|
|
|
But as I was saying, we'd got all the work done now, at last; and we was
|
|
all pretty much fagged out, too, but mainly Jim. The old man had wrote
|
|
a couple of times to the plantation below Orleans to come and get their
|
|
runaway nigger, but hadn't got no answer, because there warn't no such
|
|
plantation; so he allowed he would advertise Jim in the St. Louis and
|
|
New Orleans papers; and when he mentioned the St. Louis ones it give me
|
|
the cold shivers, and I see we hadn't no time to lose. So Tom said, now
|
|
for the nonnamous letters.
|
|
|
|
“What's them?” I says.
|
|
|
|
“Warnings to the people that something is up. Sometimes it's done one
|
|
way, sometimes another. But there's always somebody spying around that
|
|
gives notice to the governor of the castle. When Louis XVI. was going
|
|
to light out of the Tooleries, a servant-girl done it. It's a very good
|
|
way, and so is the nonnamous letters. We'll use them both. And it's
|
|
usual for the prisoner's mother to change clothes with him, and she
|
|
stays in, and he slides out in her clothes. We'll do that, too.”
|
|
|
|
“But looky here, Tom, what do we want to _warn_ anybody for that
|
|
something's up? Let them find it out for themselves--it's their
|
|
lookout.”
|
|
|
|
“Yes, I know; but you can't depend on them. It's the way they've acted
|
|
from the very start--left us to do _everything_. They're so confiding
|
|
and mullet-headed they don't take notice of nothing at all. So if we
|
|
don't _give_ them notice there won't be nobody nor nothing to interfere
|
|
with us, and so after all our hard work and trouble this escape 'll go
|
|
off perfectly flat; won't amount to nothing--won't be nothing _to_ it.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, as for me, Tom, that's the way I'd like.”
|
|
|
|
“Shucks!” he says, and looked disgusted. So I says:
|
|
|
|
“But I ain't going to make no complaint. Any way that suits you suits
|
|
me. What you going to do about the servant-girl?”
|
|
|
|
“You'll be her. You slide in, in the middle of the night, and hook that
|
|
yaller girl's frock.”
|
|
|
|
“Why, Tom, that 'll make trouble next morning; because, of course, she
|
|
prob'bly hain't got any but that one.”
|
|
|
|
“I know; but you don't want it but fifteen minutes, to carry the
|
|
nonnamous letter and shove it under the front door.”
|
|
|
|
“All right, then, I'll do it; but I could carry it just as handy in my
|
|
own togs.”
|
|
|
|
“You wouldn't look like a servant-girl _then_, would you?”
|
|
|
|
“No, but there won't be nobody to see what I look like, _anyway_.”
|
|
|
|
“That ain't got nothing to do with it. The thing for us to do is just
|
|
to do our _duty_, and not worry about whether anybody _sees_ us do it or
|
|
not. Hain't you got no principle at all?”
|
|
|
|
“All right, I ain't saying nothing; I'm the servant-girl. Who's Jim's
|
|
mother?”
|
|
|
|
“I'm his mother. I'll hook a gown from Aunt Sally.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, then, you'll have to stay in the cabin when me and Jim leaves.”
|
|
|
|
“Not much. I'll stuff Jim's clothes full of straw and lay it on his bed
|
|
to represent his mother in disguise, and Jim 'll take the nigger woman's
|
|
gown off of me and wear it, and we'll all evade together. When a
|
|
prisoner of style escapes it's called an evasion. It's always called
|
|
so when a king escapes, f'rinstance. And the same with a king's son;
|
|
it don't make no difference whether he's a natural one or an unnatural
|
|
one.”
|
|
|
|
So Tom he wrote the nonnamous letter, and I smouched the yaller wench's
|
|
frock that night, and put it on, and shoved it under the front door, the
|
|
way Tom told me to. It said:
|
|
|
|
Beware. Trouble is brewing. Keep a sharp lookout. _Unknown_ _Friend_.
|
|
|
|
Next night we stuck a picture, which Tom drawed in blood, of a skull and
|
|
crossbones on the front door; and next night another one of a coffin on
|
|
the back door. I never see a family in such a sweat. They couldn't a
|
|
been worse scared if the place had a been full of ghosts laying for them
|
|
behind everything and under the beds and shivering through the air. If
|
|
a door banged, Aunt Sally she jumped and said “ouch!” if anything fell,
|
|
she jumped and said “ouch!” if you happened to touch her, when she
|
|
warn't noticing, she done the same; she couldn't face noway and be
|
|
satisfied, because she allowed there was something behind her every
|
|
time--so she was always a-whirling around sudden, and saying “ouch,” and
|
|
before she'd got two-thirds around she'd whirl back again, and say it
|
|
again; and she was afraid to go to bed, but she dasn't set up. So the
|
|
thing was working very well, Tom said; he said he never see a thing work
|
|
more satisfactory. He said it showed it was done right.
|
|
|
|
So he said, now for the grand bulge! So the very next morning at the
|
|
streak of dawn we got another letter ready, and was wondering what we
|
|
better do with it, because we heard them say at supper they was going
|
|
to have a nigger on watch at both doors all night. Tom he went down the
|
|
lightning-rod to spy around; and the nigger at the back door was asleep,
|
|
and he stuck it in the back of his neck and come back. This letter
|
|
said:
|
|
|
|
Don't betray me, I wish to be your friend. There is a desprate gang of
|
|
cutthroats from over in the Indian Territory going to steal your runaway
|
|
nigger to-night, and they have been trying to scare you so as you will
|
|
stay in the house and not bother them. I am one of the gang, but have
|
|
got religgion and wish to quit it and lead an honest life again, and
|
|
will betray the helish design. They will sneak down from northards,
|
|
along the fence, at midnight exact, with a false key, and go in the
|
|
nigger's cabin to get him. I am to be off a piece and blow a tin horn
|
|
if I see any danger; but stead of that I will _baa_ like a sheep soon as
|
|
they get in and not blow at all; then whilst they are getting his
|
|
chains loose, you slip there and lock them in, and can kill them at your
|
|
leasure. Don't do anything but just the way I am telling you, if you do
|
|
they will suspicion something and raise whoop-jamboreehoo. I do not wish
|
|
any reward but to know I have done the right thing. _Unknown Friend._
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XL.
|
|
|
|
WE was feeling pretty good after breakfast, and took my canoe and went
|
|
over the river a-fishing, with a lunch, and had a good time, and took a
|
|
look at the raft and found her all right, and got home late to supper,
|
|
and found them in such a sweat and worry they didn't know which end they
|
|
was standing on, and made us go right off to bed the minute we was done
|
|
supper, and wouldn't tell us what the trouble was, and never let on a
|
|
word about the new letter, but didn't need to, because we knowed as much
|
|
about it as anybody did, and as soon as we was half up stairs and her
|
|
back was turned we slid for the cellar cupboard and loaded up a good
|
|
lunch and took it up to our room and went to bed, and got up about
|
|
half-past eleven, and Tom put on Aunt Sally's dress that he stole and
|
|
was going to start with the lunch, but says:
|
|
|
|
“Where's the butter?”
|
|
|
|
“I laid out a hunk of it,” I says, “on a piece of a corn-pone.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, you _left_ it laid out, then--it ain't here.”
|
|
|
|
“We can get along without it,” I says.
|
|
|
|
“We can get along _with_ it, too,” he says; “just you slide down cellar
|
|
and fetch it. And then mosey right down the lightning-rod and come
|
|
along. I'll go and stuff the straw into Jim's clothes to represent his
|
|
mother in disguise, and be ready to _baa_ like a sheep and shove soon as
|
|
you get there.”
|
|
|
|
So out he went, and down cellar went I. The hunk of butter, big as
|
|
a person's fist, was where I had left it, so I took up the slab of
|
|
corn-pone with it on, and blowed out my light, and started up stairs
|
|
very stealthy, and got up to the main floor all right, but here comes
|
|
Aunt Sally with a candle, and I clapped the truck in my hat, and clapped
|
|
my hat on my head, and the next second she see me; and she says:
|
|
|
|
“You been down cellar?”
|
|
|
|
“Yes'm.”
|
|
|
|
“What you been doing down there?”
|
|
|
|
“Noth'n.”
|
|
|
|
“_Noth'n!_”
|
|
|
|
“No'm.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, then, what possessed you to go down there this time of night?”
|
|
|
|
“I don't know 'm.”
|
|
|
|
“You don't _know_? Don't answer me that way. Tom, I want to know what
|
|
you been _doing_ down there.”
|
|
|
|
“I hain't been doing a single thing, Aunt Sally, I hope to gracious if I
|
|
have.”
|
|
|
|
I reckoned she'd let me go now, and as a generl thing she would; but I
|
|
s'pose there was so many strange things going on she was just in a sweat
|
|
about every little thing that warn't yard-stick straight; so she says,
|
|
very decided:
|
|
|
|
“You just march into that setting-room and stay there till I come. You
|
|
been up to something you no business to, and I lay I'll find out what it
|
|
is before I'M done with you.”
|
|
|
|
So she went away as I opened the door and walked into the setting-room.
|
|
My, but there was a crowd there! Fifteen farmers, and every one of them
|
|
had a gun. I was most powerful sick, and slunk to a chair and set down.
|
|
They was setting around, some of them talking a little, in a low voice,
|
|
and all of them fidgety and uneasy, but trying to look like they warn't;
|
|
but I knowed they was, because they was always taking off their hats,
|
|
and putting them on, and scratching their heads, and changing their
|
|
seats, and fumbling with their buttons. I warn't easy myself, but I
|
|
didn't take my hat off, all the same.
|
|
|
|
I did wish Aunt Sally would come, and get done with me, and lick me, if
|
|
she wanted to, and let me get away and tell Tom how we'd overdone this
|
|
thing, and what a thundering hornet's-nest we'd got ourselves into, so
|
|
we could stop fooling around straight off, and clear out with Jim before
|
|
these rips got out of patience and come for us.
|
|
|
|
At last she come and begun to ask me questions, but I _couldn't_ answer
|
|
them straight, I didn't know which end of me was up; because these men
|
|
was in such a fidget now that some was wanting to start right NOW and
|
|
lay for them desperadoes, and saying it warn't but a few minutes to
|
|
midnight; and others was trying to get them to hold on and wait for the
|
|
sheep-signal; and here was Aunty pegging away at the questions, and
|
|
me a-shaking all over and ready to sink down in my tracks I was
|
|
that scared; and the place getting hotter and hotter, and the butter
|
|
beginning to melt and run down my neck and behind my ears; and pretty
|
|
soon, when one of them says, “I'M for going and getting in the cabin
|
|
_first_ and right _now_, and catching them when they come,” I most
|
|
dropped; and a streak of butter come a-trickling down my forehead, and
|
|
Aunt Sally she see it, and turns white as a sheet, and says:
|
|
|
|
“For the land's sake, what _is_ the matter with the child? He's got the
|
|
brain-fever as shore as you're born, and they're oozing out!”
|
|
|
|
And everybody runs to see, and she snatches off my hat, and out comes
|
|
the bread and what was left of the butter, and she grabbed me, and
|
|
hugged me, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Oh, what a turn you did give me! and how glad and grateful I am it
|
|
ain't no worse; for luck's against us, and it never rains but it pours,
|
|
and when I see that truck I thought we'd lost you, for I knowed by
|
|
the color and all it was just like your brains would be if--Dear,
|
|
dear, whyd'nt you _tell_ me that was what you'd been down there for, I
|
|
wouldn't a cared. Now cler out to bed, and don't lemme see no more of
|
|
you till morning!”
|
|
|
|
I was up stairs in a second, and down the lightning-rod in another one,
|
|
and shinning through the dark for the lean-to. I couldn't hardly get my
|
|
words out, I was so anxious; but I told Tom as quick as I could we must
|
|
jump for it now, and not a minute to lose--the house full of men, yonder,
|
|
with guns!
|
|
|
|
His eyes just blazed; and he says:
|
|
|
|
“No!--is that so? _ain't_ it bully! Why, Huck, if it was to do over
|
|
again, I bet I could fetch two hundred! If we could put it off till--”
|
|
|
|
“Hurry! _Hurry_!” I says. “Where's Jim?”
|
|
|
|
“Right at your elbow; if you reach out your arm you can touch him.
|
|
He's dressed, and everything's ready. Now we'll slide out and give the
|
|
sheep-signal.”
|
|
|
|
But then we heard the tramp of men coming to the door, and heard them
|
|
begin to fumble with the pad-lock, and heard a man say:
|
|
|
|
“I _told_ you we'd be too soon; they haven't come--the door is locked.
|
|
Here, I'll lock some of you into the cabin, and you lay for 'em in the
|
|
dark and kill 'em when they come; and the rest scatter around a piece,
|
|
and listen if you can hear 'em coming.”
|
|
|
|
So in they come, but couldn't see us in the dark, and most trod on
|
|
us whilst we was hustling to get under the bed. But we got under all
|
|
right, and out through the hole, swift but soft--Jim first, me next,
|
|
and Tom last, which was according to Tom's orders. Now we was in the
|
|
lean-to, and heard trampings close by outside. So we crept to the door,
|
|
and Tom stopped us there and put his eye to the crack, but couldn't make
|
|
out nothing, it was so dark; and whispered and said he would listen
|
|
for the steps to get further, and when he nudged us Jim must glide out
|
|
first, and him last. So he set his ear to the crack and listened, and
|
|
listened, and listened, and the steps a-scraping around out there all
|
|
the time; and at last he nudged us, and we slid out, and stooped down,
|
|
not breathing, and not making the least noise, and slipped stealthy
|
|
towards the fence in Injun file, and got to it all right, and me and Jim
|
|
over it; but Tom's britches catched fast on a splinter on the top
|
|
rail, and then he hear the steps coming, so he had to pull loose, which
|
|
snapped the splinter and made a noise; and as he dropped in our tracks
|
|
and started somebody sings out:
|
|
|
|
“Who's that? Answer, or I'll shoot!”
|
|
|
|
But we didn't answer; we just unfurled our heels and shoved. Then there
|
|
was a rush, and a _Bang, Bang, Bang!_ and the bullets fairly whizzed
|
|
around us! We heard them sing out:
|
|
|
|
“Here they are! They've broke for the river! After 'em, boys, and turn
|
|
loose the dogs!”
|
|
|
|
So here they come, full tilt. We could hear them because they wore
|
|
boots and yelled, but we didn't wear no boots and didn't yell. We was
|
|
in the path to the mill; and when they got pretty close on to us we
|
|
dodged into the bush and let them go by, and then dropped in behind
|
|
them. They'd had all the dogs shut up, so they wouldn't scare off the
|
|
robbers; but by this time somebody had let them loose, and here they
|
|
come, making powwow enough for a million; but they was our dogs; so we
|
|
stopped in our tracks till they catched up; and when they see it warn't
|
|
nobody but us, and no excitement to offer them, they only just said
|
|
howdy, and tore right ahead towards the shouting and clattering; and
|
|
then we up-steam again, and whizzed along after them till we was nearly
|
|
to the mill, and then struck up through the bush to where my canoe was
|
|
tied, and hopped in and pulled for dear life towards the middle of the
|
|
river, but didn't make no more noise than we was obleeged to. Then we
|
|
struck out, easy and comfortable, for the island where my raft was; and
|
|
we could hear them yelling and barking at each other all up and down the
|
|
bank, till we was so far away the sounds got dim and died out. And when
|
|
we stepped on to the raft I says:
|
|
|
|
“_Now_, old Jim, you're a free man again, and I bet you won't ever be a
|
|
slave no more.”
|
|
|
|
“En a mighty good job it wuz, too, Huck. It 'uz planned beautiful, en
|
|
it 'uz done beautiful; en dey ain't _nobody_ kin git up a plan dat's mo'
|
|
mixed-up en splendid den what dat one wuz.”
|
|
|
|
We was all glad as we could be, but Tom was the gladdest of all because
|
|
he had a bullet in the calf of his leg.
|
|
|
|
When me and Jim heard that we didn't feel so brash as what we did
|
|
before. It was hurting him considerable, and bleeding; so we laid him in
|
|
the wigwam and tore up one of the duke's shirts for to bandage him, but
|
|
he says:
|
|
|
|
“Gimme the rags; I can do it myself. Don't stop now; don't fool around
|
|
here, and the evasion booming along so handsome; man the sweeps, and set
|
|
her loose! Boys, we done it elegant!--'deed we did. I wish _we'd_ a
|
|
had the handling of Louis XVI., there wouldn't a been no 'Son of Saint
|
|
Louis, ascend to heaven!' wrote down in _his_ biography; no, sir, we'd
|
|
a whooped him over the _border_--that's what we'd a done with _him_--and
|
|
done it just as slick as nothing at all, too. Man the sweeps--man the
|
|
sweeps!”
|
|
|
|
But me and Jim was consulting--and thinking. And after we'd thought a
|
|
minute, I says:
|
|
|
|
“Say it, Jim.”
|
|
|
|
So he says:
|
|
|
|
“Well, den, dis is de way it look to me, Huck. Ef it wuz _him_ dat 'uz
|
|
bein' sot free, en one er de boys wuz to git shot, would he say, 'Go on
|
|
en save me, nemmine 'bout a doctor f'r to save dis one?' Is dat like
|
|
Mars Tom Sawyer? Would he say dat? You _bet_ he wouldn't! _well_,
|
|
den, is _Jim_ gywne to say it? No, sah--I doan' budge a step out'n dis
|
|
place 'dout a _doctor_, not if it's forty year!”
|
|
|
|
I knowed he was white inside, and I reckoned he'd say what he did say--so
|
|
it was all right now, and I told Tom I was a-going for a doctor.
|
|
He raised considerable row about it, but me and Jim stuck to it and
|
|
wouldn't budge; so he was for crawling out and setting the raft loose
|
|
himself; but we wouldn't let him. Then he give us a piece of his mind,
|
|
but it didn't do no good.
|
|
|
|
So when he sees me getting the canoe ready, he says:
|
|
|
|
“Well, then, if you're bound to go, I'll tell you the way to do when you
|
|
get to the village. Shut the door and blindfold the doctor tight and
|
|
fast, and make him swear to be silent as the grave, and put a purse
|
|
full of gold in his hand, and then take and lead him all around the
|
|
back alleys and everywheres in the dark, and then fetch him here in the
|
|
canoe, in a roundabout way amongst the islands, and search him and take
|
|
his chalk away from him, and don't give it back to him till you get him
|
|
back to the village, or else he will chalk this raft so he can find it
|
|
again. It's the way they all do.”
|
|
|
|
So I said I would, and left, and Jim was to hide in the woods when he
|
|
see the doctor coming till he was gone again.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XLI.
|
|
|
|
THE doctor was an old man; a very nice, kind-looking old man when I got
|
|
him up. I told him me and my brother was over on Spanish Island hunting
|
|
yesterday afternoon, and camped on a piece of a raft we found, and about
|
|
midnight he must a kicked his gun in his dreams, for it went off and
|
|
shot him in the leg, and we wanted him to go over there and fix it and
|
|
not say nothing about it, nor let anybody know, because we wanted to
|
|
come home this evening and surprise the folks.
|
|
|
|
“Who is your folks?” he says.
|
|
|
|
“The Phelpses, down yonder.”
|
|
|
|
“Oh,” he says. And after a minute, he says:
|
|
|
|
“How'd you say he got shot?”
|
|
|
|
“He had a dream,” I says, “and it shot him.”
|
|
|
|
“Singular dream,” he says.
|
|
|
|
So he lit up his lantern, and got his saddle-bags, and we started. But
|
|
when he sees the canoe he didn't like the look of her--said she was big
|
|
enough for one, but didn't look pretty safe for two. I says:
|
|
|
|
“Oh, you needn't be afeard, sir, she carried the three of us easy
|
|
enough.”
|
|
|
|
“What three?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, me and Sid, and--and--and _the guns_; that's what I mean.”
|
|
|
|
“Oh,” he says.
|
|
|
|
But he put his foot on the gunnel and rocked her, and shook his head,
|
|
and said he reckoned he'd look around for a bigger one. But they was
|
|
all locked and chained; so he took my canoe, and said for me to wait
|
|
till he come back, or I could hunt around further, or maybe I better
|
|
go down home and get them ready for the surprise if I wanted to. But
|
|
I said I didn't; so I told him just how to find the raft, and then he
|
|
started.
|
|
|
|
I struck an idea pretty soon. I says to myself, spos'n he can't fix
|
|
that leg just in three shakes of a sheep's tail, as the saying is?
|
|
spos'n it takes him three or four days? What are we going to do?--lay
|
|
around there till he lets the cat out of the bag? No, sir; I know what
|
|
_I'll_ do. I'll wait, and when he comes back if he says he's got to
|
|
go any more I'll get down there, too, if I swim; and we'll take and tie
|
|
him, and keep him, and shove out down the river; and when Tom's done
|
|
with him we'll give him what it's worth, or all we got, and then let him
|
|
get ashore.
|
|
|
|
So then I crept into a lumber-pile to get some sleep; and next time I
|
|
waked up the sun was away up over my head! I shot out and went for the
|
|
doctor's house, but they told me he'd gone away in the night some time
|
|
or other, and warn't back yet. Well, thinks I, that looks powerful bad
|
|
for Tom, and I'll dig out for the island right off. So away I shoved,
|
|
and turned the corner, and nearly rammed my head into Uncle Silas's
|
|
stomach! He says:
|
|
|
|
“Why, _Tom!_ Where you been all this time, you rascal?”
|
|
|
|
“I hain't been nowheres,” I says, “only just hunting for the runaway
|
|
nigger--me and Sid.”
|
|
|
|
“Why, where ever did you go?” he says. “Your aunt's been mighty
|
|
uneasy.”
|
|
|
|
“She needn't,” I says, “because we was all right. We followed the men
|
|
and the dogs, but they outrun us, and we lost them; but we thought we
|
|
heard them on the water, so we got a canoe and took out after them and
|
|
crossed over, but couldn't find nothing of them; so we cruised along
|
|
up-shore till we got kind of tired and beat out; and tied up the canoe
|
|
and went to sleep, and never waked up till about an hour ago; then we
|
|
paddled over here to hear the news, and Sid's at the post-office to see
|
|
what he can hear, and I'm a-branching out to get something to eat for
|
|
us, and then we're going home.”
|
|
|
|
So then we went to the post-office to get “Sid”; but just as I
|
|
suspicioned, he warn't there; so the old man he got a letter out of the
|
|
office, and we waited awhile longer, but Sid didn't come; so the old man
|
|
said, come along, let Sid foot it home, or canoe it, when he got done
|
|
fooling around--but we would ride. I couldn't get him to let me stay
|
|
and wait for Sid; and he said there warn't no use in it, and I must come
|
|
along, and let Aunt Sally see we was all right.
|
|
|
|
When we got home Aunt Sally was that glad to see me she laughed and
|
|
cried both, and hugged me, and give me one of them lickings of hern that
|
|
don't amount to shucks, and said she'd serve Sid the same when he come.
|
|
|
|
And the place was plum full of farmers and farmers' wives, to dinner;
|
|
and such another clack a body never heard. Old Mrs. Hotchkiss was the
|
|
worst; her tongue was a-going all the time. She says:
|
|
|
|
“Well, Sister Phelps, I've ransacked that-air cabin over, an' I b'lieve
|
|
the nigger was crazy. I says to Sister Damrell--didn't I, Sister
|
|
Damrell?--s'I, he's crazy, s'I--them's the very words I said. You all
|
|
hearn me: he's crazy, s'I; everything shows it, s'I. Look at that-air
|
|
grindstone, s'I; want to tell _me_'t any cretur 't's in his right mind
|
|
's a goin' to scrabble all them crazy things onto a grindstone, s'I?
|
|
Here sich 'n' sich a person busted his heart; 'n' here so 'n' so
|
|
pegged along for thirty-seven year, 'n' all that--natcherl son o' Louis
|
|
somebody, 'n' sich everlast'n rubbage. He's plumb crazy, s'I; it's what
|
|
I says in the fust place, it's what I says in the middle, 'n' it's what
|
|
I says last 'n' all the time--the nigger's crazy--crazy 's Nebokoodneezer,
|
|
s'I.”
|
|
|
|
“An' look at that-air ladder made out'n rags, Sister Hotchkiss,” says
|
|
old Mrs. Damrell; “what in the name o' goodness _could_ he ever want
|
|
of--”
|
|
|
|
“The very words I was a-sayin' no longer ago th'n this minute to Sister
|
|
Utterback, 'n' she'll tell you so herself. Sh-she, look at that-air rag
|
|
ladder, sh-she; 'n' s'I, yes, _look_ at it, s'I--what _could_ he a-wanted
|
|
of it, s'I. Sh-she, Sister Hotchkiss, sh-she--”
|
|
|
|
“But how in the nation'd they ever _git_ that grindstone _in_ there,
|
|
_anyway_? 'n' who dug that-air _hole_? 'n' who--”
|
|
|
|
“My very _words_, Brer Penrod! I was a-sayin'--pass that-air sasser o'
|
|
m'lasses, won't ye?--I was a-sayin' to Sister Dunlap, jist this minute,
|
|
how _did_ they git that grindstone in there, s'I. Without _help_, mind
|
|
you--'thout _help_! _that's_ wher 'tis. Don't tell _me_, s'I; there
|
|
_wuz_ help, s'I; 'n' ther' wuz a _plenty_ help, too, s'I; ther's ben a
|
|
_dozen_ a-helpin' that nigger, 'n' I lay I'd skin every last nigger on
|
|
this place but _I'd_ find out who done it, s'I; 'n' moreover, s'I--”
|
|
|
|
“A _dozen_ says you!--_forty_ couldn't a done every thing that's been
|
|
done. Look at them case-knife saws and things, how tedious they've been
|
|
made; look at that bed-leg sawed off with 'm, a week's work for six men;
|
|
look at that nigger made out'n straw on the bed; and look at--”
|
|
|
|
“You may _well_ say it, Brer Hightower! It's jist as I was a-sayin'
|
|
to Brer Phelps, his own self. S'e, what do _you_ think of it, Sister
|
|
Hotchkiss, s'e? Think o' what, Brer Phelps, s'I? Think o' that bed-leg
|
|
sawed off that a way, s'e? _think_ of it, s'I? I lay it never sawed
|
|
_itself_ off, s'I--somebody _sawed_ it, s'I; that's my opinion, take it
|
|
or leave it, it mayn't be no 'count, s'I, but sich as 't is, it's my
|
|
opinion, s'I, 'n' if any body k'n start a better one, s'I, let him _do_
|
|
it, s'I, that's all. I says to Sister Dunlap, s'I--”
|
|
|
|
“Why, dog my cats, they must a ben a house-full o' niggers in there
|
|
every night for four weeks to a done all that work, Sister Phelps. Look
|
|
at that shirt--every last inch of it kivered over with secret African
|
|
writ'n done with blood! Must a ben a raft uv 'm at it right along, all
|
|
the time, amost. Why, I'd give two dollars to have it read to me; 'n'
|
|
as for the niggers that wrote it, I 'low I'd take 'n' lash 'm t'll--”
|
|
|
|
“People to _help_ him, Brother Marples! Well, I reckon you'd _think_
|
|
so if you'd a been in this house for a while back. Why, they've stole
|
|
everything they could lay their hands on--and we a-watching all the time,
|
|
mind you. They stole that shirt right off o' the line! and as for that
|
|
sheet they made the rag ladder out of, ther' ain't no telling how
|
|
many times they _didn't_ steal that; and flour, and candles, and
|
|
candlesticks, and spoons, and the old warming-pan, and most a thousand
|
|
things that I disremember now, and my new calico dress; and me and
|
|
Silas and my Sid and Tom on the constant watch day _and_ night, as I was
|
|
a-telling you, and not a one of us could catch hide nor hair nor sight
|
|
nor sound of them; and here at the last minute, lo and behold you, they
|
|
slides right in under our noses and fools us, and not only fools _us_
|
|
but the Injun Territory robbers too, and actuly gets _away_ with that
|
|
nigger safe and sound, and that with sixteen men and twenty-two dogs
|
|
right on their very heels at that very time! I tell you, it just bangs
|
|
anything I ever _heard_ of. Why, _sperits_ couldn't a done better and
|
|
been no smarter. And I reckon they must a _been_ sperits--because, _you_
|
|
know our dogs, and ther' ain't no better; well, them dogs never even got
|
|
on the _track_ of 'm once! You explain _that_ to me if you can!--_any_
|
|
of you!”
|
|
|
|
“Well, it does beat--”
|
|
|
|
“Laws alive, I never--”
|
|
|
|
“So help me, I wouldn't a be--”
|
|
|
|
“_House_-thieves as well as--”
|
|
|
|
“Goodnessgracioussakes, I'd a ben afeard to live in sich a--”
|
|
|
|
“'Fraid to _live_!--why, I was that scared I dasn't hardly go to bed, or
|
|
get up, or lay down, or _set_ down, Sister Ridgeway. Why, they'd steal
|
|
the very--why, goodness sakes, you can guess what kind of a fluster I was
|
|
in by the time midnight come last night. I hope to gracious if I warn't
|
|
afraid they'd steal some o' the family! I was just to that pass I
|
|
didn't have no reasoning faculties no more. It looks foolish enough
|
|
_now_, in the daytime; but I says to myself, there's my two poor boys
|
|
asleep, 'way up stairs in that lonesome room, and I declare to goodness
|
|
I was that uneasy 't I crep' up there and locked 'em in! I _did_. And
|
|
anybody would. Because, you know, when you get scared that way, and it
|
|
keeps running on, and getting worse and worse all the time, and your
|
|
wits gets to addling, and you get to doing all sorts o' wild things,
|
|
and by and by you think to yourself, spos'n I was a boy, and was away up
|
|
there, and the door ain't locked, and you--” She stopped, looking kind
|
|
of wondering, and then she turned her head around slow, and when her eye
|
|
lit on me--I got up and took a walk.
|
|
|
|
Says I to myself, I can explain better how we come to not be in that
|
|
room this morning if I go out to one side and study over it a little.
|
|
So I done it. But I dasn't go fur, or she'd a sent for me. And when
|
|
it was late in the day the people all went, and then I come in and
|
|
told her the noise and shooting waked up me and “Sid,” and the door was
|
|
locked, and we wanted to see the fun, so we went down the lightning-rod,
|
|
and both of us got hurt a little, and we didn't never want to try _that_
|
|
no more. And then I went on and told her all what I told Uncle Silas
|
|
before; and then she said she'd forgive us, and maybe it was all right
|
|
enough anyway, and about what a body might expect of boys, for all boys
|
|
was a pretty harum-scarum lot as fur as she could see; and so, as long
|
|
as no harm hadn't come of it, she judged she better put in her time
|
|
being grateful we was alive and well and she had us still, stead of
|
|
fretting over what was past and done. So then she kissed me, and patted
|
|
me on the head, and dropped into a kind of a brown study; and pretty
|
|
soon jumps up, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Why, lawsamercy, it's most night, and Sid not come yet! What _has_
|
|
become of that boy?”
|
|
|
|
I see my chance; so I skips up and says:
|
|
|
|
“I'll run right up to town and get him,” I says.
|
|
|
|
“No you won't,” she says. “You'll stay right wher' you are; _one's_
|
|
enough to be lost at a time. If he ain't here to supper, your uncle 'll
|
|
go.”
|
|
|
|
Well, he warn't there to supper; so right after supper uncle went.
|
|
|
|
He come back about ten a little bit uneasy; hadn't run across Tom's
|
|
track. Aunt Sally was a good _deal_ uneasy; but Uncle Silas he said
|
|
there warn't no occasion to be--boys will be boys, he said, and you'll
|
|
see this one turn up in the morning all sound and right. So she had
|
|
to be satisfied. But she said she'd set up for him a while anyway, and
|
|
keep a light burning so he could see it.
|
|
|
|
And then when I went up to bed she come up with me and fetched her
|
|
candle, and tucked me in, and mothered me so good I felt mean, and like
|
|
I couldn't look her in the face; and she set down on the bed and talked
|
|
with me a long time, and said what a splendid boy Sid was, and didn't
|
|
seem to want to ever stop talking about him; and kept asking me every
|
|
now and then if I reckoned he could a got lost, or hurt, or maybe
|
|
drownded, and might be laying at this minute somewheres suffering or
|
|
dead, and she not by him to help him, and so the tears would drip down
|
|
silent, and I would tell her that Sid was all right, and would be home
|
|
in the morning, sure; and she would squeeze my hand, or maybe kiss me,
|
|
and tell me to say it again, and keep on saying it, because it done her
|
|
good, and she was in so much trouble. And when she was going away she
|
|
looked down in my eyes so steady and gentle, and says:
|
|
|
|
“The door ain't going to be locked, Tom, and there's the window and
|
|
the rod; but you'll be good, _won't_ you? And you won't go? For _my_
|
|
sake.”
|
|
|
|
Laws knows I _wanted_ to go bad enough to see about Tom, and was all
|
|
intending to go; but after that I wouldn't a went, not for kingdoms.
|
|
|
|
But she was on my mind and Tom was on my mind, so I slept very restless.
|
|
And twice I went down the rod away in the night, and slipped around
|
|
front, and see her setting there by her candle in the window with her
|
|
eyes towards the road and the tears in them; and I wished I could do
|
|
something for her, but I couldn't, only to swear that I wouldn't never
|
|
do nothing to grieve her any more. And the third time I waked up at
|
|
dawn, and slid down, and she was there yet, and her candle was most out,
|
|
and her old gray head was resting on her hand, and she was asleep.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER XLII.
|
|
|
|
THE old man was uptown again before breakfast, but couldn't get no
|
|
track of Tom; and both of them set at the table thinking, and not saying
|
|
nothing, and looking mournful, and their coffee getting cold, and not
|
|
eating anything. And by and by the old man says:
|
|
|
|
“Did I give you the letter?”
|
|
|
|
“What letter?”
|
|
|
|
“The one I got yesterday out of the post-office.”
|
|
|
|
“No, you didn't give me no letter.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, I must a forgot it.”
|
|
|
|
So he rummaged his pockets, and then went off somewheres where he had
|
|
laid it down, and fetched it, and give it to her. She says:
|
|
|
|
“Why, it's from St. Petersburg--it's from Sis.”
|
|
|
|
I allowed another walk would do me good; but I couldn't stir. But
|
|
before she could break it open she dropped it and run--for she see
|
|
something. And so did I. It was Tom Sawyer on a mattress; and that old
|
|
doctor; and Jim, in _her_ calico dress, with his hands tied behind him;
|
|
and a lot of people. I hid the letter behind the first thing that come
|
|
handy, and rushed. She flung herself at Tom, crying, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Oh, he's dead, he's dead, I know he's dead!”
|
|
|
|
And Tom he turned his head a little, and muttered something or other,
|
|
which showed he warn't in his right mind; then she flung up her hands,
|
|
and says:
|
|
|
|
“He's alive, thank God! And that's enough!” and she snatched a kiss of
|
|
him, and flew for the house to get the bed ready, and scattering orders
|
|
right and left at the niggers and everybody else, as fast as her tongue
|
|
could go, every jump of the way.
|
|
|
|
I followed the men to see what they was going to do with Jim; and the
|
|
old doctor and Uncle Silas followed after Tom into the house. The men
|
|
was very huffy, and some of them wanted to hang Jim for an example to
|
|
all the other niggers around there, so they wouldn't be trying to run
|
|
away like Jim done, and making such a raft of trouble, and keeping a
|
|
whole family scared most to death for days and nights. But the others
|
|
said, don't do it, it wouldn't answer at all; he ain't our nigger, and
|
|
his owner would turn up and make us pay for him, sure. So that cooled
|
|
them down a little, because the people that's always the most anxious
|
|
for to hang a nigger that hain't done just right is always the very
|
|
ones that ain't the most anxious to pay for him when they've got their
|
|
satisfaction out of him.
|
|
|
|
They cussed Jim considerble, though, and give him a cuff or two side the
|
|
head once in a while, but Jim never said nothing, and he never let on to
|
|
know me, and they took him to the same cabin, and put his own clothes
|
|
on him, and chained him again, and not to no bed-leg this time, but to
|
|
a big staple drove into the bottom log, and chained his hands, too, and
|
|
both legs, and said he warn't to have nothing but bread and water to
|
|
eat after this till his owner come, or he was sold at auction because
|
|
he didn't come in a certain length of time, and filled up our hole, and
|
|
said a couple of farmers with guns must stand watch around about the
|
|
cabin every night, and a bulldog tied to the door in the daytime; and
|
|
about this time they was through with the job and was tapering off with
|
|
a kind of generl good-bye cussing, and then the old doctor comes and
|
|
takes a look, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Don't be no rougher on him than you're obleeged to, because he ain't
|
|
a bad nigger. When I got to where I found the boy I see I couldn't cut
|
|
the bullet out without some help, and he warn't in no condition for
|
|
me to leave to go and get help; and he got a little worse and a little
|
|
worse, and after a long time he went out of his head, and wouldn't let
|
|
me come a-nigh him any more, and said if I chalked his raft he'd kill
|
|
me, and no end of wild foolishness like that, and I see I couldn't do
|
|
anything at all with him; so I says, I got to have _help_ somehow; and
|
|
the minute I says it out crawls this nigger from somewheres and says
|
|
he'll help, and he done it, too, and done it very well. Of course I
|
|
judged he must be a runaway nigger, and there I _was_! and there I had
|
|
to stick right straight along all the rest of the day and all night. It
|
|
was a fix, I tell you! I had a couple of patients with the chills, and
|
|
of course I'd of liked to run up to town and see them, but I dasn't,
|
|
because the nigger might get away, and then I'd be to blame; and yet
|
|
never a skiff come close enough for me to hail. So there I had to stick
|
|
plumb until daylight this morning; and I never see a nigger that was a
|
|
better nuss or faithfuller, and yet he was risking his freedom to do it,
|
|
and was all tired out, too, and I see plain enough he'd been worked
|
|
main hard lately. I liked the nigger for that; I tell you, gentlemen, a
|
|
nigger like that is worth a thousand dollars--and kind treatment, too. I
|
|
had everything I needed, and the boy was doing as well there as he
|
|
would a done at home--better, maybe, because it was so quiet; but there I
|
|
_was_, with both of 'm on my hands, and there I had to stick till about
|
|
dawn this morning; then some men in a skiff come by, and as good luck
|
|
would have it the nigger was setting by the pallet with his head propped
|
|
on his knees sound asleep; so I motioned them in quiet, and they slipped
|
|
up on him and grabbed him and tied him before he knowed what he was
|
|
about, and we never had no trouble. And the boy being in a kind of a
|
|
flighty sleep, too, we muffled the oars and hitched the raft on, and
|
|
towed her over very nice and quiet, and the nigger never made the least
|
|
row nor said a word from the start. He ain't no bad nigger, gentlemen;
|
|
that's what I think about him.”
|
|
|
|
Somebody says:
|
|
|
|
“Well, it sounds very good, doctor, I'm obleeged to say.”
|
|
|
|
Then the others softened up a little, too, and I was mighty thankful
|
|
to that old doctor for doing Jim that good turn; and I was glad it was
|
|
according to my judgment of him, too; because I thought he had a good
|
|
heart in him and was a good man the first time I see him. Then they
|
|
all agreed that Jim had acted very well, and was deserving to have some
|
|
notice took of it, and reward. So every one of them promised, right out
|
|
and hearty, that they wouldn't cuss him no more.
|
|
|
|
Then they come out and locked him up. I hoped they was going to say he
|
|
could have one or two of the chains took off, because they was rotten
|
|
heavy, or could have meat and greens with his bread and water; but they
|
|
didn't think of it, and I reckoned it warn't best for me to mix in, but
|
|
I judged I'd get the doctor's yarn to Aunt Sally somehow or other as
|
|
soon as I'd got through the breakers that was laying just ahead of
|
|
me--explanations, I mean, of how I forgot to mention about Sid being shot
|
|
when I was telling how him and me put in that dratted night paddling
|
|
around hunting the runaway nigger.
|
|
|
|
But I had plenty time. Aunt Sally she stuck to the sick-room all day
|
|
and all night, and every time I see Uncle Silas mooning around I dodged
|
|
him.
|
|
|
|
Next morning I heard Tom was a good deal better, and they said Aunt
|
|
Sally was gone to get a nap. So I slips to the sick-room, and if I
|
|
found him awake I reckoned we could put up a yarn for the family that
|
|
would wash. But he was sleeping, and sleeping very peaceful, too; and
|
|
pale, not fire-faced the way he was when he come. So I set down and
|
|
laid for him to wake. In about half an hour Aunt Sally comes gliding
|
|
in, and there I was, up a stump again! She motioned me to be still, and
|
|
set down by me, and begun to whisper, and said we could all be joyful
|
|
now, because all the symptoms was first-rate, and he'd been sleeping
|
|
like that for ever so long, and looking better and peacefuller all the
|
|
time, and ten to one he'd wake up in his right mind.
|
|
|
|
So we set there watching, and by and by he stirs a bit, and opened his
|
|
eyes very natural, and takes a look, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Hello!--why, I'm at _home_! How's that? Where's the raft?”
|
|
|
|
“It's all right,” I says.
|
|
|
|
“And _Jim_?”
|
|
|
|
“The same,” I says, but couldn't say it pretty brash. But he never
|
|
noticed, but says:
|
|
|
|
“Good! Splendid! _Now_ we're all right and safe! Did you tell Aunty?”
|
|
|
|
I was going to say yes; but she chipped in and says: “About what, Sid?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, about the way the whole thing was done.”
|
|
|
|
“What whole thing?”
|
|
|
|
“Why, _the_ whole thing. There ain't but one; how we set the runaway
|
|
nigger free--me and Tom.”
|
|
|
|
“Good land! Set the run--What _is_ the child talking about! Dear, dear,
|
|
out of his head again!”
|
|
|
|
“_No_, I ain't out of my _head_; I know all what I'm talking about. We
|
|
_did_ set him free--me and Tom. We laid out to do it, and we _done_ it.
|
|
And we done it elegant, too.” He'd got a start, and she never checked
|
|
him up, just set and stared and stared, and let him clip along, and
|
|
I see it warn't no use for _me_ to put in. “Why, Aunty, it cost us a
|
|
power of work--weeks of it--hours and hours, every night, whilst you was
|
|
all asleep. And we had to steal candles, and the sheet, and the shirt,
|
|
and your dress, and spoons, and tin plates, and case-knives, and the
|
|
warming-pan, and the grindstone, and flour, and just no end of things,
|
|
and you can't think what work it was to make the saws, and pens, and
|
|
inscriptions, and one thing or another, and you can't think _half_ the
|
|
fun it was. And we had to make up the pictures of coffins and things,
|
|
and nonnamous letters from the robbers, and get up and down the
|
|
lightning-rod, and dig the hole into the cabin, and made the rope ladder
|
|
and send it in cooked up in a pie, and send in spoons and things to work
|
|
with in your apron pocket--”
|
|
|
|
“Mercy sakes!”
|
|
|
|
“--and load up the cabin with rats and snakes and so on, for company for
|
|
Jim; and then you kept Tom here so long with the butter in his hat that
|
|
you come near spiling the whole business, because the men come before
|
|
we was out of the cabin, and we had to rush, and they heard us and let
|
|
drive at us, and I got my share, and we dodged out of the path and let
|
|
them go by, and when the dogs come they warn't interested in us, but
|
|
went for the most noise, and we got our canoe, and made for the
|
|
raft, and was all safe, and Jim was a free man, and we done it all by
|
|
ourselves, and _wasn't_ it bully, Aunty!”
|
|
|
|
“Well, I never heard the likes of it in all my born days! So it was
|
|
_you_, you little rapscallions, that's been making all this trouble,
|
|
and turned everybody's wits clean inside out and scared us all most to
|
|
death. I've as good a notion as ever I had in my life to take it out
|
|
o' you this very minute. To think, here I've been, night after night,
|
|
a--_you_ just get well once, you young scamp, and I lay I'll tan the Old
|
|
Harry out o' both o' ye!”
|
|
|
|
But Tom, he _was_ so proud and joyful, he just _couldn't_ hold in,
|
|
and his tongue just _went_ it--she a-chipping in, and spitting fire all
|
|
along, and both of them going it at once, like a cat convention; and she
|
|
says:
|
|
|
|
“_Well_, you get all the enjoyment you can out of it _now_, for mind I
|
|
tell you if I catch you meddling with him again--”
|
|
|
|
“Meddling with _who_?” Tom says, dropping his smile and looking
|
|
surprised.
|
|
|
|
“With _who_? Why, the runaway nigger, of course. Who'd you reckon?”
|
|
|
|
Tom looks at me very grave, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Tom, didn't you just tell me he was all right? Hasn't he got away?”
|
|
|
|
“_Him_?” says Aunt Sally; “the runaway nigger? 'Deed he hasn't.
|
|
They've got him back, safe and sound, and he's in that cabin again,
|
|
on bread and water, and loaded down with chains, till he's claimed or
|
|
sold!”
|
|
|
|
Tom rose square up in bed, with his eye hot, and his nostrils opening
|
|
and shutting like gills, and sings out to me:
|
|
|
|
“They hain't no _right_ to shut him up! SHOVE!--and don't you lose a
|
|
minute. Turn him loose! he ain't no slave; he's as free as any cretur
|
|
that walks this earth!”
|
|
|
|
“What _does_ the child mean?”
|
|
|
|
“I mean every word I _say_, Aunt Sally, and if somebody don't go, _I'll_
|
|
go. I've knowed him all his life, and so has Tom, there. Old Miss
|
|
Watson died two months ago, and she was ashamed she ever was going to
|
|
sell him down the river, and _said_ so; and she set him free in her
|
|
will.”
|
|
|
|
“Then what on earth did _you_ want to set him free for, seeing he was
|
|
already free?”
|
|
|
|
“Well, that _is_ a question, I must say; and just like women! Why,
|
|
I wanted the _adventure_ of it; and I'd a waded neck-deep in blood
|
|
to--goodness alive, _Aunt Polly!_”
|
|
|
|
If she warn't standing right there, just inside the door, looking as
|
|
sweet and contented as an angel half full of pie, I wish I may never!
|
|
|
|
Aunt Sally jumped for her, and most hugged the head off of her, and
|
|
cried over her, and I found a good enough place for me under the bed,
|
|
for it was getting pretty sultry for us, seemed to me. And I peeped
|
|
out, and in a little while Tom's Aunt Polly shook herself loose and
|
|
stood there looking across at Tom over her spectacles--kind of grinding
|
|
him into the earth, you know. And then she says:
|
|
|
|
“Yes, you _better_ turn y'r head away--I would if I was you, Tom.”
|
|
|
|
“Oh, deary me!” says Aunt Sally; “_Is_ he changed so? Why, that ain't
|
|
_Tom_, it's Sid; Tom's--Tom's--why, where is Tom? He was here a minute
|
|
ago.”
|
|
|
|
“You mean where's Huck _Finn_--that's what you mean! I reckon I hain't
|
|
raised such a scamp as my Tom all these years not to know him when I
|
|
_see_ him. That _would_ be a pretty howdy-do. Come out from under that
|
|
bed, Huck Finn.”
|
|
|
|
So I done it. But not feeling brash.
|
|
|
|
Aunt Sally she was one of the mixed-upest-looking persons I ever
|
|
see--except one, and that was Uncle Silas, when he come in and they told
|
|
it all to him. It kind of made him drunk, as you may say, and he didn't
|
|
know nothing at all the rest of the day, and preached a prayer-meeting
|
|
sermon that night that gave him a rattling ruputation, because the
|
|
oldest man in the world couldn't a understood it. So Tom's Aunt Polly,
|
|
she told all about who I was, and what; and I had to up and tell how
|
|
I was in such a tight place that when Mrs. Phelps took me for Tom
|
|
Sawyer--she chipped in and says, “Oh, go on and call me Aunt Sally, I'm
|
|
used to it now, and 'tain't no need to change”--that when Aunt Sally took
|
|
me for Tom Sawyer I had to stand it--there warn't no other way, and
|
|
I knowed he wouldn't mind, because it would be nuts for him, being
|
|
a mystery, and he'd make an adventure out of it, and be perfectly
|
|
satisfied. And so it turned out, and he let on to be Sid, and made
|
|
things as soft as he could for me.
|
|
|
|
And his Aunt Polly she said Tom was right about old Miss Watson setting
|
|
Jim free in her will; and so, sure enough, Tom Sawyer had gone and took
|
|
all that trouble and bother to set a free nigger free! and I couldn't
|
|
ever understand before, until that minute and that talk, how he _could_
|
|
help a body set a nigger free with his bringing-up.
|
|
|
|
Well, Aunt Polly she said that when Aunt Sally wrote to her that Tom and
|
|
_Sid_ had come all right and safe, she says to herself:
|
|
|
|
“Look at that, now! I might have expected it, letting him go off that
|
|
way without anybody to watch him. So now I got to go and trapse all
|
|
the way down the river, eleven hundred mile, and find out what that
|
|
creetur's up to _this_ time, as long as I couldn't seem to get any
|
|
answer out of you about it.”
|
|
|
|
“Why, I never heard nothing from you,” says Aunt Sally.
|
|
|
|
“Well, I wonder! Why, I wrote you twice to ask you what you could mean
|
|
by Sid being here.”
|
|
|
|
“Well, I never got 'em, Sis.”
|
|
|
|
Aunt Polly she turns around slow and severe, and says:
|
|
|
|
“You, Tom!”
|
|
|
|
“Well--_what_?” he says, kind of pettish.
|
|
|
|
“Don't you what _me_, you impudent thing--hand out them letters.”
|
|
|
|
“What letters?”
|
|
|
|
“_Them_ letters. I be bound, if I have to take a-holt of you I'll--”
|
|
|
|
“They're in the trunk. There, now. And they're just the same as they
|
|
was when I got them out of the office. I hain't looked into them, I
|
|
hain't touched them. But I knowed they'd make trouble, and I thought if
|
|
you warn't in no hurry, I'd--”
|
|
|
|
“Well, you _do_ need skinning, there ain't no mistake about it. And I
|
|
wrote another one to tell you I was coming; and I s'pose he--”
|
|
|
|
“No, it come yesterday; I hain't read it yet, but _it's_ all right, I've
|
|
got that one.”
|
|
|
|
I wanted to offer to bet two dollars she hadn't, but I reckoned maybe it
|
|
was just as safe to not to. So I never said nothing.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
CHAPTER THE LAST
|
|
|
|
THE first time I catched Tom private I asked him what was his idea, time
|
|
of the evasion?--what it was he'd planned to do if the evasion worked all
|
|
right and he managed to set a nigger free that was already free before?
|
|
And he said, what he had planned in his head from the start, if we got
|
|
Jim out all safe, was for us to run him down the river on the raft, and
|
|
have adventures plumb to the mouth of the river, and then tell him about
|
|
his being free, and take him back up home on a steamboat, in style,
|
|
and pay him for his lost time, and write word ahead and get out all
|
|
the niggers around, and have them waltz him into town with a torchlight
|
|
procession and a brass-band, and then he would be a hero, and so would
|
|
we. But I reckoned it was about as well the way it was.
|
|
|
|
We had Jim out of the chains in no time, and when Aunt Polly and Uncle
|
|
Silas and Aunt Sally found out how good he helped the doctor nurse Tom,
|
|
they made a heap of fuss over him, and fixed him up prime, and give him
|
|
all he wanted to eat, and a good time, and nothing to do. And we had
|
|
him up to the sick-room, and had a high talk; and Tom give Jim forty
|
|
dollars for being prisoner for us so patient, and doing it up so good,
|
|
and Jim was pleased most to death, and busted out, and says:
|
|
|
|
“Dah, now, Huck, what I tell you?--what I tell you up dah on Jackson
|
|
islan'? I _tole_ you I got a hairy breas', en what's de sign un it; en
|
|
I _tole_ you I ben rich wunst, en gwineter to be rich _agin_; en it's
|
|
come true; en heah she is! _dah_, now! doan' talk to _me_--signs is
|
|
_signs_, mine I tell you; en I knowed jis' 's well 'at I 'uz gwineter be
|
|
rich agin as I's a-stannin' heah dis minute!”
|
|
|
|
And then Tom he talked along and talked along, and says, le's all three
|
|
slide out of here one of these nights and get an outfit, and go for
|
|
howling adventures amongst the Injuns, over in the Territory, for a
|
|
couple of weeks or two; and I says, all right, that suits me, but I
|
|
ain't got no money for to buy the outfit, and I reckon I couldn't get
|
|
none from home, because it's likely pap's been back before now, and got
|
|
it all away from Judge Thatcher and drunk it up.
|
|
|
|
“No, he hain't,” Tom says; “it's all there yet--six thousand dollars
|
|
and more; and your pap hain't ever been back since. Hadn't when I come
|
|
away, anyhow.”
|
|
|
|
Jim says, kind of solemn:
|
|
|
|
“He ain't a-comin' back no mo', Huck.”
|
|
|
|
I says:
|
|
|
|
“Why, Jim?”
|
|
|
|
“Nemmine why, Huck--but he ain't comin' back no mo.”
|
|
|
|
But I kept at him; so at last he says:
|
|
|
|
“Doan' you 'member de house dat was float'n down de river, en dey wuz a
|
|
man in dah, kivered up, en I went in en unkivered him and didn' let you
|
|
come in? Well, den, you kin git yo' money when you wants it, kase dat
|
|
wuz him.”
|
|
|
|
Tom's most well now, and got his bullet around his neck on a watch-guard
|
|
for a watch, and is always seeing what time it is, and so there ain't
|
|
nothing more to write about, and I am rotten glad of it, because if I'd
|
|
a knowed what a trouble it was to make a book I wouldn't a tackled it,
|
|
and ain't a-going to no more. But I reckon I got to light out for the
|
|
Territory ahead of the rest, because Aunt Sally she's going to adopt me
|
|
and sivilize me, and I can't stand it. I been there before.
|
|
|
|
THE END. YOURS TRULY, _HUCK FINN_.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
|
End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Adventures of Huckleberry Finn,
|
|
Complete, by Mark Twain (Samuel Clemens)
|
|
|
|
*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK HUCKLEBERRY FINN ***
|
|
|
|
***** This file should be named 76-0.htm or 76-0.zip ***** This and
|
|
all associated files of various formats will be found in:
|
|
http://www.gutenberg.net/7/76/
|
|
|
|
Produced by David Widger. Previous editions produced by Ron Burkey and
|
|
Internet Wiretap
|
|
|
|
Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will be
|
|
renamed.
|
|
|
|
Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no one
|
|
owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation (and
|
|
you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without permission
|
|
and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth in
|
|
the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to copying and
|
|
distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the
|
|
PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a
|
|
registered trademark, and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks,
|
|
unless you receive specific permission. If you do not charge anything
|
|
for copies of this eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You
|
|
may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative
|
|
works, reports, performances and research. They may be modified and
|
|
printed and given away--you may do practically ANYTHING with public
|
|
domain eBooks. Redistribution is subject to the trademark license,
|
|
especially commercial redistribution.
|
|
|
|
*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
|
|
|
|
THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU
|
|
DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
|
|
|
|
To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
|
|
distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
|
|
(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
|
|
Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
|
|
Project Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
|
|
http://gutenberg.net/license).
|
|
|
|
Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
electronic works
|
|
|
|
1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree
|
|
to and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
|
|
(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all the
|
|
terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy all
|
|
copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
|
|
If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
|
|
terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
|
|
entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
|
|
|
|
1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be used
|
|
on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who agree
|
|
to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few things that
|
|
you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works even without
|
|
complying with the full terms of this agreement. See paragraph 1.C
|
|
below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement and help
|
|
preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
|
|
See paragraph 1.E below.
|
|
|
|
1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the Foundation”
|
|
or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in
|
|
the collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
|
|
individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you
|
|
are located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent
|
|
you from copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating
|
|
derivative works based on the work as long as all references to Project
|
|
Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the
|
|
Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic
|
|
works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with
|
|
the terms of this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name
|
|
associated with the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this
|
|
agreement by keeping this work in the same format with its attached
|
|
full Project Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with
|
|
others.
|
|
|
|
1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
|
|
what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
|
|
a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
|
|
the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
|
|
before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing
|
|
or creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
|
|
the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
|
|
States.
|
|
|
|
1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
|
|
|
|
1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
|
|
access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
|
|
whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
|
|
phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the phrase “Project
|
|
Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
|
|
copied or distributed:
|
|
|
|
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost
|
|
no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use
|
|
it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
|
|
eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
|
|
|
|
1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
|
|
from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
|
|
posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
|
|
and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
|
|
or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work with
|
|
the phrase “Project Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the work,
|
|
you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through
|
|
1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
|
|
|
|
1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
|
|
with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
|
|
must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
|
|
terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
|
|
to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
|
|
permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
|
|
|
|
1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
|
|
work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
|
|
|
|
1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute
|
|
this electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
|
|
prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
|
|
active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm License.
|
|
|
|
1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
|
|
compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
|
|
word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
|
|
distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other
|
|
than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official
|
|
version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
|
|
(www.gutenberg.net), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
|
|
to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
|
|
of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain
|
|
Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the full
|
|
Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
|
|
|
|
1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
|
|
performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
|
|
unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
|
|
|
|
1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing access
|
|
to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided that
|
|
|
|
- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
|
|
the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method you
|
|
already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed to the
|
|
owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has agreed to donate
|
|
royalties under this paragraph to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
|
|
Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid within 60 days following each
|
|
date on which you prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your
|
|
periodic tax returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such
|
|
and sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
|
|
address specified in Section 4, “Information about donations to the
|
|
Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation.”
|
|
|
|
- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies you
|
|
in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he does not
|
|
agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm License. You
|
|
must require such a user to return or destroy all copies of the works
|
|
possessed in a physical medium and discontinue all use of and all access
|
|
to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
|
|
|
|
- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
|
|
any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
|
|
electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
|
|
receipt of the work.
|
|
|
|
- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
|
|
distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
|
|
|
|
1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set forth
|
|
in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from both the
|
|
Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael Hart, the
|
|
owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as
|
|
set forth in Section 3 below.
|
|
|
|
1.F.
|
|
|
|
1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
|
|
effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
|
|
public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm collection.
|
|
Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works, and the
|
|
medium on which they may be stored, may contain “Defects,” such as, but
|
|
not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or corrupt data, transcription
|
|
errors, a copyright or other intellectual property infringement, a
|
|
defective or damaged disk or other medium, a computer virus, or computer
|
|
codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
|
|
|
|
1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right
|
|
of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
|
|
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
|
|
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal fees.
|
|
YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT LIABILITY,
|
|
BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE PROVIDED IN
|
|
PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE TRADEMARK OWNER, AND
|
|
ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE LIABLE TO YOU FOR
|
|
ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES
|
|
EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGE.
|
|
|
|
1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a defect
|
|
in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can receive
|
|
a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a written
|
|
explanation to the person you received the work from. If you received
|
|
the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with your
|
|
written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with the
|
|
defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
|
|
refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
|
|
providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
|
|
receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
|
|
is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
|
|
opportunities to fix the problem.
|
|
|
|
1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
|
|
in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
|
|
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
|
|
WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
|
|
|
|
1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
|
|
warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
|
|
If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
|
|
law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
|
|
interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
|
|
the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
|
|
provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
|
|
|
|
1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation,
|
|
the trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
|
|
providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
|
|
with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
|
|
promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
|
|
harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
|
|
that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
|
|
or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
|
|
Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
|
|
|
|
Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
|
|
Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
|
|
electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
|
|
including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
|
|
because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
|
|
people in all walks of life.
|
|
|
|
Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
|
|
assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
|
|
goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will remain
|
|
freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project Gutenberg
|
|
Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure and
|
|
permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations. To
|
|
learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and
|
|
how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 and the
|
|
Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
|
|
|
|
Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
|
|
Foundation
|
|
|
|
The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
|
|
501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the state
|
|
of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal Revenue
|
|
Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification number
|
|
is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
|
|
http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
|
|
Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
|
|
permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
|
|
|
|
The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
|
|
Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
|
|
throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
|
|
809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887,
|
|
email business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
|
|
information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official page
|
|
at http://pglaf.org
|
|
|
|
For additional contact information: Dr. Gregory B. Newby Chief Executive
|
|
and Director gbnewby@pglaf.org
|
|
|
|
Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
|
|
Archive Foundation
|
|
|
|
Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide spread
|
|
public support and donations to carry out its mission of increasing
|
|
the number of public domain and licensed works that can be freely
|
|
distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest array
|
|
of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations ($1 to
|
|
$5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt status with
|
|
the IRS.
|
|
|
|
The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
|
|
charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
|
|
States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
|
|
considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
|
|
with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
|
|
where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
|
|
DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
|
|
visit http://pglaf.org
|
|
|
|
While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
|
|
have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
|
|
against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
|
|
approach us with offers to donate.
|
|
|
|
International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make any
|
|
statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from outside
|
|
the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
|
|
|
|
Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
|
|
methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other ways
|
|
including including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
|
|
To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
|
|
|
|
Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
|
|
works.
|
|
|
|
Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
|
|
concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
|
|
with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
|
|
Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
|
|
|
|
Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
|
|
editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S. unless
|
|
a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily keep eBooks
|
|
in compliance with any particular paper edition.
|
|
|
|
Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
|
|
|
|
http://www.gutenberg.net
|
|
|
|
This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm, including
|
|
how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
|
|
Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to subscribe to
|
|
our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
|
|
|
|
|
|
|